Download - Managing Defense Transformation
MANAGING DEFENSE TRANSFORMATION
This page intentionally left blank
Managing Defense TransformationAgency, Culture and Service Change
ADAM N. STULBERG and MICHAEL D. SALOMONE
with AUSTIN G. LONG
© Adam N. Stulberg and Michael D. Salomone 2007
All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system
or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording
or otherwise without the prior permission of the publisher.
The authors have asserted their moral rights under the Copyright, Designs and Patents Act,
1988, to be identified as the authors of this work.
Published by
Ashgate Publishing Limited Ashgate Publishing Company
Gower House Suite 420
Croft Road 101 Cherry Street
Aldershot Burlington, VT 05401-4405
Hampshire GU11 3HR USA
England
Ashgate website: http://www.ashgate.com
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data
Stulberg, Adam N., 1963–
Managing defense transformation : agency, culture and service change
1. Armed Forces – History – 20th century 2. Military art and science – History – 20th
century 3. Military history, Modern – 20th century 4. United States – Armed Forces – Re-
organization – History – 20th century
I/ Title II. Salomone, Michael D.
355.3
ISBN-13: 9780754648567
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Stulberg, Adam N., 1963–
Managing defense transformation : agency, culture, and service change / by Adam N.
Stulberg and Michael D. Salomone.
p. cm.
Includes bibliographical references and index.
ISBN 978-0-7546-4856-7
1. United States--Armed Forces--Reorganization--History--20th century--Case studies. 2.
Strategy--History--20th century--Case studies. I. Salomone, Michael D. II. Title
UA10.S735 2007
355.30973--dc22
20066100349
Printed and bound in Great Britain by MPG Books Ltd, Bodmin, Cornwall
Contents
List of Figures vii
About the Authors ix
Acknowledgements xi
Introduction 1
PART I: UNDERSTANDING MILITARY TRANSFORMATION 11
Chapter 1 Explaining Military Transformation 13
Chapter 2 Principals, Agents and Service Transformation 35
PART II: CASE STUDIES 63
Chapter 3 The German Blitzkrieg Transformation: Rebuilding
Preeminence from Catastrophe 65
Chapter 4 The U.S. Navy Transformed: Managing Change from
Sea to Air 101
Chapter 5 The British and Armored Forces: Squandering Early Innovation 129
Chapter 6 U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam: Shirking Transformation 153
Chapter 7 Conclusion 181
Bibliography 197
Index 209
This page intentionally left blank
List of Figures
Figure 2.1 Agent Choices 42
Figure 2.2 Managerial Strategies and Compliance 58
Figure 3.1 Reichwehr Command Structure 1919-1934 71
Figure 3.2 Tank Forces Command 77
This page intentionally left blank
About the Authors
Dr. Adam N. Stulberg is Associate Professor at the Sam Nunn School of International
Affairs, Georgia Institute of Technology. Dr. Stulberg earned his Ph.D. in Political
Science from the University of California, Los Angeles, as well as holds a Masters
of International Affairs from Columbia University’s School of International and
Public Affairs, and a B.A. in history from the University of Michigan. His research
and publications focus on military innovation, Russian foreign and security
policies, energy security in Eurasia, and WMD proliferation. Dr. Stulberg is the
author of Well-Oiled Diplomacy: Strategic Manipulation and Russia’s Energy
Statecraft in Eurasia (SUNY Press, forthcoming), and co-editor of Preventing
Nuclear Meltdown: Managing Decentralization of Russia’s Nuclear Complex
(Ashgate 2004). He also has published articles in Security Studies, Geopolitics,
Contemporary Security Policy, Orbis, and Foreign Affairs. Dr. Stulberg previously
worked at RAND and the Center for Nonproliferation Studies.
Dr. Michael D. Salomone is Professor of International Affairs in the Sam Nunn
School of International Affairs, Georgia Institute of Technology. He was educated
at Lehigh University and earned his Ph.D. in Political Science from the University
of Pittsburgh. For the past 30 years, Dr. Salomone has studied the capabilities and
vulnerabilities of military organizations, and he has conducted numerous assessments
in this area for Office of the Secretary of Defense and other Department of Defense
organizations. Most recently, he has been studying information flows, intelligence
analysis, battlefield decision-making, command and control assessment, network-
centric operations, and military transformation. He is presently constructing an
interactive computer simulation of the World War I German Schlieffen Plan and
writing on the reasons for its failure. Dr. Salomone has written articles for Defense
Acquisition Review and Defense Analysis on these subjects, and is the co-author
of The Reluctant Supplier: U.S. Decision Making for Arms Sales (1983) and of
Technology Transfer and US Security Assistance (1987), and the co-editor of
Marketing Security Assistance: New Perspectives on Arms Sales (1987).
Austin G. Long is a Ph.D. candidate in Political Science at the Massachusetts
Institute of Technology and a member of its Security Studies Program. His research
includes work on military innovation, counterinsurgency, and intelligence. He is
also an adjunct researcher at RAND.
This page intentionally left blank
Acknowledgements
Although this book began when the meaning of the current revolution in military
affairs was contested, it addresses issues that will continue to challenge future
scholars and defense planners. The authors wish to express their enduring gratitude
to Andrew W. Marshall for his sustained encouragement of the study of military
transformation. They also owe special thanks to Walker McKnight for his diligent
and professional research assistance. In addition, Adam N. Stulberg wants to
acknowledge that parts of Chapter 4 appeared in an article published in Security
Studies (2005). All shortcomings, of course, are attributed to the authors.
This page intentionally left blank
Introduction
This book analyzes the challenges of managing major military transformation. It asks
why and how some military organizations are more adept than others at reinventing
themselves, not just introducing but sustaining and honing revolutionary changes
in technologies, systems, doctrines, operations, and training. Why, for example,
did the British Army have difficulty marshalling early enthusiasm and advancing
initial innovations in tank warfare, while the German military leaped ahead with the
truly revolutionary Blitzkrieg strategy that pushed the technological and operational
frontiers for integrating tactical air power and mechanized warfare with devastating
effectiveness on the battlefield? How did the U.S. Navy excel at sustaining the
revolution at sea, steadily supplanting the “big gun” club that dominated the
service and transforming the aircraft carrier from an auxiliary spotter to the capital
ship by the end of World War II? By contrast, why did the U.S. Army resist new
demands for counterinsurgency, and how did it actively sabotage efforts to alter
the post-World War II bias towards a large-scale conventional warfare? This book
seeks to explain the variable patterns to which military services succeed and fail at
institutionalizing radically new approaches to warfare to inform efforts at managing
military transformation today.
Understanding why and how military organizations sustain revolutionary
change is especially important for both practical and theoretical reasons. Strangely,
statesman at the dawning of the 21st Century have been thrust “back to the future” in
grappling with international security. On the one hand, the hangover of the nuclear
revolution and mounting globalization— encompassing the rapid movement of ideas,
people, resources, services, and technologies across national borders— diminish
the utility of capturing territory and significantly raise the costs of using force
across the international system. The intertwining of national economies, societies,
and security elevate, in particular, the salience of non-military and “soft” power
dimensions to statecraft. As underscored by Joseph Nye, complex interdependence
of the security, political, and economic realms opens unprecedented opportunities
for states to wield power indirectly by enticing and attracting; getting what they
want by setting political agendas and leading by example, rather than by relying on
traditional means of intimidation and force.1 Yet the broadening and deepening of
interdependence simultaneously expose new vulnerabilities that while complicating
the use of force underscore “hard power” as the currency for international security.
Amid the proliferation of international institutions, growing reach of non-state
1 Joseph S. Nye, The Paradox of American Power (New York: Oxford University
Press, 2002), pp. 4-12; and Richard Rosecrance, The Rise of the Virtual State: Wealth and
Power in the Coming Century (New York: Basic Books, 1999).
Managing Defense Transformation2
actors, and rampant compromises to national sovereignty and domestic governance
that profoundly affect international relations, states nonetheless continue to hew to
military force as the ultimate instrument for arresting new threats. As demonstrated
vividly by American military action in Afghanistan and Iraq, the asymmetrical
impact of globalization bears ominous tidings that continue to compel states to
redress international grievances by exercising force, albeit with radically new forms
and purpose.
Yet without displacing hard power, the end of the Cold War and gathering
momentum of globalization generate profound pressures for military change.2
The newly independent states of the former Soviet Union, for example, face the
monumental tasks of professionalizing and modernizing national armies amid
protracted domestic political transition and fiscal austerity. Their former Eastern
bloc allies confront challenges of qualitatively upgrading and reorienting national
armies to meet the standards of new Western military partners. At the same time,
superior Western militaries are pushed and pulled in different directions, saddled
with new requirements for conducting high-intensity combat and asymmetrical
warfare, as well as with an ever-expanding scope of operations “other than war.” No
longer consumed with containing a predictable peer competitor, the U.S. military
confronts the formidable challenge of maintaining global preeminence along multiple
fronts, assuming a panoply of new responsibilities that include peacekeeping,
peace enforcement, humanitarian intervention, counter-terrorist operations, drug
interdiction, coercive diplomacy, post-conflict policing, and nation-building. As
many of these constitute “high frequency-low stakes” missions, in contrast to the
“low frequency-high stakes” scenarios that were the preoccupation throughout the
Cold War, defense planners are now called upon to manage multiple operations
amid tight budgetary and personnel constraints, more restricted foreign access, and
mounting political pressure to minimize casualties with each success. If not handled
deftly, this confluence of pressures risks not only retarding military change but
inflaming civil-military tensions over basic questions concerning the use of force.3
The maturation of the information age accentuates the strategic impetus for
radical military change. Ongoing advances in computer processing, microelectronics,
surveillance, and precision guided weapons technologies seemingly offer qualitatively
new opportunities for robust communications links among sensors, command nodes,
and “strikers” that necessitate a fundamental restructuring of U.S. military strategy,
operations, tactics, logistics, and organization. New information technologies appear
to augur well for a network-centric approach to warfare premised on the acquisition
and exploitation of more and better information with revolutionary implications
for synergies among platforms and for re-structuring U.S. command and control
(ultimately to include command, control, communication, computer, intelligence,
surveillance, and reconnaissance tasks- C4ISR). The digitization of information
2 Theo Farrell and Terry Terriff, “The Sources of Military Change,” in, Ibid., eds.,
The Sources of Military Change: Culture, Politics, and Technology (Boulder: Lynne Reinner
Publishers, 2002), pp. 3-17.
3 Peter D. Feaver and Christopher Gelpi, Choosing Your Battles: American Civil-
Military Relations and the Use of Force (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2004).
Introduction 3
gathering, processing, and dissemination not only presents significant technological
challenges but portends radical changes to the architecture for managing real-time
translation of “dominant battle-space knowledge” into superior performance on the
battlefield. These potentially unprecedented advances stand to render traditional
qualitative-quantitative trade-offs obsolete, widening the gap between those militaries
that effectively integrate new technologies and methods of warfare and those that
do not.4 Consequently, there is burgeoning consensus among contemporary defense
intellectuals that the key to maintaining strategic preeminence and bolstering future
combat effectiveness will be the ability of military organizations to keep pace with
revolutionary changes in technology and strategic environments that make fielding
“systems of systems” and network-centric warfare both increasingly feasible and
necessary. Success will be contingent on organizational structures and processes
that integrate non-linear interactions “created by the personalities, strivings, values,
past experiences, history, visions, and cultures of the individuals and institutions
involved.”5
Are military organizations up to the challenge? A growing chorus of
contemporary American and European military experts seems determined to answer
in the affirmative. Enamored by the prospects for radical synergies between novel
technologies, doctrine, and organization fostered by the RMA and emboldened by
the preliminary “lessons learned” from wars fought since the 1991 Persian Gulf
war, defense planners now challenge each military service to jettison decades old
practices, technologies, planning assumptions, and bureaucratic parochialism that
governed the linear, incremental approach to military change during the Cold War.
Sweeping changes are demanded in the ways that each service envisions, procures,
trains, plans, cooperates, and conducts warfare.6 The staunchest proponents hold up
4 Advocates of the contemporary RMA thesis include: Alvin and Heidi Toffler, War
and Anti-War: Survival at the Dawn of the 21st Century (Boston: Little, Brown, 1993);
James R. Blaker, Understanding the Revolution in Military Affairs: A Guide to America’s
21st Century (Washington, DC: Progressive Policy Institute, 1997); Andrew F. Krepinevich,
“Cavalry to Computer: The Pattern of Military Revolutions,” The National Interest 37 (Fall
1994); Eliot A. Cohen, “A Revolution in Warfare?” Foreign Affairs 75 (March/April 1996),
pp. 34-54; Joseph S. Nye Jr., and William A. Owens, “America’s Information Edge,” Foreign
Affairs 75:2 (March/April 1996); John Arquilla and David Ronfeldt, eds., In Athena’s Camp
(Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1997), and Michael Ignatieff, Virtual War: Kosovo and Beyond
(New York: Metropolitan Books, 2000). For dissenting views see especially Stephen Biddle,
Military Power: Explaining Victory and Defeat in Modern Battle (Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, 2004).
5 Barry Watts and Williamson Murray, “Military Innovation in Peacetime,” in
Williamson Murray and Allan R. Millett, eds., Military Innovation in the Interwar Period
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 1996), p. 375. For a seminal discussion of the critical
importance of organizational innovation to the success of embracing the RMA, see especially
Andrew F. Krepinevich, The Military Technical Revolution: A Preliminary Assessment
(Washington, DC: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, 1999).
6 Immediately following the 2003 war in Iraq, for example, the Pentagon launched an
initiative to centralize procurement, dramatically stripping each military service of the power
to establish their technical needs, as well as submitted a revised procurement plan that placed
a premium on the acquisition of next generation systems.
Managing Defense Transformation4
the vision of a quickly fought, technologically-driven, jointly-performed, low-risk
military operation (beyond what was achieved by Operation Iraqi Freedom in 2003)
as the model for re-shaping the future of the American military. Service leaders also
are expected to take full advantage of new information technologies by developing
administrative structures to mesh centralized control with adaptive, joint, and
flexible planning “down echelon.” Convinced of the necessity to advance military
transformation, defense planners now take aim at reconfiguring service cultures and
organizational practices that are regarded as the greatest obstruction to the diffusion
and assimilation of these fundamentally new ways of war.7
Notwithstanding new strategic, technological, and political impulses for change
that grip the defense planning community, scholars of military organizations are more
circumspect about the prospects for transformation. Mainstream theories invoked to
explain military innovation do not provide a clear-cut answer. On the one hand, it
is difficult not to be pessimistic, as the imperative to harmonize decisionmaking
mechanisms with advances in digital information processing presents military
planners with the problem of reconciling the dynamism of technological change with
the stasis that besets organizations. Traditional studies of organizational behavior
warn us that military institutions are designed explicitly to maximize consistency
and to regularize coordination among functionally specialized sub-units in order
to reduce the high uncertainty of task environments and to preserve the service’s
autonomy and health.8 Internal relations are hierarchical, redundant, rigid, and
routinized; narrowly attuned to achieving specific and predictable organizational
outputs. Because peacetime and wartime conditions buffer military organizations from
common threats of bureaucratic extinction and political accountability experienced
by other government agencies, these attributes impose especially binding constraints
on information flows within services that render decisionmaking highly resistant
to change absent external shocks, such as defeat in war or forceful intervention by
political “outsiders.” At best, military change is expected to be ad hoc, informal, and
ephemeral, marred by tradeoffs between efforts to improve managerial efficiency
at performing traditional missions and adapting to new task environments. The
old efficiency-versus-flexible formula for incremental change, however, no longer
suffices because the latest RMA places a premium on military organizations doing
both simultaneously. Thus, organizational inertia is assumed to be the “Achilles
7 For a succinct discussion of the organizational change that is warranted for reaping
the full benefits of the RMA, see especially discussion in Admiral William A. Owens (U.S.
Navy, ret.), “Creating a U.S. Military Revolution,” in Theo Farrell and Terry Terriff, The
Sources of Military Change: Culture, Politics, and Technology (Boulder: Lynne Reinner
Publishers, 2002), pp. 205-219; Andrew F. Krepinevich, Jr, The Military-Technical Revolution:
A Preliminary Assessment (Washington, DC: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments,
1993), available at www.csba.org; and Christopher J. Bowie, Robert Haffa, and Robert E.
Mullins, Future War: What Trends in America’s Post-Cold War Military Conflicts Tell Us
About Early 21st Century Warfare (Washington, DC: Northrup Grumman Analytical Center
Paper, 2003).
8 Morton H. Halperin, Bureaucratic Politics and Foreign Policy (Washington, DC:
Brooking Institution, 1974); and Barry R. Posen, The Sources of Military Doctrine: France,
Britain, and Germany Between the World Wars (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1984).
Introduction 5
heel” of transitioning from traditional “sunset” systems and platforms, to flexible,
complex, network-centric command and control architectures made possible by
dramatic advances in communications and information technologies.
On the other hand, recent empirical and analytical research challenges this
prognosis to warrant cautious optimism. The 1920s and 1930s, in particular, were
replete with examples of internally driven military change that current planners
strive to emulate.9 The inter-war period demonstrated that military organizations
do not behave uniformly, as some undergo major innovations in the manners that
they exploit technological possibilities and carry out new combat missions with
different degrees of success. Notwithstanding the functional predisposition towards
inertia, some military organizations and services are more effective than others
at internally initiating and then institutionalizing radical changes to warfighting
or command and control even in the absence of catastrophic failures, outside
intervention, or maverick leaders. Some attribute success at diffusing new forms
of warfare to shifts among intra-agency coalitions and the creation of new career
pathways.10 Alternatively, “new wave” organizational learning and culture theories
posit that many of the material, structural and political incentives presumed to bias
military services against flexibility and improvisation and that make them prone to
solving the wrong problems, can be overcome by fundamental changes to how they
think about and prepare for war. Causal weight here is assigned to mental frames
and norms within service communities that shape collective understandings of
the legitimacy of new ways of war.11 Yet for all of the attention to the salience of
changing material incentives and culture within a military organization, we still lack
systematic understanding of how the process unfolds or can be managed. Although
sophisticated interest-based and ideational approaches identify necessary conditions
for the introduction, direction, and appeal of change for a military service, each
by itself is not sufficient for explaining the timing and range of organizational
responses to nebulous and unproven forms of warfare, nor offers a sound predictor
of subsequent success at nurturing and honing change.
In the spirit of cautious optimism, this book offers an alternative perspective
on intra-organizational politics that identifies conditions conducive for managing
revolutionary military change. We argue that a full accounting of the “missing link”
between the initial impetus for military change and sustained organizational responses
requires systematic understanding of the synergies among functional and normative
factors and their impact on the management strategies within organizations that
are the prime developers, consumers, and practioners of military innovation. The
central analytical concern here is not what precipitates the introduction of military
9 See especially collection of case studies on military innovation in Murray and Millett
(1996).
10 Stephen Peter Rosen, Winning the Next War (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
1991).
11 Jeffrey Legro, Cooperation Under Fire: Anglo-American Restraint During World
War II (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1995); Craig M. Cameron, American Samurai: Myth,
Imagination, and the Conduct of Battle in the First Marine Division, 1941-1951 (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1998); and Lynn Eden, Whole World on Fire: Organizations,
Knowledge, and Nuclear Devastation (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2004).
Managing Defense Transformation6
technologies, doctrines, and procedures between states or organizations, but what
enhances or impedes their diffusion and institutionalization as a radically new way
of war within a service. Therefore, we take up the managerial dilemmas confronting
defense planners as the primary point of departure from the extant literature. Focus is
placed squarely on exploring how authority is delegated within an organization, how
different responsibilities foster rival incentives for change within an organization,
and how these differences can be managed via alternative procedural and normative
solutions with different consequences for nurturing military change. Drawing on
insights from a modified principal-agent framework, we argue that the ability to
manage military transformation is critically determined by the intra-organizational
mechanisms that service entrepreneurs put in place to delegate, monitor, and enforce
new responsibilities, as well as to tap into core service competencies and administrative
norms to communicate and guide subordinates along a consistent path. The beauty
of a properly aligned managerial strategy is that it promotes interests, responsibility,
and common knowledge needed to unite commanders and sub-units for contending
with the nebulous and unproven dynamics of sustaining transformation.
By examining the intra-organizational dynamics of managing change, this
study addresses a conspicuous void in the extant literature on military innovation.
In the name of parsimony, theories of military change tend to privilege alternative
structural variables situated at the international, state, organizational, and individual
levels, respectively. The direction that military organizations or entrepreneurs
receive often is prescribed by external or internal conditions and/or mental templates
that either constrain or hardwire the proclivity for change. New interests or ideas
emerge and presumably translate smoothly into organizational change. Yet, there
is little attention to the conditions that affect how new technologies and ideas take
hold within a service beyond their introduction or imposition. Why, for example, are
some military organizations more adroit than others at sustaining a change of course,
institutionalizing new ways of war under otherwise static material and normative
conditions? Why do some efforts at managing change during peacetime succeed
rapidly, while others only gather momentum over time, and still others become either
sidetracked or even subverted? How in the process of nurturing change are defense
planners able to coordinate different interests and preferences that cut across divisions
within a service? This book seeks to redress these oversights by illuminating the
microfoundational sources of organizational change. This entails specifying relevant
actors within a military organization that both promote and impede change, their
immediate institutional environment, and the causal chain linking these actors and
their environment to success and failure at sustaining and honing military change.
This focus complements recent studies on the microfoundations of national
security and defense policymaking. Though the principal-agent framework has been
applied to understanding military change, it has been used primarily to generate
a theory of civilian control over the U.S. military that feature the idiosyncrasies
of the hierarchical relationship between the political drivers of innovation and the
propensity of respective services to accommodate pressures for change.12 Others
12 Deborah D. Avant, Political Institutions and Military Change: Lessons from
Peripheral Wars (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1994). For an agency theory of general U.S.
Introduction 7
have used it to explain how design features and the constellation of political interests
rendered the U.S. Joint Chiefs of Staff system especially resistant to change.13 We
build on these developments by applying the principal-agent framework to strategic
interaction among different levels of hierarchy within a military organization.
From this we explain how internal supervisory mechanisms affect incentives
and inclinations for change within a service that can account for variations in
transformational performance beyond the stale success/failure dichotomy, and that
cut across strategic, technological, national, and service environments.
In addition, our modified framework for intra-organizational behavior is
intended as an analytical bridge between contending schools of thought on military
change. As discussed in the next chapter, theorists have been preoccupied mostly
with developing and testing rival explanations for organizational innovation that
give priority either to material-functional interests or to cognitive-cultural biases
as the main source of change. Yet, this has come at the expense of both fleshing
out increasingly common findings that interests and norms matter for spurring or
obstructing military change, and for exploring how the two types of variables interact
to shape the course of transformation.14 Conversely, military historians and policy
practitioners have grown frustrated with arcane debates that compartmentalize the
role of interests and ideas, and that seem out of touch with mounting evidence that
attitudes for change vary among core elements within military organizations.15 This
approach, however, has circumscribed systematic understanding of the general
conditions ripe for prodding change from within different military organizations.
As a result, defense planners tend to focus on idiosyncratic factors that correlate
with historical innovation at risk of inflating their causal significance in crafting
action plans for administering organizational change. The net effect of these trends
has been to widen the gulf between policy and theoretical approaches to grappling
with similar issues of military change. Part of our ambition with specifying the
microfoundations of strategic interaction between different levels of hierarchy within
civil-military relations, see especially Peter D. Feaver, Armed Servants: Agency, Oversight,
and Civil-Military Relations (Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 2003).
13 Amy B. Zegart, Flawed By Design (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1999). For
a related application of the principal-agent framework to explain the success of the Goldwater-
Nichols reforms, see especially Sharon Weiner, “Resource Allocation in the Post-Cold War
Pentagon,” Security Studies 5:4 (1996), pp. 125-142.
14 Barry Watts and Williamson Murray, “Military Innovation in Peacetime,” in Murray
and Millett (1996), pp. 369-417; and Williamson Murray and MacGregor Knox, “The Future
Behind Us,” in MacGregor Knox and Williamson Murray, eds., The Dynamics of Military
Innovation (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001), pp. 175-194; and Terry Terriff
and Theo Farrell, “Military Change in the New Millenium,” in Farrell and Terriff (2002), pp.
271-276.
15 For a discussion of the different attitudes towards military innovation and new
missions among the cohort of middle level officers in the contemporary U.S. military, see
especially Deborah D. Avant and James H. Lebovic, “U.S. Military Responses to Post-Cold
War Missions,” in Farrell and Terriff (2002), pp. 139-160. On the complaints about the policy
relevance of the theoretical literature on military innovation, see especially Watts and Murray
(1996), p. 381.
Managing Defense Transformation8
military organizations and discerning fungible dimensions to administrative culture,
therefore, is to provide an analytical framework for integrating material and non-
material sources of change, while simultaneously generating logically consistent
implications upon which to base practical planning assumptions.
Part I of the book identifies the paradoxes of military transformation, and develops
a theory to explain why some efforts at managing change might be expected to succeed.
Chapter 1 specifies the problem and reviews the extant literature on organizational
change that relates directly to our investigation of military transformation. The focus
is on illuminating systematic pitfalls at explaining synergies between new ideas and
material incentives that we intend to redress in this book. In addition, we define
more precisely how our research contributes to understanding the importance of the
managerial dimension to service change.
Chapter 2 presents our alternative argument. It begins by specifying our
assumptions and the limitations to applying traditional principal-agent models to
issues of military change. Attention then turns to identifying the central causal
logic linking specific incentive schemes and managerial norms associated with
reducing agency costs of supervising change, and then to the propensity for service
organizations to nurture and sustain transformation in methods and forms of warfare.
We address the following questions: What are the different incentives for exploring
and exploiting new forms of warfare within a service? Why do they differ among
various levels of hierarchy? How and under which conditions can service champions
of change supervise successfully without knowing exactly where they are headed?
Under which conditions do sub-units readily comply to sustain or advance change,
as opposed to resist or even sabotage transformational directives? The chapter
concludes by presenting a method for “process-tracing” the argument in comparative
case studies that vary across strategic, technological, historical, national, and service
settings.16
The hypotheses generated in chapter 2 are put to empirical test in classic cross-
national, cross-service cases of successful and unsuccessful military transformation
in Part 2. The emphasis of each chapter is primarily on illustrating the strengths
and weaknesses of contending arguments, as opposed to providing rich historical
description. Chapters 3 and 4 explicate two alternative patterns of transformational
success. Chapter 3 addresses the question of how interwar German defense planners
managed to capitalize readily on revolutionary innovations in combined armored
warfare. It begins by recounting the ironies of the German Army’s success, given the
internationally imposed restrictions on rearmament, comparative technological and
industrial advantages of its future adversaries, initial dominance of “traditionalists”
within the High Command, and formation of a separate air force. This is followed
by a critical review of the administrative consequences of the complementary
material incentives and managerial norms. We examine how the proponents of
armored warfare adroitly forged an administrative strategy that aligned promotional
incentives, information flows, and the service’s technical evidentiary standards that
16 Alexander L. George and Timothy J. McKeown, “Case Studies and Theories of
Organizational Decision Making,” in Robert Coulam and Richard Smith, eds., Advances in
Information Processing in Organizations (Greenwich, CT: JAI Press, 1985), pp. 43-68.
Introduction 9
were derived from a collectively accepted scientific approach to problem-solving.
Chapter 4 explores the distinct form of protracted transformation to offensive carrier
warfare spearheaded by the U.S. Navy during the interwar period. The chapter
begins by assessing prominent strategic, functional, and ideational explanations for
the American navy’s carrier revolution. We then apply the modified principal-agent
framework to illustrate how service entrepreneurs gradually introduced low cost
mechanisms of delegation and oversight, as well as tapped into prevailing managerial
norms to steadily increase incentives for and confidence in carrier-based operations
up and down the naval hierarchy, notwithstanding the prevailing balance of power
and orthodoxy that favored the traditional Battle Fleet throughout the period.
The ensuing two chapters examine opposing patterns of aborted or failed military
transformation. Chapter 5 analyzes the factors that led the British Army to abandon
success at introducing massed armored warfare (reverting to traditional infantry
support and cavalry-oriented missions), notwithstanding the global lead in tank
technology and doctrine coming out of World War I. We begin by demonstrating
how the Royal Army’s recalcitrance challenges dominant theories of international
relations and organizational behavior. The chapter then turns to exploring the
transformation-stifling consequences of successive reorganizations of mobile and
armor divisions. We find that even when entrepreneurial commanders were ceded
command authority over armored formations, divergent promotional pathways,
divided responsibilities and reporting requirements, coupled with the lack of staff
support, diminished their ability to supervise well-integrated combined arms doctrine
and operations. Furthermore, within the British Army, there were long-standing
traditions of top-down command, low error tolerance, and regimental specialization
and fragmentation that militated against common knowledge and operational/tactical
flexibility, ultimately suppressing the diffusion of innovation across the service.
Together these elements significantly exacerbated the agency costs of managing
change that derailed the British Army’s effective exploitation of mechanized warfare,
notwithstanding the strategic imperatives and burgeoning enthusiasm and advances
in operational and tactical doctrine. Chapter 6 identifies the sources of the U.S.
Army’s doctrinal rigidity and protracted resistance to embracing counterinsurgency
as a core mission. The chapter opens by distinguishing the Army’s behavior at not
only shirking new forms of warfare, but actively sabotaging the policy goals imposed
by different political administrations and strategic and technological contexts. It then
turns to explicating the perverse incentives and inclinations for innovation generated
by successive intra-service administrative reforms. This includes a review of how
assigned supervisory directors lacked discrete authority, were ill served by the
division of command authority, and were orphaned institutionally both within the
Vietnam theater command and the Special Forces Offices at the Pentagon. There
also is discussion of how the managerial challenges were compounded by ad hoc
executive and legislative oversight, and the failure to frame counterinsurgency
operations in terms that made sense to the Army. The latter, in particular, contributed
directly to the absence of a service-wide affinity for “pacification” or collectively
accepted quantitative standards for assessing the performance of counterinsurgency
operations. Unlike the case for air mobility, the low-intensity character of counter-
Managing Defense Transformation10
insurgency was not presented either as an adjunct to the Army’s traditional mid-to-
high intensity operations or with potential application to the European theater.
The Conclusion recaps the main empirical and analytical findings from the case
studies. It teases out implications for theories of organizational change, international
relations, and security studies, as well as for policy debates over the meaning and
prospects for realizing the fruits of the contemporary RMA. In doing so, we distill
practical lessons from our analytical and historical case studies, offering a set of
contemporary guidelines for managing transformation into the future.
PART I
Understanding Miltary Transformation
This page intentionally left blank
Chapter 1
Explaining Military Transformation
What is military transformation? Why and how are military services able to convert
the initial impetus for radical change into sustained adjustment in the ways that they
outfit, plan, train, and organize to wage war? This chapter addresses these questions.
The first section notes the dilemmas of military change that necessitate conceiving
of military transformation as an ongoing process of organizational change. The
second part assesses the traditional debate between “outside-in” and “inside-out”
explanations for military innovation. This features a critical review of “new wave”
material-functional and cognitive-cultural theories of military organizational change.
The third section highlights generic problems with recent efforts to push the frontiers
of the incentive-ideas divide, and specifies directions for recasting the debate. We
then briefly outline the general claims of an alternative microfoundational approach,
with specific reference to its value as an analytical bridge between material and
ideational explanations for military service change.
The Paradox of Transformation
Military transformation on its face is paradoxical. In practice, it entails reconciling
motivations for dynamic shifts towards new ways of war within organizations
designed to foster continuity. Given the intrinsic complexity and unknowns of
warfare, militaries to a greater extent than other government organizations are
structured to promote standardization and predictability in order to hedge against
uncertainty and the deleterious consequences of uncharted and uncoordinated action.
Accordingly, military services are cautious about change, especially if it involves
introducing new means towards new ends. This poses a dilemma for defense
planners, as progress towards transformation entails the disruption of old practices
that triggers disincentives for change among the very organizational elements that
are the prime producers, supervisors, and consumers of change.1
A second dilemma derives directly from the practical meaning of military
change. New ideas about military objectives and organizations are defined in
1 James Q. Wilson, Bureaucracy: What Government Agencies Do and Why They Do
it (New York: Basic Books, Inc., Publishers, 1989), pp. 221-223. For a similar observation in
the military context, see especially Stephen Peter Rosen, Winning the Next War: Innovation
and the Modern Military (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1991), p. 2; Theo Farrell and Terry
Terriff, “The Sources of Military Change,” in Theo Farrell and Terry Tarriff, eds., The Sources
of Military Change: Culture, Politics, and Technology (Boulder: Lynne Reinner, 2002), p. 4.;
and Captain Terry C. Pierce, Warfighting and Disruptive Technologies: Disguising Innovation
(London: Frank Cass, 2004), pp. 19-20.
Managing Defense Transformation14
relation to existing ways of war; they do not arise in a vacuum. For novel ideas
to have meaning and to evoke new interpretations within a military organization,
they must resonate with preexisting understandings and experiences of the service.
To paraphrase another author, there is no such thing as an immaculate military
innovation; transformational ways of war cannot register in the absence of an
established logic to describe them and to stand in contrast to them.2 The concept of
carrier battle groups, for example, was meaningless without preconceived notions
of naval warfare or comparative referents provided by the capital ships of the day.
This presents an additional dilemma for defense planners; they must frame new
conceptions of warfare in the context of old ideas. Innovative contributions will
likely go unnoticed and undervalued if they do not invoke familiar understandings
and methods. The rub, however, is that by clutching too closely to existing concepts,
the promoters of new ideas risk obfuscating the essential conceptual and institutional
features of transformation.3
By the same token, military transformation constitutes a dynamic process of
translating vague visions of war into mature, innovative outcomes. According to
one recent study, major military transformation involves “changes in the goals,
actual strategies, and/or structure of a military organization.” The barometers of
success include the adoption of a new primary mission, novel technologies, and
new operational methods that together warrant a major restructuring of the existing
organizational landscape. The synergy between novel concepts, operations, strategies,
and technologies carries implications for organizational strategy and structure that
exceed the sum of discrete technological, strategic, and force structure modifications.4
Yet this poses a challenge for defense planners, as they must decide ex ante to
create new organizational processes and forms that only can be fully appreciated as
innovative ex post. Because new ideas and technologies are intrinsically nebulous,
evolving, and unproven (as well as unleash unforeseen consequences), they require
buy in from an organization before full innovative forms take shape, not to mention
before success or failure can be unambiguously demonstrated in training exercises
or on the battlefield. In short, new ideas meet stable institutions before they are well
defined, requiring an organization to undertake change without the leadership first
understanding where it is headed. This element of flying blind necessitates an open-
ended organizational process of exploring new ideas while continuing to exploit
proven methods. Accordingly, at the crux of military transformation are administrative
processes and practices that foster and nurture new ideas and organizational forms in
a manner that allows them to be fully envisioned and institutionalized. The process
of radical change begins prior to the maturation of new forms and technologies.
Success or failure, therefore, is defined in organizational terms and does not turn on
the performance of new systems in battle, which can be unpredictable and affected
by factors beyond the control of a single organization.
2 Andrew B. Hargadon and Yellowlees Douglas, “When Innovations Meet Institutions:
Edison and the Design of the Electric Light,” Administrative Science Quarterly 46 (2001), p.
478.
3 Ibid.
4 Farrell and Terriff (2002), p. 5.
Explaining Military Transformation 15
In light of the above issues, major military transformation, as defined here, is
at core an organizational issue. It pertains to changes in both the efficiency and
flexibility of organizations to acclimate to new task environments. As Stephen
Rosen points out, such innovation consists of a “new way of war, with new ideas of
how the components of the organization relate to each other and to the enemy, and
new operational procedures conform to those ideas.” Unlike military adaptation,
which conveys the refinement of traditional routines or the grafting of new missions,
technologies, or tactics onto the old, transformation represents major changes in
“what military organizations do, how they do it, and who does it.”5 Transformation
does not merely encompass the development and use of new technologies, but
constitutes qualitative changes in organizational strategies, procedures, and measures
of effectiveness for performing critical tasks. This means that the issue at hand
is not limited to the technical mechanics of developing and fielding a new armor
asset. What was transformational about the German blitzkrieg strategy, for instance,
was the novel method of integrating the tank into a fundamentally new approach
to mechanized warfare. Similarly, with respect to future network centric warfare,
major change entails not only the absorption of information technologies but the
development and integration of new approaches to close the decisionmaking loop
between sensors, command nodes, and strikers, while disrupting the respective loop
for a potential adversary.6
Transformation also imposes a dynamic tension on an organization to embrace
the complexity of the external environment while mitigating uncertainty in internal
relations. Because of the numerous and ever-changing interactions among mutually
adaptable actors that define the complex domestic and international settings within
which military organizations are situated, change cannot be measured in terms of
control over the external environment. At best, organizations can strive to undertake
change that effectively “harnesses complexity,” adjusting in ways that embrace and
even exploit it, rather than eliminate it.7 At the same time, organizations must maintain
internal coordination among functionally differentiated constituent elements that are
affected in different ways by the fluidity of the external setting. To do both, as noted by
James March, necessitates that an organization is structured simultaneously to exploit
opportunities for improving internal efficiency according to established standards,
and to explore altogether untested knowledge and organizational forms that take
advantage of the opportunities provided by the complexity of the external landscape.
Therefore, successful transformation is tantamount to organizing fundamentally new
tradeoffs between exploitation and exploration that provide leverage for a military
system in responding appropriately to new technologies and task environments.8
5 Rosen (1991), p. 134.
6 Edward A. Smith, “Network Centric Warfare: What’s the Point?” Naval War College
Review (2001), pp. 59-75.
7 Robert M. Axelrod and Michael D. Cohen, Harnessing Complexity: Organizational
Implications of a Scientific Frontier (New York: Free Press, 1999), p. 9.
8 Ibid., pp. 43-44. This draws on the seminal discussion in James G. March,
“Exploration and Exploitation in Organizational Learning,” Organization Science 2 (1991),
pp. 71-87.
Managing Defense Transformation16
Military transformation also involves sustaining innovations, as opposed to
achieving an ad hoc, ephemeral policy outcome.9 Transformation does not stop
with a single modification to rectify a specific performance shortfall or to exploit a
tactical opportunity during wartime or peacetime. It is not embodied, for example,
by the many situational and informal communications links and administrative
stopgaps that emerged to provide effective “short-term error correcting feedbacks”
in planning the 1991 Gulf War air campaign.10 Nor is transformation reflected
solely by the development and deployment of new military technologies. Rather,
transformation is manifest in the diffusion and institutionalization of lessons,
beliefs and practices for organizing the fulfillment of new tasks. This subsumes the
capacity of a military organization to nurture and hone change, integrating lessons
and informal practices established during periods of war and training exercises
into lasting structures and operations appropriate to the prevailing technology and
task environment. In short, transformation is tantamount to a sustained process of
innovation; the product of a series of choices made over time and at different levels
within a military organization.
In light of these parameters, there are certain organizational features that military
historians and defense analyst typically associate with armed services that are
primed to gather internal momentum for transformation. For example, scholars point
to the importance of structures that balance centralized command with decentralized
implementation. “Junior commanders need to know how their operations support
the senior commander’s overall plan, how to integrate their operations within
various elements of a full-dimensional concept of operations, and how to react
quickly, and often independently, to a rapidly changing conflict environment.”11
As exemplified by the German Army during World War II, these requirements
are best served by streamlined but loosely structured organizational forms that
simultaneously convey a strong vision of warfare held by senior commanders
while ceding discretion for independent action at lower levels. Others highlight the
significance of elastic decisionmaking mechanisms that facilitate adaptive learning
and flexible force development and employment while avoiding premature lock-in
on unproven systems, concepts, and organizational arrangements. American military
experience since the end of the Cold War, for example, reveals the importance of
maintaining fluid organizational processes that allow for continued adjustments in
targeting and operational maneuver while maintaining overall coordination among
sub-units.12 A third classic organizational attribute of transformation is the regular
9 Pierce (2004), pp. 18-19.
10 Mark D. Mandeles, Thomas C. Hone, and Stanford S. Terry, Managing ‘Command
and Control’ in the Persian Gulf War (Westport, CN: Praeger, 1996); and Richard G. Davis,
On Target: Organizing and Executing the Strategic Air Campaign Against Iraq (Washington,
DC: Air Force History and Museum Program, 2002), pp. Pp. 57-110.
11 Andrew F. Krepinevich, Jr., The Military-Technical Revolution: A Preliminary
Assessment (Washington D.C.: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, 1991), p.
37.
12 Christopher J. Bowie, Robert Haffa, and Robert E. Mullins, Future War: What Trends
in America’s Post-Cold War Military Conflicts Tell Us About Early 21st Century Warfare,
(Washington D.C.: Northrup Grumman Analytical Center Paper, 2003), pp. 36-38.
Explaining Military Transformation 17
and rigorous testing of new visions and practices of war. Comparative episodes of
radical transformation during the inter-war period, for example, demonstrated that
“institutional processes for exploring, testing, and refining conceptions of future
war—in the specific sense of linking those inherently imprecise and ever evolving
visions to concrete concepts, doctrines, and organizational arrangements—are literally
a sine a qua non of successful innovation in peacetime.”13 Finally, comparative
studies of military transformation suggest that organizations with mechanisms
in place to spend scarce resources wisely, as opposed to those that simply enjoy
budgetary slack, are systematically poised for innovation. The success of the inter-
war U.S. Navy, Japanese Navy, and German Army at maximizing transformational
possibilities under strict budgetary constraints, for example, provided clear-cut
evidence that what matters more than the size of service budgets are the procedures
put in place to balance expenditures for current programs with stable investments in
calculated risk-taking.14
The problem is that some services are more adept than others at institutionalizing
novel features for meeting the demand and opportunity for transformation. This
then raises the questions: Why do some services get it right? Which conditions are
propitious for managing large-scale military change? Which factors facilitate or
impede the process of translating new ideas, technologies, and operations into new
forms and methods of preparing for and waging war? Why is it that some new ideas
stick while others fail to be institutionalized in new organizational forms or are used
to sustain old ways of fighting? The first step towards answering these questions is
to consider general ways of explaining military change.
Contending Approaches to Military and Organizational Change
A survey of the recent literature on military transformation reveals a highly evolved
discourse on the sources of organizational change. The uniformly pessimistic
prognosis of routinization and incrementalism posited by traditional organizational
theory no longer dominates. The contemporary focus in security studies has shifted
instead to addressing “why, when and how” radical military transformation is
possible, offering alternative “outside-in” and “inside-out” explanations for shifting
incentives, norms and processes of organizational change. At the crux are debates
among rival theories that ascribe the propensity for military change either to
structural/material stimuli or to cognitively/socially constructed patterned ways that
organizations approach their central missions and tasks.
13 Barry Watts and Williamson Murray, “Military Innovation in Peacetime,” in
Williamson Murray and Allan R. Millett, eds., Military Innovation in the Interwar Period
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 1996), p. 410.
14 Andrew J. Krepinevich, Transformation Strategy (Washington, DC: center for
Budgetary Analyses), www.csbaonline.org/2Strategic_Studies/3Transformation_Strategy/
Managing Defense Transformation18
External Sources of Change
The dominant “outside-in” approach, structural realism, locates the impetus for
military transformation in the anarchic and competitive international security setting.
Military organizations are expected to respond automatically and successfully to
changes in prevailing strategic and technological environments out of basic concerns
for state survival in the anarchic international system. Because failure to acclimate
appropriately to immediate and potential threats is expected ultimately to lead
to defeat, states that are dissatisfied, insecure, and/or ambitious confront strong
incentives to maximize military efficiency by operating at technological frontiers.
This approach, which subsumes a healthy dose of technological determinism,
expects that the competition intrinsic to the international system leads states to
emulate the military capabilities and innovations of each other subject to prevailing
resource constraints. Shifting technological and security imperatives act as invisible
selection mechanisms that discipline national militaries to seize upon opportunities
to transform themselves or risk eventual defeat.15 It is during those occasional
periods when the pace and direction of technological change do not comport with
the prevailing security conditions that military organizations are most susceptible to
problems. In his account of the failure of the British Army to embrace new ways of
mechanized warfare during the inter-war period, for example, John Stone shows that
the disconnect between what is technologically possible and strategically imperative
at any given point in time can wreak havoc on determined efforts at managing
transformation.16
Another mainstream “outside-in” approach suggests that the propensity for
military innovation is determined by the national social structure.17 Because
contemporary militaries are open organizations embedded within larger societal
structures, the ability to innovate depends on a seamless relationship between the
service and its host society. The most effective and innovative military organizations
are predicted to arise out of the most cohesive societies. By contrast, divided societies
are expected to produce alternate sources of identity and loyalty for individual
soldiers and to create coordination problems within the armed forces that restrict
combat effectiveness and limit transformation. Although military leaders may be able
to reduce the negative effects of a divisive society by isolating soldiers via selective
conscription and training practices, such efforts are only stopgaps and ultimately
limit the resources available to innovate. “An innovative military that extracts
resources but is isolated from society may not be able to sustain that innovation in
periods of prolonged conflict.”18 Thus, military organizations are doomed to reflect
15 Kenneth N. Waltz, Theory of International Politics (Reading, MA: Addison-Wesley,
1979).
16 John Stone, “The British Army and the Tank,” in Farrell and Terriff (2002), pp. 187-
204.
17 Stephen Peter Rosen, Societies and Military Power (Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, 1996).
18 Ibid.
Explaining Military Transformation 19
the troubles of their divided host societies at great peril to the capacity to manage
transformation.
A third exogenous approach suggests that civilian intervention is decisive
for inducing military change. The traditionalism and hierarchical character of
professional military organizations provides little relief from the institutional bias
towards stasis in coping with the uncertainty of war. While there are strong strategic
and technological impulses for change, they are mediated by the political institutions
that oversee national defense establishments. Accordingly, some suggest that the
impetus for major change is most likely to come directly from the intervention
by civilian authorities that are presumed to be both more attuned to international
threats and technological opportunities and less vulnerable to the parochialism
that besets large military organizations. This can be accomplished by either direct
civilian oversight of specific military operations, or the promotion of internal allies
and mavericks within a military organization.19 Conversely, the isolation of military
organizations and barriers to civilian intervention foster stagnation.20
Other conceptual approaches share a common emphasis on the central importance
of civilian leadership for making the link between strategic imperatives and doctrinal
change, but attribute different propensities for military transformation to specific
institutional features that regulate civil-military relations. Neoclassical realists, for
example, locate the source of successful transformation in the political alliances that
emerge between statesmen sensitive to international balance of power incentives
for change and key military officers with expertise to devise and champion new
ways of war.21 Alternatively, principal-agent models for civil-military relations
assign explanatory power to the manner in which civilian leaders monitor and
delegate responsibility to the military. What matter most for generating incentives
for military transformation are the institutionally conditioned choices that civilians
make to oversee the military, and how they affect military preferences and costs for
responding to new demands for change.22
These three exogenous approaches, however, hold only limited explanatory
power. While each illuminates different stimuli and incentives that take us to the
precipice of military transformation, they do not follow through with systematic
accounts for how external imperatives are translated into specific outcomes among a
range of available responses. For example, why during the highly competitive inter-
war period did Germany innovate with an offensive military strategy, while France
19 Barry Posen, The Sources of Military Doctrine (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
1984); and Jack Snyder, The Ideology of the Offensive: Military Decisionmaking and the
Disasters of 1914 (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1984).
20 Daniel W. Drezner, “Ideas, Brueacratic Politics, and the Crafting of Foreign Policy,”
American Journal of Political Science 44:4 (October 2000), pp. 733-749.
21 Sten Rynning, “Shaping Military Doctrine in France: Decisionmakers Between
International Power and Domestic Interests,” Security Studies 11:2 (Winter 2001/2), pp. 89-
92.
22 Deborah D. Avant, Political Institutions and Military Change: Lessons From
Peripheral Wars (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1994). See also the related agency theory
of civil-military relations in Peter D. Feaver, Armed Servants: Agency, Oversight, and Civil-
Military Relations (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2003).
Managing Defense Transformation20
clutched to a defensive mode of warfare to its own peril? Given parallel strategic
and technological developments in Germany, Britain, and the U.S., why and how
were the Royal Air Force and Navy able to leapfrog the others, both operationally
and technically in the use of radio technology, despite their relative backwardness
before World War II?23 Though societal structures may account for cross-national
variation, they have trouble accounting for change within a specific organization
over time (i.e., France’s shift from an offensive to defensive doctrine during the inter-
war period), as well as for significant behavioral differences among military units
with similar ethnic and class profiles (i.e. variation among Indian battalions). Those
arguments that regard military change as a response to the institutional structures
of civilian oversight fail to account for cases where the same service experienced
different rates of transformation, despite operating under static institutional
constraints. The U.S. Navy’s successive embrace of battleships and carriers as
transformational capital ships, for example, stood in stark contrast to the service’s
long-standing reluctance to downgrade the coastal defense mission that preceded
the battlefleet, as well as to the Navy’s resistance to assimilating anti-submarine
warfare that followed exploration with naval aviation. While it is has been argued
that legislators relied on mechanisms of Congressional control over the military to
promote the interests of local constituencies in American naval expansionism, the
deciding factors in each case seemed to turn more on respective regional interests in
foreign trade and the convictions of “navalists” than on the independent impact of
inter-branch oversight mechanisms. Rooting the causal chain in civilian intervention
is especially problematic, as military organizations are typically buffered more than
other bureaucracies from threats of extinction or intrusive supervision, especially
during peacetime.24
In addition, all three schools treat military institutions as static and monolithic
organizations. Yet there is no uniform professional military “self interest” or creed
to use as a benchmark. We know from history that different national militaries and
services retain unique identities and missions, with different sub-unit “communities”
operating in accordance with their own priorities. To the extent that variation among
sub-units is acknowledged by exogenous theories of change, they are assumed
either to be pursuing universal bureaucratic interests, i.e., budget maximization,
23 For an empirical critique of the technological determinism that undergirds structural
realism, see especially George Raudzens, “War-Winning Weapons: The Measurement of
Technological Determinism in Military History,” Journal of Military History 54:4 (October
1990), pp. 403-433. For detailed accounts of the historical variation in military change
across national systems and services, see especially Murray and Millett (1996); and Emily
O. Goldman and Leslie C. Eliason, eds., The Diffusion of Military Technology and Ideas
(Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2003).
24 Peter Turbowitz, “Geography and Strategy: The Politics of Naval Expansionism,”
in Peter Turbowitz, Emily O. Goldman, and Edward Rhodes, eds., The Politics of Strategic
Adjustment: Ideas, Institutions, and Interests (New York: Columbia University Press, 1999),
pp. 105-138; and Mark Shulman, “Institutionalizing a Political Idea: Navalism and the
Emergence of American Sea Power,” in Turbowitz, Goldman, and Rhodes (1999), pp. 79-101;
and Lynn Eden, Whole World on Fire: Organizations, Knowledge, and Nuclear Devastation
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2004), pp. 57-58.
Explaining Military Transformation 21
or to constitute mavericks ripe for civilian exploitation. In short, “outside-in”
arguments posit incentives for and constraints on organizational behavior, but by
themselves do not explain the process of sustaining organizational change. There is
no causal connection established between internal organizational preferences, sub-
unit interaction and bargaining, and the behavioral responses to external pressures
or the introduction of new military technologies and forms. Even principal-agent
models that focus on civilian oversight of the military ultimately rest their case
on how different preferences are institutionalized and used within the military
organization to either promote or obstruct change. What at first looks as an inter-
organizational issue of control—civilian supervision of the military—is in essence
an intra-organizational issue.25 To move beyond the limits of these perspectives on
change necessitates peering into the “blackbox” of organizational decisionmaking
and identities.
Internal Sources of Change
“Inside-out” approaches highlight specific organizational characteristics that nurture
intellectual innovations and translate them into new, tangible tasks. Collectively,
these new wave theories of intra-organizational sources of change no longer assume
that the intrinsic complexity of peacetime-task environments uniformly restrict
organizational concerns to protecting institutional resources, autonomy, and health.
Rather, they take up the variation among services responses under similar external
conditions as the point of departure. Accordingly, the revival of intra-organizational
analysis in security studies has shifted to addressing not only why and when, but
how military services succeed at reinventing themselves.
One school of thought attributes major military change to shifts in intra-
organizational power and material incentives. A dominant strain in this literature
heralds the decisive roles played by sub-groups with power to reward change and
that are integrally tied to the organization’s mainstream. Military innovation thrives
due to the elevation of new political communities and successful bargaining by
embedded agents within the service.26 Stephen Rosen, for example, argues that radical
military change follows from the determination and success of senior commanders
at creating “promotional pathways” for junior officers that encourage the latter to
spearhead new ways of war and provide avenues for them to eventually dominate
the service. The success of the U.S. carrier revolution, for example, is attributed to
the initial cooptation of senior surface ship officers into aviation commands, and the
25 This is adapted from the general critique of Congressional control over U.S.
executive branch agencies, in John Brehm and Scott Gates, Working, Shirking, and Sabotage:
Bureaucratic Response to a Democratic Public (Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press,
1997), p. 19.
26 Drezner (2000); and Kimberly Marten Zisk, Engaging the Enemy: Organizational
Theory and Soviet Military Innovation, 1955-1991 (Princeton: Princeton University Press,
1993).
Managing Defense Transformation22
cultivation of new aviator cohorts who were poised to “become admirals in charge
of fleets incorporating aircraft carriers.”27
A rival set of new wave arguments assign causal weight for the impetus, appeal,
and directions for profound change to learning or cultural biases within states and
military organizations. These cognitive-cultural theories echo the claim that “outside-
in” explanations are indeterminate, and do not sufficiently account for how military
organizations promote innovation internally without being forced to do so by threats
of defeat or civilian intervention. At the same time, they part ways with incentive-
based explanations for internal organizational change. The proponents argue that
there is no systematic explanation for the material interests that drive actors with
power in an organization to undertake change that effectively risks reducing their
clout relative to rising entrepreneurs. Instead, the prospects for service reorganization
hinge on the experience and knowledge base of military professionals, or on the
specific normative templates that each service has been socialized into accepting as
its main mission.28
The organizational learning model posits that under favorable conditions,
services are capable of reevaluating and redefining objectives and procedures.29
Contrary to the maxim that organizations seek to reduce uncertainty, learning models
start from the assumption that organizations strive to optimize behavior in their
complex task environments. An organization will respond in ways that contradict
the expectation of classic organizational theory by updating internal beliefs about
core missions consistent with its knowledge base; redefining tasks, skills, training
and procedures accordingly. At the crux of military transformation, therefore, is the
acquisition of new ideas based on observations and (re)interpretations of historical
experience. Learning takes place by encoding inferences from standardized sources
of information, feedback mechanisms and experimentation into new routines for
guiding behavior. This is most likely to occur at the conjunction of a clear impetus
27 Rosen (1991), 20-21, and 78.
28 This literature suggests numerous mechanisms for the influence of norms on
preferences and outcomes operating at both the state and organizational levels of analysis. In
this study, we focus specifically on those cognitive-cultural theories that feature norms and
ideas operating inside a state—such as strategic or organizational culture, or organizational
learning—that are expressly applied to explain differences in military forms and behavior.
This is distinguished from broader constructivist theories that locate ideas and norms at the
international level to explain the similarity in state action and “institutional isomorphism”
within the military profession, independent of the material circumstances of world politics.
Although the distinction is somewhat artificial—as some constructivists seek explanation
for how international norms link up with domestic agents, while some cognitive-cultural
work explores how specific organizational norms derive from historical and professional
developments outside of the state in question—it is relevant, as respective traditions,
explanatory focus, and practical applications have remained quite different. On the distinction
among different levels of cognitive-cultural theories, see especially Theo Farrell, “Culture and
Military Power,” Review of International Studies, 24 (1998): 412-414.
29 Michael D. Cohen and Lee S. Sproull, eds., Organizational Learning (London: Sage
Publications, 1996); and Barbara Levitt and James G. March, “Organizational Learning,”
Annual Review of Sociology 14 (1988): 319-340.
Explaining Military Transformation 23
or opportunity for reevaluation, a credible internal knowledge base to draw on for
undertaking and managing the appropriate form of innovation, and a prevailing sense
of urgency that provides a focal point around which learning can take place.30 In
practice, service learning is incremental, and manifested by the correlation between
experimentation and the updating of ideas on the one hand; and changes in core
tasks, training and education procedures, and mission requirements, on the other.
Alternatively, the organizational culture approach assigns causal weight to
distinct patterns of assumptions, frames, beliefs, values, norms, and identities shared
by service membership.31 As is the case with the learning thesis, this perspective
rejects the assumption that organizations are fundamentally constrained by formal
or informal rules for accomplishing specific goals under uncertainty. Instead,
it assumes that core organizational preferences, decisionmaking processes, and
perceptions derive from shared ideas of group priorities and missions. In this regard,
culture constitutes the socially constructed ethos and mental “tool kits” among
members or sub-groups within an organization that constrain the way they define
objectives, perceive opportunities and threats in the external environment, and order
options and collective strategies among different policy alternatives. Where service
decisionmakers stand on a specific issue is expected to depend not so much as on
where they sit or how they are constrained by standard operating procedures, as
on the specific normative templates for action that they have been socialized into
accepting.32 In general, an organization’s effectiveness at resisting or standardizing
dramatic adjustments to new strategic or technological settings is expected to vary
consistently with the presence or absence of shared dogmas that favor flexibility or
complement the specific task environment. What is “appropriate” for one service,
does not readily apply to another confronting similar international and domestic
settings.
30 Emily O. Goldman, “Mission Impossible: Organizational Learning in Perspective,”
in Turbowitz, Goldman and Rhodes (1999). This draws directly from the concept of learning
proposed by James G. March and Johan P. Olsen, “The Uncertainty of the Past: Organizational
Learning Under Ambiguity,” in Decisions and Organizations, ed. James G. March (New York:
Basil Blackwell, 1988), 335-358.
31 For an overview of organizational culture, see Edgar H. Schein, Organizational
Culture and Leadership, 2nd Edition (San Francisco, Jossey-Bass Publishers, 1992);
Harrison M. Trice and Janice M. Beyer, “Studying Organizational Cultures through Rites and
Ceremonials,” Academy of Management Review 9:4 (1984); Andrew Pettigrew, “On Studying
Organizational Cultures,” Administrative Science Quarterly 24: 4 (December 1979), pp.
570-581; Peter J. Frost, Larry F. Moore, Meryl Reis Louis, Craig C. Lundberg, and Joanne
Martin, eds., Reframing Organizational Culture (London: Sage Publications, 1991); Allen M.
Imershein, “Organizational Change as a Paradigm Shift,” Sociological Quarterly 18 (Winter
1977); Peter Katzenstein, The Culture of National Security (New York: Columbia University
Press, 1996); Joanne Martin, Cultures in Organizations: Three Perspectives (New York:
Oxford University Press, 1992); J. Steven Ott, The Organizational Culture Perspective (Pacific
Grove, CA: Brooks/Cole Publishing Company, 1989); and Sonya A. Sackman, “Culture
and Subcultures: An Analysis of Organizational Knowledge,” Administrative Quarterly 37
(1992).
32 Edward Rhodes, “Do Bureaucratic Politics Matter?: Some Disconfirming Findings
from the Case of the U.S. Navy,” World Politics 47 (October 1994), p. 32.
Managing Defense Transformation24
The organizational culture perspective provides important insights for
understanding different aspects of military innovation. Military organizations
are especially useful subjects for this approach due to their size and turnover in
membership, as well as the emphasis placed on distinct training, indoctrination and
assimilation of membership within each service. Analysts have demonstrated the
potential value of this approach by drawing attention to how organizational “bias” or
“creed” shapes perceptions of threats and preferences for specific weapons systems,
doctrinal development, offensive versus defensive strategies, and the level of civil-
military integration. One study employs the organizational culture perspective to
explain how preferences for different types of warfare were stigmatized by the fit
between a specific weapon system and the collective beliefs concerning mission
responsibilities of the military services that deployed the weapon in question.33 Another
attributes radical differences between French, German, and British military strategies
on the eve of World War II to the unique cultural frameworks embedded within
each national military service that shaped respective understandings about domestic
politics, the nature of warfare, the utility of conscription, and the “appropriateness”
of offensive and defensive doctrines.34 Still others explain the relative success
(failure) of different military organizations at translating technological inventions
(e.g. battleship and radar) into operational innovations by exploring the capacities of
respective commands to envision the potential for change.35 Most recently, an ardent
proponent of the RMA referred to the U.S. military culture of “service unilateralism
and competition” as the bane of transitioning to a “system of systems” architecture
that lies at the crux of network-centric warfare.36 The common thread to these studies
is that military culture represents the intellectual and inter-subjective capacity of the
different armed services to come to grips with the tasks of preparing for and waging
war in different strategic, political, and technological settings. Such organizational
culture is described independently of specific behavior, and is measured in terms
of the beliefs and ideas that are reflected in doctrines, pedagogy, service training
manuals and exercises, personal histories of officers, and internal communication in
the armed services (especially as they pertain to systematic discussions and studies
of lessons from previous organizational experiences with change).37
33 Jeffrey Legro, Cooperation Under Fire (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1995).
34 Elizabeth Kier, Imagining War: French and British Doctrine Between the Wars
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1997).
35 Alan Beyerchen, “From Radio to Radar: Interwar Military Adaptation to
Technological Change in Germany, the United Kingdom, and the United States,” in Murray
and Millett (1996), pp. 265-299; and Edward Rhodes, “Sea Change: Interest-Based vs.
Cultural-Cognitive Accounts of Strategic Choice in the 1890s,” Security Studies 5:4 (Summer
1996), pp. 73-124.
36 William Owens (Adm.), Lifting the Fog of War (New York: Farrar, Straus, Giroux,
2000).
37 See also Williamson Murray, “Does Military Culture Matter,” Orbis (Winter 1999);
Edward Rhodes, “Constructing Power: Cultural Transformation and Strategic Adjustment in
the 1980s,” in Turbowitz, Goldman, and Rhodes (1999); and Colin S. Gray, Modern Military
Strategy (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1999); and Zisk (1993). Zisk offers a blending of
organizational culture and civilian intervention, suggesting that military innovation is most
Explaining Military Transformation 25
The “stickiness” of established norms and ideas notwithstanding, there are
several causal pathways to explain how the interaction between collectively held
expectations, actual events, and socially desirable outcomes can determine an
organization’s propensity for innovation. First, radical transformation can occur
when the membership collectively adheres to ideational expectations that contradict
actual outcomes with starkly negative consequences for the organization. Exogenous
shocks can give credence to oppositional ideas, strengthening the legitimacy and
persuasive power of advocates of change that, in turn, improves the prospects for
consolidating a new dominant idea. Conversely, continuity derives from when the
extant orthodoxy is either confirmed or challenged by events to the advantage of the
organization. Absent unanticipated disaster, even invalidated ideas tend to stick.38
A second set of cultural explanations attribute the diffusion of new ways of war to
the compatibility of novel technologies and doctrines with prevailing organizational
norms, and the legitimacy that these new developments confer upon certain coalitions
within the service. Some services possess cultural mores and doctrinal norms that are
more compatible with certain methods of war than others, irrespective of the nature
of the prevailing threat environment or the performance by foreign militaries.39
Without changes to deep-seated “organizational frames”—including professional
standards for defining and evaluating new information—novel ways of war that are
incompatible with extant knowledge-laden routines are doomed to fall on deaf ears
within a service.40
The potential payoffs for explaining major military change notwithstanding,
each new wave approach is problematic. Rosen’s material-functional argument,
for example, is challenged by the logic of contending procedural relationships.
Newcomers, mavericks, or “missionary” sub-groups unburdened by core
organizational interests, in some instances can become the main drivers of service
change. Insulated from the inertia of routine operations and shielded from interaction
with established institutions, these agents enjoy autonomy and resources to secure a
locus for new ideas within a service.41
likely when civilian leaders are able to widen the defense “policy community” with new ideas
that can change the minds of military leaders, who are otherwise prone to upholding the status
quo.
38 Jeffrey W. Legro, “The Transformation of Ideas,” American Journal of Political
Science 44:3 (July 2000), pp. 419-432; Imershein (1977), pp. 33-43; Thomas U. Berger,
“Norms, Identity, and National Security in Germany and Japan,” in Katzenstein (1996), pp.
317-356; and Scott D. N. Cook and Dvora Yanow, “Culture and Organizational Learning,”
Journal of Management Inquiry 2:4 (December 1993), pp. 373-390.
39 See especially John A. Lynn, “Heart of the Sepoy: The Adoption and Adaptation of
European Military Practice in South Asia, 1740-1805;” and Michael J. Eisenstadt and Kenneth
M. Pollack, “Armies of Snow and Armies of Sand: The Impact of Soviet Military Doctrine on
Arab Militaries,” in Goldman and Eliason (2003), pp. 33-62; and 63-92.
40 Eden (2004); and Kier (1997). See Rhodes (1996); and Farrell and Terriff (2002).
41 On the benefits of intra-organizational insulation, see especially Drezner (200), pp.
737-738; and Juliet Karbo, “Power Politics in Foreign Policy: The Influence of Bureaucratic
Minorities,” European Journal of International Relations 4 (1998): 67-98. This also is
consistent with arguments for “institutional protection” in Rynning (2001/2), pp. 85-116; and
Managing Defense Transformation26
Similarly, the cognitive-cultural arguments are marred by definitional problems.
It is difficult to pin down the exact meanings of organizational learning and culture,
and how they differ as explanations for change. Recent studies that attribute military
adaptation to organizational learning, for example, refer loosely to concepts of “unit
cohesion,” “accepted standards of behavior” and “organizational creed.” Similarly,
proponents of organizational culture ascribe preferences for change to a malleable
predisposition or “learning” in the ways that a service collectively visualizes the fit
between the particular means of warfare and its mission.42 Yet, because cultures are
resistant to taking on new tasks that seem incompatible with core missions, an inherent
openness to learning is not self-evident, especially in the absence of military defeat
or unambiguous failure.43 There also is no uniform domain for analyzing culture, as it
is used interchangeably to describe mind-sets shared by individuals, units, services,
bureaucracies, and society with conflicting implications for promoting organizational
change. In addition, there are various sub-cultures within an organization, as well as
distinctions between strategic beliefs and managerial style, that are not addressed
by mainstream organizational culture explanations. Which norms matter most for
change? Do shifts in one set of norms about operational goals—such as those that
converge on central missions and tasks—require attendant shifts in managerial
cultures dealing with the means to achieve goals—such as shared cognitive frames,
core competencies for addressing problems, and normative benchmarks—to sustain
successful military change? Under which conditions are organizational norms related
to the means of performing specific tasks, as opposed to corporate objectives, more
decisive as causal agents of change?44
A related problem is that ideas and culture are treated typically as idiosyncratic
attributes of an organization. This severely circumscribes the generalizeability and
predictive value of these concepts across different societies, services, and units. In
particular, the behavioral manifestations of subjective beliefs and mind-sets that
permeate an organization are extremely difficult to observe or measure. Recent efforts
to operationalize generic definitions of ideational and cultural factors are potentially
tautological, as factors associated with training, experimentation, consensus,
hierarchy, and military strategy are treated as attributes of both the cause and effect
of organizational change.45 There also is a problem with separating the independent
effects of new ideas from the influence of material-based interest groups that stand
“creative enclaves” in Pierce (2004), pp. 30-31. For a discussion of the role of mid-level
military iconoclasts, see especially Vincent Davis, The Politics of Innovation: Patterns in
Navy Cases (Monograph Series in World Affairs, no.3, University of Denver, 1967).
42 See especially Michael Brown, Andrew May, and Matthew Slater, “Defeat
Mechanisms: Military Organizations as Complex, Adaptive, Nonlinear Systems,” SAIC
Document No. 00-6960+SAC (10 March 2000).
43 Wilson (1989), pp. 101-109.
44 On the different categories of organizational sub-cultures, see especially Schein,
(1992), pp. 51-143; Sackman (1992), pp. 140-161; and Ann Swidler, “Culture in Action:
Symbols and Strategies,” American Sociological Review 51 (April 1986).
45 Kier (1997); Legro (1995); Owens (2000); Goldman (1999); Rhodes (1999); Brown,
May, and Slater (2000).
Explaining Military Transformation 27
to benefit from the consolidation of those ideas.46 These problems are compounded
by claims that neither is distinct from interests and that both ultimately condition
rational decisionmaking.47 In order for ideas or culture to be useful explanatory
variables, they must be defined in a manner that renders them identifiable, discrete,
independent, stable, and predictable across different cases.
In sum, contemporary debates over external versus internal, and material versus
ideational explanations of military change have reached an impasse. Proponents
of exogenous models of military innovation are too wedded to naïve assumptions
about the preferences and processes of military organizations, and fail to explore
how internal managerial structures and subjective, ideational factors can play
important roles that bias responses to “outside” pressures for change. Because few
argue that shifts in material incentives or external shocks can explain all aspects of
military innovation, there is little dispute that factors internal to specific societies
and military organizations are critical for determining “when and why” different
armed services respond the way they do to prevailing strategic and technological
opportunities. At the same time, while “new wave” endogenous explanations for
organizational change have made important headway towards redressing these issues,
more thinking is clearly needed to pinpoint causal mechanisms in the managerial
processes for institutionalizing new tasks that translate new visions of warfare into
sustained processes of organizational change. This suggests that the search for
explanations for military transformation needs to be redirected from the traditional
“zero-sum” approach to theory building, and infused with a dynamic understanding
of the systematic links between material, ideational, and institutional factors.
Bridging The Gap
Contemporary material-functional and cognitive-cultural theories each offer necessary
but insufficient explanations for military change. In the respective and novel efforts
to push the frontiers of organizational theory, treating military services as dynamic
and evolving entities, each general approach privileges changing interests or ideas as
the main driver for the introduction of a new way of war. Although each perspective
acknowledges an interaction—with material-functional arguments recognizing
the supplementary role played by ideas for shaping proximate identities and
constraining the struggle over contending options, and cognitive-cultural arguments
drawing attention to permissive material power conditions that create openings for
the elevation of new ideas— neither alone specifies how interests and ideas can be
systematically integrated into an explanation for sustaining organizational change.
There are four generic problems with the extant debate that have complicated
analysis of the interplay of functional and normative factors and its effect on
46 John Kurt Jacobsen, “Much Ado About Ideas: The Cognitive Factor in Economic
Policy,” World Politics 47 (1995), pp. 283-310; and Judith Goldstein and Robert Keohane,
eds., Ideas, Interests, and Foreign Policy (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1993)
47 For a contrasting view that stresses the causal autonomy of organizational culture
“because” it is intimately bound up with defining the interests of actors, see especially Kier
(1997), pp. 37-38.
Managing Defense Transformation28
rooting change within a service. The first derives from static treatment of the
dimensions and patterns of military change. Scholars often confine the inquiry to
a single dimension of policy (i.e. technology, strategy, doctrine, tactics). Major
change is captured by the resource and organizational implications of shifts along
one of these elements of military policy.48 Similarly, adjustment and innovation are
treated as mutually exclusive patterns of change. This is manifest by the imposition
of a stylized dichotomy between military adaptation (typically defined in terms
of incrementalism and the grafting of novel tactics or minor modifications onto
prevailing goals, strategies or missions); and innovation (the adoption of radically
new technologies, goals/strategies, and organizations).49 Yet, exclusive focus on a
single policy dimension fails to capture the interplay with other dimensions that can
significantly broaden the character of service change. While adaptation traditionally
depicts the political process of introducing and promoting new ideas within an
organization, innovation reflects the final outcome of such a process. Accordingly,
the accumulation of successive rounds of adaptation across different policy
dimensions can bring to fruition innovative practices. Therefore, it is useful to think
of change in terms of a continuum of adaptation and innovation. Progress along this
continuum reflects transformation, which when successful in the military context
consists of fully institutionalizing a synthesis of successive technological, doctrinal,
and organizational adjustments that together crystallize a fundamentally new way of
war. This focus on transformation also closely reflects the practical pursuit of change
embraced by contemporary defense planners.50
Second, the current debate circumscribes consideration of the intrinsic uncertainty
with introducing and consolidating innovation within an organization. The story is
presumed to be over once new incentives or ideas are introduced.51 For material-
functional explanations, the inherent uncertainty of technological breakthroughs
is mitigated by “low cost” hedging strategies for developing numerous prototypes
and allowing competition among respective sponsors to determine the real value of
innovations. According to Rosen, once an innovative goal is conceived, success turns
on creating new promotional pathways to bring these novel technologies and concepts
to fruition.52 Yet, the vast literature on the diffusion of innovation demonstrates
that the very unpredictability of possible outcomes associated with an invention
belies clear understanding of common objectives needed to tailor material rewards
ex ante. How contending product champions can generate common knowledge
through competition without falling prey to established bureaucratic interests, or
how they can then seek to optimize via respective promotional strategies without
48 For a similar critique, see especially Farrell and Terriff (2002), p. 8.
49 On alternative patterns of military change, see especially Emily O. Goldman, “The
U.S. Military in Uncertain Times,” The Journal of Strategic Studies 20:2 (June 1997), p. 43.
50 See especially the early conceptualization of the practical administrative challenges
posed by military transformation in the Office of Net Assessment’s influential study on the
RMA in Krepinevich (1991).
51 Drezner (2000), p. 733.
52 Rosen (1991), pp. 243-250.
Explaining Military Transformation 29
clear visions of victory cannot be explained by instrumental rationality alone.53 Why,
for instance, were early innovations related to helicopter aviation and air mobile
warfare transformed into novel operational practices via the creation of new career
tracks within the U.S. Army, while potential revolutionary changes associated with
tank and air warfare, counterinsurgency, and “pentomic” divisions were initially
orphaned? Why did senior U.S. Navy officials display far less enthusiasm for
establishing new promotional opportunities for junior officers experimenting with
continuous aim gunfire than for those exploring carrier aviation?54 Rewarding initial
expectations can preempt exploration of new and uncertain technical, operational
or strategic possibilities.55 What are the incentives for senior officers to persist with
championing a novel way of war once they are promoted, if as was the case during
the interwar Japanese Navy, continued pursuit can come at great professional and
personal risk?56 How can service entrepreneurs avoid premature lock-in on modest
or sub-optimal technological and doctrinal innovation, as well as create promotional
opportunities that not only lead to top echelons but eclipse established avenues for
advancement?
By contrast, shielding product champions can explain the introduction of
innovative ideas but cannot account for their subsequent ascendance within an
organization. This omission is potentially significant, as suggested by the contrasting
experiences of the British and German Armies at exploring and implementing
revolutionary changes to mobile armored warfare during the interwar period.
Whereas both protected “creative enclaves” to develop technological and conceptual
breakthroughs, the former was partially blinded by previous doctrine and largely
ignored within the broader service community, while the latter proved adept at
incubating and consolidating a new and “disruptive” way of war.57 Under certain
conditions, insulation can be analogous to quarantine, impeding the spread of the
new ideas from a missionary enclave to the broader service community.58
By the same token, cognitive-cultural arguments cannot account for how military
services make intelligible otherwise inchoate developments needed to internalize
53 Everett M. Rogers, Diffusion of Innovation, 5th Edition (New York: Free Press,
2003). For a summary of the problems of rational choice and materialist arguments for
explaining the formation of “common knowledge,” see especially Peter J. Katzenstein, Robert
O. Keohane, and Stephen D. Krasner, “International Organization and the Study of World
Politics,” International Organization 52:4 (Autumn 1998), pp. 645-685; and James Fearon and
Alexander Wendt, “Rationalism vs. Constructivism: A Skeptical View,” in Walter Carlsnaes,
Thomas Risse, and Beth A. Simmons, eds. Handbook of International Relations (London:
SAGE Publications, 2002), p. 60; and James March and Johan Olsen, “The Institutional
Dynamics of International Political Order’,” International Organization 52, no.4 (1998): 943-
969.
54 David Johnson, Fast Tanks and Heavy Bombers (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
1998); and Pierce (2004).
55 Rogers (2003), p. 6. On the implications for “sustaining” versus “disruptive”
innovation, see especially Pierce (2004).
56 Pierce (2004), pp. 140-142.
57 Ibid., pp. 34-35.
58 Drezner (2000), p. 737.
Managing Defense Transformation30
common knowledge about a new way of war, and then institutionalize this vision
within the organization.59 It is expected that either incremental or precipitous
transformation will follow from changes in substantive beliefs. Yet, how can the very
actors socialized in the past initially appreciate the unexpected value and application
of new technologies either in the absence of an unambiguous disconfirming event or
amid contending interpretations? How are such differences adjudicated and a new
common knowledge about warfare validated? Recent efforts to disentangle evaluative
(procedural) norms and “organizational frames” from constitutive identities and
substantive beliefs about organizational missions suggest that the gap is narrowing;
but it nonetheless persists, as the consolidation of new mental “tool-kits” is often
treated as historically contingent upon ad hoc shifts in threats, funding priorities,
and entrepreneurial skill.60
In addition, much of the cognitive–cultural literature short-shrifts analysis of the
strategies for incorporating and honing changes to organizational procedures and
goals. This is especially important in the military context, as those responsible for
engineering change must navigate hierarchical structures, nurturing transformation
amid competing interests and power, as well as ideas. As suggested by the
underwhelming display of tank innovation by the British Army, even relaxation
of institutional conservatism could not surmount obstacles imposed by modest
operational capabilities and bureaucratic resistance.61 Thus, an understanding of
the practical significance of new paradigms of warfare necessitates identifying
the conditions and mechanisms that systematically augur well for managing their
institutionalization within military hierarchies.
A third limitation of the debate over the organizational effects of ideas and
interests is confounded by a tendency to conflate normative and functional features
of institutions.62 This obfuscates both the independent impact of different types of
shared norms and evaluative standards, as well as the distinct effects of alternative
distributions of power and authority embodied by different procedural configurations.
The confusion is compounded by the tendency among authors to implicate
institutions that operate at different levels—transnational, inter-governmental, inter-
organizational, and intra-organizational. In addition, predominant organizational
cultural accounts of military change tend to focus on the constitutive and regulatory
dimensions of norms at the expense of neglecting or conflating the impact of distinct
59 This critique draws on insights by Emanuel Adler, “Constructivism and International
Relations,” in Carlsnaes, Risse, and Simmons (2002), p. 106; and Thomas Risse, “Let’s
Argue!: Communicative Action in World Politics,” International Organization 54:1 (Winter
2000), p. 6.
60 See especially Kier (1997), pp. 253-282; and Eden (2004), pp. 253-282.
61 Stone (2002), pp. 187-203.
62 This is especially problematic for ideational arguments that attribute causal
significance for policy to the “power of ideas” and that subsume the material factors driving
the success of an idea within the “institutionalization” of that idea. See critique in John Kurt
Jacobsen, “Much Ado About Ideas: The Cognitive Factor in Economic Policy,” World Politics,
47 (January 1995), pp. 283-310; and Christopher Gelpi, The Power of Legitimacy: Assessing
the Role of Legitimacy in Crisis Bargaining (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2003), pp.
16-25.
Explaining Military Transformation 31
evaluative (procedural) norms or organizational frames.63 The latter, for example,
speak to the appropriateness of specific problem-solving approaches and the means
of action, rather than to accepted standards of political interaction, permissible
conduct, or substantive organizational goals. Because organizational frames and
evaluative norms constitute distinct institutions and can affect how members of
an organization construct identities, knowledge, strategies, and missions, they
warrant separate examination.64 Disentangling these specific normative and material
institutional elements is significant because each can generate both complementary
and conflicting impulses for change that in different combinations can hold distinct
policy implications for managing transformation. Therefore, a critical step to
understanding the interaction between interests and ideas entails focusing on the
impact of evaluative and problem-solving norms on the institutionalization of
organizational behavior, while simultaneously distinguishing the material incentives
associated with various institutional features that shape intra-organizational power
and responsibility.
Finally, extant conceptions of the interests-ideas interface are overwhelmingly
linear. The relationship between the two is treated as sequential, with either a
new idea initially formulated and then politically brokered; or the empowerment
of a new coalition or political interests that subsequently creates opportunities for
new ideas to flourish.65 Although scholars working within the cognitive-cultural
tradition acknowledge the interplay between ideas and interests, taking feedback (or
blowback) and issues of legitimacy into account for the mobilization of resources
to effect change, the process nonetheless is depicted as sequential. This, however,
misses the simultaneous and synergistic effects that certain combinations of ideas
and interests have on both the success and failure at formulating and implementing
a new way of war. In the interest of discerning independent but reciprocal effects,
therefore, it is important to highlight combinations of intra-organizational ideas and
interests and their implications for sustaining change.
Agency, Culture, and Military Transformation
The old saw that organizations are functionally doomed to stasis no longer carries
the day in theoretical debates over military change. Organizations do undergo
transformation, and the sources of change are both externally and internally
generated. Yet in leading us down this path, the extant debate between the
proponents of ideational versus material-based motivations for organizational change
speaks surprisingly little to the strategies for translating what are initially vague
understandings into sustained revolutions in military affairs. Typically overlooked
is how qualitatively new concepts and methods of warfare that are either imposed,
socially constructed, or instrumentally embraced by members of an organization
transcend early resistance, prevail over alternative courses, and become embedded
63 This is acknowledged in Katzenstein (1996), p. 5.
64 Notable exceptions that distinguish the causal features of organizational frames and
“mental tool kits” include Eden (2004); and Kier (1997).
65 See for example Biddle, Rhetoric and Reality in Air Warfare; and Goldman (1997).
Managing Defense Transformation32
within a military service. Consequently, we are left with many unanswered
questions pertaining to the process of administering organizational change: How
does the structure of a military organization affect the prospects for transformation?
How much centralization and decentralization is enough? How do entrepreneurial
commanders bring their organization along to cement a new way of war in light
of asymmetries of information and expertise that favor sub-units? Do they bridge
these gaps by coercing or inducing compliance from below? How do senior officers
manage tradeoffs between exploration and exploitation in a manner that nurtures and
sustains transformation without knowing exactly where they are headed? Should the
agents of change be insulated from or integrated into core service competencies and
forms?
Merging incentive-based and specific ideational factors into the study of intra-
organizational politics offers a first step towards addressing these issues. We
attempt here to unite neo-institutional arguments regarding the management of
hierarchical relations and intra-organizational preferences with specific features
of organizational culture that are related to shared assumptions about creative
problem-solving. Synthesizing these insights in a manner that specifies the costs
and benefits of overseeing change and compares them to the respective costs and
benefits of shirking among different elements within an organizational hierarchy
can go a long way towards understanding the success or failure at institutionalizing
transformation.
Drawing on insights from the “principal-agent” framework, we argue
that nurturing fundamental military change is primarily an issue of managing
strategic interaction within a hierarchical organizational structure. Because policy
entrepreneurs empowered to introduce new forms of warfare are separated from
but are dependent upon the prime developers and consumers tasked with refining
and implementing them, success depends on the administrative strategies pursued
to coordinate asymmetrical interests and curb opportunism within the service.
Accordingly, internal mechanisms of delegation and oversight that are put in place
to manage these discrepancies, or agency costs, determine the effectiveness of
consolidating adjustments along a path towards military transformation.
Three institutional conditions are key to reducing the agency costs of managing
transformation: clear task delineation, integration of material incentives for innovation
with core service promotional tracks, and regularized access to “affected” third
parties. Managerial strategies that specify complementary (as opposed to redundant)
tasks vest sub-units with discrete responsibility, making them readily accountable
for the performance of assigned mandates. Similarly, administrative forms that open
opportunities to mainstream advancement for service innovators can increase the
desirability of embracing new tasks without orphaning new billets. Finally, reliance
on indirect measures—including informal back channels between entrepreneurial
commanders and sub-units that reinforce their formal relationships, competition
between rivals within or outside the service, and established lines of communication
to extra-organizational actors with independent incentives to observe and influence
the performance of sub-units—create opportunities for oversight that are potentially
less costly and more reliable than intrusive mechanisms of institutional control.
Explaining Military Transformation 33
Formal checks and material incentives alone, however, are not sufficient to
consolidate military organizational change. Shared understandings and ideas too
play a pivotal role bridging administrative gaps, especially when the meaning and
direction of change are vague and unproven, as is the case with the introduction
of radically new forms of warfare. Specifically, managerial norms, which consist
of collectively accepted assumptions about appropriate representations of problems
and criteria for problem-solving, constrain how actors within an organization make
sense of new and uncertain adjustments. If accessed, they can offer “common
knowledge” for closing the residual monitoring gap in performing non-routine tasks.
By invoking these common analytical referents for assessing new information, policy
entrepreneurs can make more transparent to actors across an organizational hierarchy
the legitimacy of new directions, as well as the inappropriateness of shirking. It also
instills trust that can reinforce functional mechanisms of oversight by making it easier
for agents to “visceralize” new directions for policy and what is being asked of them,
even when transformational technologies and policy objectives are neither shared
nor obvious. The key to nurturing successful military change, therefore, rests with
the intra-institutional alignment of authority, material inducements, and managerial
norms that enable entrepreneurial commanders to devote more resources exploring
new ways of war, and that provide sub-units with little incentive and inclination to
devote residual autonomy shirking the performance of new tasks.
Conclusion
The central concept at the crux of this study is the idea that military transformation
constitutes a process of initiating and sustaining organizational change. This is not
to suggest that major military change cannot be precipitated by events and pressures
external to military organizations, but accepts that for such change to last it must be
embedded in the very services that are the targets of transformation. Returning to the
organizational level of military change does not ignore the important role of strategic
and ideational factors; rather it focuses analytical attention on the institutional and
political features that provide the grist for systematically integrating material and
normative strands in the extant literature on military innovation. Viewing military
transformation as the outgrowth of the interaction between organizational and
normative mechanisms of oversight results in a better understanding of the conditions
under which managerial efforts are likely to have a decisive effect on the course of
military transformation. Because policy entrepreneurs empowered to introduce new
ways of war are at once separated from but dependent upon subordinates tasked
with examining and implementing such change, success depends on coordinating
asymmetrical interests and curbing opportunistic behavior within a service.
Accordingly, variation in the internal mechanisms of delegation and administrative
control, and in the extent to which collective assumptions about problem-solving and
evidentiary standards are accessed determines the agency costs and effectiveness of
military transformation. The next chapter develops this argument.
This page intentionally left blank
Chapter 2
Principals, Agents, and Service
Transformation
Chapter 1 critiqued the extant literature on major military change, suggesting that
the intra-organizational diffusion of innovation is an important but much overlooked
issue. In this chapter, we present a theoretical framework to fill this void. We argue
that material and normative factors related to intra-organizational control can be
complementary, and that examining synergies via a modified principal-agent
framework augurs well for a systematic explanation of military transformation. The
core claim here is that the capacity of service entrepreneurs to hone and sustain
transformation is largely a function of the internal structure of delegation and
oversight. These factors specify the division of authority and range of preferences
for exploration versus exploitation in task environments, the costs of monitoring
and enforcing new tradeoffs between these preferences, and the incentives for
opportunism within the organization. If properly aligned, they can profoundly
narrow the gap between what military commanders ask for in terms of change and
how subordinates choose to respond. Given the intrinsic uncertainty, however, we
add that principals must rely on elements of common knowledge to legitimate new
directions and boost the credibility of commitments to transformation. Specifically,
shared assumptions about professionalism and appropriate methods for problem-
solving, as opposed to common understandings of service mission, provide points of
leverage for organizational entrepreneurs to reduce the transaction costs of overseeing
change. Thus, while the scope of success at institutionalizing military transformation
depends critically on getting the incentive structure “right”—aligning choices and
behavior across different levels of hierarchy—the efficiency of doing so turns on the
instrumental use of managerial norms.
This chapter develops this modified theory of agency to specify conditions
conducive for managing military transformation. We trace the influence of incentive-
schemes and managerial norms on the propensity of organizations to institutionalize
new methods and forms of warfare. We present our basic assumptions about military
organizations and the challenges of managing transformation within a generic
principal-agent framework, and then posit a theory for answering the following
questions: What are the different incentives for exploration and exploitation in a
military organization? Why do they differ among various levels of hierarchy? How
and under which conditions can the champions of change supervise successfully
without knowing exactly where they are headed? Under which conditions do sub-
units precipitously versus gradually comply with change, as opposed to resist or even
sabotage development and implementation of new directives? Finally, we present a
Managing Defense Transformation36
method to test our answers to these questions in historical, cross-national, cross-
service case studies of successful and unsuccessful military transformation.
Assumptions
The microfoundational approach advanced here—that focuses on the causal
connection between intra-organizational incentives, inclinations, and choices
for transformation—is premised on several core assumptions about military
organizations. First, we assume that intra-organizational components are the basic
units of analysis for studying military change. This stands in contrast to the more
traditional approach that treats organizations as monolithic entities. As noted
in chapter 1, this classic assumption fails to take into account the variation in
dispositions or behavior within a single organization.1 That said, we also take issue
with rival approaches that focus exclusively on individual officers. Not only does
the individual level of analysis introduce idiosyncrasies that defy even the tightest
psychological explanations, but individuals within an organization are constrained by
the mandates of their offices that specify basic elements of power, preferences, and
modalities of interaction. Accordingly, interaction among sub-groupings and internal
agencies vested with different mandates and across different levels of hierarchy lies
at the nub of understanding the sources of change within a military organization.
In this stylized discussion of principal-agent relations within a service, we refer to
“commander” as the office empowered with authority to oversee the implementation
of new forms, and to “sub-unit” as the agency delegated some kind of authority to
implement functional tasks under the supervision of the commander.2
Second, we relax traditional assumptions that military services are closed and
static, and that a corporate preference can be deduced from a single functional
objective, such as reducing uncertainty or maximizing budgets. Instead, we assume
that military organizations are complex entities, comprised of a collection of sub-
components, each engaged in rational, goal-seeking activities.3 Each sub-group
is delegated responsibility for carrying out specific tasks that produce outcomes
in terms of technologies, doctrine, strategy, tactics, and procedures. The assigned
1 John Brehm and Scott Gates, Working, Shirking, and Sabotage: Bureaucratic
Response to a Democratic Public (Ann Arbor: The University of Michigan Press, 1997), p.
19.
2 There can be multiple principals and agents within a hierarchical relationship (both
outside and inside of a specific organization). Because this study examines specifically the
managerial challenges to consolidating change within an organization, I confine the analysis
to the strategic interaction between those parties that are explicitly delegated authority to
supervise transformation and those that are assigned authority to implement these new
directives. Accordingly, the most relevant principals are those organizational sub-groups
that possess de jure authority to make key policy decisions related to assimilating and
institutionalizing a new way of war. What is important here is not whether these sub-groups
dominate a service, but the authority assigned to them to monitor and oversee the nurturing of
change within the organization.
3 James D. Thompson, Organizations in Action (New York: McGraw Hill, 1967).
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 37
authority defines each sub-unit’s preference, entitling each to reap certain benefits
(and costs) associated with fulfilling (or not) specific mandates. To the extent that
each sub-unit bears the full benefits and costs of carrying out its assigned authority
there is a strong incentive for due diligence, assuring that the collective output will
exceed that which can be produced by each sub-unit absent coordination. Within
hierarchical military organizations, for example, senior command levels possess
inclusive rights to monitor the behavior of subordinate units and enforce directives.
However, because sub-units are not directly responsible for the organization’s
aggregate performance—they are rewarded and punished for fulfilling specific
mandates—they do not shoulder encompassing organizational preferences.4
Similarly, military organizations are presumed to consist of multiple hierarchical
relationships that interact in unplanned and unintended ways. Organizational leaders
craft strategies to navigate simultaneously dynamic external environments, where
they must embrace ongoing interactions among various political and societal actors
that produce unforeseen consequences, and complex intra-organizational hierarchies,
where they must strive to control the behavior of multiple sub-units. Situated in this
Janus-faced relationship, service entrepreneurs have incentive to respond to new
opportunities by overseeing the formulation and implementation of a strategy for
organizational change.5
Fourth, we assume that military organizations are open, subject to societal,
political, and technological pressures that surround them. Commanding offices seek
to encourage sub-units not only to maximize the efficiency of tried and true methods,
but to explore new and untested approaches for fulfilling delegated responsibilities
amid shifting technology and task environments. Because optimal behavior is
measured in terms of a balance between alternative functional objectives that must
be pursued in fluid external settings, we do not assume that there is a single “correct”
response.6
Finally, we assume that military organizations are loosely coupled, with slack
between the authority of commanders to set broad directives for policy and the
responsibilities of subordinates to implement them.7 Slack fosters opportunism,
as it is grounded in information asymmetries and conflicts of interest between
commanders that have a mandate to pay heed to pressures for exploration and
lower-level units that are primarily concerned with the exploitation of stable tasks.
Thus, military transformation can be understood as growing out of a set of choices
4 Armen Alchian and Harold Demsetz, “Production, Information Costs, and Economic
Organization,” American Economic Review 62 (December 1972), pp. 777-795; and Gareth
R. Jones, “Transaction Costs, Property Rights, and Organizational Culture: An Exchange
Perspective,” Administrative Science Quarterly 28 (1983), pp. 454-467.
5 Stephen Peter Rosen, Winning the Next War (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1991;
Deborah D. Avant, Political Institutions and Military Change (Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, 1994).
6 Robert Axelrod and Michael D. Cohen, Harnessing Complexity: Organizational
Implications of a Scientific Frontier (New York: Free Press, 1999), pp. 43-45.
7 For distinctions between complex versus linear, and tightly versus loosely coupled
organizational structures, see especially Charles Perrow, Normal Accidents (Princeton:
Princeton University Press, 1999).
Managing Defense Transformation38
among a diversity of possible responses to a shifting task environment presented by
continuous interaction between and among commanders (principals) and sub-units
(agents).8
Broadening the Frontiers of Agency Theory
The assumptions above provide a foundation for deducing an explanation for
organizational change. Because the power to oversee and reward transformation is
separate from functional expertise and responsibility for implementing change, there
are conflicts of interest between different levels of organization. Gaps in interests
and expertise give rise to principal-agent relationships that are ubiquitous within
hierarchical decisionmaking structures.9 Principals—those empowered to introduce
fundamental change and to set overall performance targets within an organization—
depend on agents—those subordinate units with greater technical expertise and
that are more proximate to the practical effects of change—to refine, assess, and
implement new visions and forms of behavior. Acting as distant supervisors, principals
establish general parameters for change but are both unwilling—because of the risks
of failure—and unable—because of information asymmetries, technical unknowns,
and constraints on time and resources—to explain or dictate how new tasks should
be defined and achieved. Accordingly, principals seek to structure a relationship with
sub-units so that the latter act effectively on their behalf by critically exploring and
executing new ways of war. The cumulative result of this iterative process, if all
operates smoothly, is radical change in the methods and forms of an organization’s
approach to warfare.10
The rub lies with the costs of securing compliance. Agents are interested in
introducing change to the extent that doing so benefits them directly and that they
possess the resources needed to discharge new duties effectively. This presents
potential problems of “adverse selection” and “moral hazard.”11 With the former,
agents have an incentive to exploit advantages of information and expertise to portray
themselves as more committed to implementing new directives than they really are in
an effort to gain promotion. This can potentially confound the efforts of principals to
appoint true champions of organizational change, and if not redressed properly, can
8 Ibid.
9 For a non-technical review, see especially Brehm and Gates (1997); Matthew D.
McCubbins, Roger G. Noll, and Barry R. Weingast, “Structure and Process, Politics, and
Policy: Administrative Arrangements and the Political Control of Agencies,” Virginia Law
Review 75:2 (March 1989), pp. 431-507; John W. Pratt and Richard J. Zeckhauser, “Principals
and Agents: An Overview,” in John W. Pratt and Richard J. Zeckhauser Principals and Agents:
The Structure of Business (Cambridge: Harvard Business School Press, 1985), pp. 1-35; and
Barry Mitnick, “The Theory of Agency: The Policy ‘Paradox’ and Regulatory Behavior,”
Public Choice 24 (1975), pp. 27-47.
10 McCubbins, Noll, and Weingast (1989).
11 Ibid. See also D. Roderick Kiewiet and Mathew D. McCubbins, The Logic of
Delegation: Congressional Parties and the Appropriations Process (Chicago: The University
of Chicago Press, 1991), pp. 22-27.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 39
generate incentives for agents to systematically “oversell” themselves. The problem
of moral hazard pertains to the inherent difficulties of monitoring the performance
of agents that are more expert on the practical aspects of new tasks. Possessing
limited responsibilities and discretion over their own actions, agents have incentives
to act opportunistically in fulfilling assigned duties, withholding information from
principals that might lead to more onerous demands or adversely affect their standing
within the organization, subject to the principal’s oversight. They have incentives to
optimize on conspicuous performance indicators at the expense of either proactively
trouble-shooting unexpected problems or pursuing nebulous elements of change
difficult for principals to observe. The incentives to shirk new tasks are especially
pronounced where a specific agent’s actions only partially determine organizational
change.12 The resources lost to shirking new directives or to containing opportunism
constitute the agency costs of sustaining change. As agency costs mount, principals
must devote greater portions of their resources, time, and effort to supervision that
come at a cost to exploration. If left unabated, such shirking can mar the prospects
for radical change. For a novel method to thrive within an organization, therefore,
the champions of change must possess either effective administrative control
mechanisms or procedures to formalize learning and encourage responsiveness to
transformational objectives.13
Within this framework, military officers charged with undertaking and sustaining
novel methods of war must depend on subordinates and internal groupings to
dutifully carry out new tasks. As is the case with other principal-agent scenarios, this
relationship involves elements of hierarchy and strategic interaction.14 Commanders
possess formal authority to give orders to subordinates and to delegate responsibilities
for the implementation of specific tasks. Notwithstanding differences in official rank
and authority, commanders depend on sub-units for information and expertise to
carry out assigned tasks. Although generally obedient, sub-units do not possess the
same responsibilities as their commanders, nor do they have a strong incentive to
make changes that risk provoking professional uncertainty and intrusive intervention
from above. Because they are interested in fulfilling duties with the least amount of
disruption, sub-units may strive to manipulate the relationship with superiors on the
margins and, subject to their expectations of being detected and disciplined, that can
effectively mitigate both the scope and efficiency of transformation. This suggests
12 Kiewart and McCubbins (1991), pp. 24-27.
13 The literature on containing agency costs focuses on either different types of
monitoring and administrative control, or methods for encouraging horizontal learning among
agents. For a discussion of the former, see especially Ibid., pp. 31-33; Mathew D. McCubbins
and Thomas Schwartz, “Congressional Oversight Overlooked: Police Patrols versus Fire
Alarms,” American Journal of Political Science 28 (1984), pp. 165-179. For an alternative
view of supervision that focuses on the preferences and learning capacity of agents, see
especially Brehm and Gates (1997), pp. 46-74.
14 Peter Feaver, Armed Servants: Agency, Oversight, and Civil-Military Relations
(Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 2003), p. 54. Feaver applies this framework to
relations between civilians and the military in the American national security system. As
discussed below, the same elements of hierarchy and strategic interaction form the crux of
intra-organizational management issues with the military services.
Managing Defense Transformation40
that within an otherwise unambiguous hierarchical organizational structure, strategic
interaction between the supervisors of change and respective sub-units has a direct
effect on organizational behavior. This occurs as the choices by commanders to
delegate and orchestrate change and the choices that sub-units make in how they
comply with such directives are contingent. Thus, it is by creating efficient monitoring
and enforcement schemes, and by establishing procedures to bring sub-unit choices
into line, that the promoters of change can effectively instill an organization-wide
incentive for institutionalizing transformation.
Although the traditional principal-agent framework fits nicely with conventional
understandings of professional relations in the military, it does not capture the full
range of intra-organizational dynamics related to defense transformation. First,
classic formulations focus almost exclusively on the internal traction of clearly
formulated directives with explicitly targeted rewards and punishments. As summed
up by John Brehm and Scott Gates, the basic assumption in this framework is that
“the principal knows what she wants; the problem is getting it.”15 The primary
challenge is to lower the agency costs and secure compliance with specific, top-
down generated directives within an organization. Yet because military entrepreneurs
operate in complex external and internal settings, as well as lack clear conceptions
of transformational outcomes, the agency costs of managing change are especially
acute. Incentive schemes and performance-based monitoring that otherwise work
well when principals know exactly what they want are less effective when the ends
are nebulous at the outset. The agency costs attendant to open-ended exploration
present special challenges, as there are potentially multiple applications for new
technologies and different paths for addressing new tasks, but only limited time
and resources available for principals to devote to oversight.16 Given the range of
“feasible” choices, the challenge of managing transformation is not simply a formal
control issue, but involves shared understanding of appropriate behavior up and
down the organizational hierarchy.17
Second, the principal-agent framework fixates on issues of compliance. Payoffs
to both principals and agents are calculated in terms of the performance of top-down
tasks, regardless of the substance of the action performed.18 Success is a function
not only of getting sub-units to comply but making sure that the substance of
compliance is conducive to advancing transformation. However, the potential range
of compliance at performing otherwise vague directives, and the trade-offs between
time and effort spent on monitoring versus exploration by principals, necessitate
moving beyond strict incentive-based schemes to understand the propensity of sub-
units to line up behind transformation. The issue of how an agent chooses to tow
15 Brehm and Gates (1997), p. 25.
16 Deborah Dougherty, “Organizing for Innovation,” in Stewart Clegg, Cynthia Hardy,
and Walter R. Nord, eds., Handbook of Organizational Studies (London: SAGE Publications,
1996), pp. 424-439.
17 David M. Kreps, “Corporate Culture and Economic Theory,” in James E. Alt and
Kenneth A. Shepsle, eds., Perspectives on Positive Political Economy (New York: Cambridge
University Press, 1990), pp. 90-143.
18 Brehm and Gates (1997), p. 27.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 41
the line is almost as important to managerial success as whether it decides to do so,
especially when it comes to taking action in uncharted waters. By acknowledging that
sub-units can be predisposed to embrace change if it is presented “appropriately,” we
can begin to appreciate how less formal and non-material factors can either expedite
or complicate the effective administration of transformation.
On the surface, classic characterizations of “shirking” also seem overstated when
applied to highly disciplined military organizations. In the literature on bureaucratic
politics and firm behavior, the term refers to slothful functionaries and employees
primarily interested in maximizing wages while minimizing effort; elements that
are less appropriate to military servicepersons. There also is a tendency to equate
“shirking” with the most extreme forms of insubordination. Yet, as Peter Feaver
demonstrates, the term can be constructively applied to military organizations in terms
of professional autonomy rather than material profits. In the civil-military context,
for example, “regardless of what the military agent is asked to do, he would like to do
it with the minimum amount of civilian interference and oversight.”19 This includes
the presentation of different policy mixes that do not comport with a commanding
officer’s prescriptions for meeting assigned tasks, the inflation or skewing of threat
assessments and task requirements, appeals to alternative constituencies and higher
ups both within and outside the service, and reticence towards taking the initiative to
illuminate potential pitfalls and opportunities with the performance of new tasks.20
Shirking represents less an issue of disobedience (unless taken to the extreme with
the overt defiance of orders) than the deliberate failure by an agent to complement
or satisfy the spirit of a principal’s commitment to exploring the unknown. In short,
shirking can be measured as much as by what sub-unit military agents do not do
in meeting the spirit of what is asked from them by commanding units, as by how
strictly they conform to the letter of a new policy directive.
Furthermore, the classic problem assumes that agents confront a dichotomous
choice in responding to central directives; they can either comply or shirk. But as
discussed by Brehm and Gates, agents within an organization have a wider range
of responses at their discretion.21 As depicted in Figure 2.1, subordinates can
respond by meeting minimum requirements for change, narrowly addressing formal
directives. This can include satisfying crude performance indicators and gradually
integrating successive changes to complementary policy fields. This is tantamount to
a hedging strategy of protracted transformation. Alternatively, sub-units can comply
with vigilance, exceeding the expectations and policy goals prescribed by respective
principals. Enthusiastic agency support for change can help to push transformation
beyond what principals can initially envision. With such compliance, sub-units not
only embrace the call for change, but proactively pursue uncharted paths to advance
the spirit of transformation.
Agents also can chose among very different forms of shirking. On the one hand,
they can be strictly opportunistic by avoiding new tasks to seize upon openings to
skirt detection from above. Agents can passively resist by foot-dragging. This can
19 Feaver (2003), p. 64.
20 Ibid.
21 Ibid., pp. 22, 26.
Managing Defense Transformation42
include ad hoc adjustments to a single policy field—i.e technological, strategic, or
procedural—that are grafted onto old practices and not integrated with other policy
dimensions. Military sub-units can fail to put forth a “good faith effort” in support of
a principal’s interests, even colluding with other agencies to retard transformation.
Although a principal ultimately may be able to reel in such recalcitrant agents,
the form of compliance may be less progressive than expected and the principal
may have to overpay for it in terms of time and resources devoted to oversight.
Alternatively, agents can choose a more egregious form of shirking by actively
sabotaging new directives. Because commanders do not know exactly where they
are headed by introducing change, sub-units can exploit favorable asymmetries by
intentionally withholding information, offering “negative advice,” and skewing
the analysis and presentation of technical data used to make or defend a policy
decision.22 Agents can solicit allies among other sympathetic sub-units upon which
the principal also depends for expertise, as well as among rival principals within
the service that can challenge their immediate commander. They also can collude
with “outside” allies from other services, civilian authorities, political sympathizers,
and the corporate sector to generate alternative information and pressure on their
immediate commanders either to uphold the status quo or to alter significantly the
course they are heading. In the U.S. military, for example, sub-units can conduct
end runs around civilian supervisors by exploiting legitimate authority to appeal
to sympathetic legislators via public hearings and testimony.23 Thus, there are clear
distinctions between active and passive forms of compliance/non-compliance along
the “working-shirking” continuum that can carry very different implications for
policy behavior.
In light of these caveats, we develop in the next section a modified theory of
agency to explain the variable propensity of military organizations to institutionalize
transformation. We broaden traditional principal-agent models by integrating issues
of hierarchical supervision with normative elements of common knowledge and
22 This element of shirking is often neglected in traditional principal-agent models.
However, as argued by Brehm and Gates, this form of intentional subversion is qualitatively
different than opportunistic resistance and requires a fundamentally different approach to
supervision. Brehm and Gates (1997), p. 31.
23 Feaver (2003), pp. 58-68.
Agent
Shirk Comply
Sabotage Foot dragging Hedge Vigilance
Agent
Shirk Comply
Sabotage Foot dragging Hedge Vigilance
Figure 2.1 Agent Choices
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 43
trust among the promoters and implementers of organizational change. From this we
establish a causal link between management strategies and military transformation,
deducing an explanation for the variety of forms that success and failure can take.
A Modified Agency Theory of Military Transformation
The first step towards amending the traditional principal-agent framework is to
disaggregate the managerial problem into a stylized four-step process of strategic
interaction among commanding units with authority to promote new directions, and
the respective sub-units tasked with implementing them. This process unfolds as
follows: a) service commanders first settle on the general contours of new ways of
war; b) they then decide on how to oversee the implementation of new directives;
c) sub-units choose between strictly adhering to upper-level directives for change or
not; and d) commanders, in turn, choose to reward vigilant compliance or to punish
opportunism. Within this scheme, each choice is contingent upon the others.24
Given asymmetries of authority, interests, and information the intensity of agency
problems and the attendant implications for military transformation vary according
to how commanders and sub-units adapt to the other’s decisions. In theory, the
probability of “successful” transformation is greatest when military commanders
have strong incentives to monitor exploration indirectly and cheaply, and when sub-
units have weak incentives to shirk. This is most likely to obtain under conditions
where: the pay-offs to sub-units for embracing exploration are significant; control
mechanisms can reliably and efficiently detect shirking; the probabilities that senior
military officers will punish sub-units caught shirking are high; and there is a shared
sense that the methods for orchestrating change are appropriate. Conversely, the
prospects for managing “successful” transformation are least likely when military
commanders have strong incentives to monitor intrusively, and sub-units retain
strong incentives to act opportunistically. This condition is most likely to obtain
when the advantages of exploitation outweigh those of exploration for sub-units,
and the probabilities are low that foot-dragging or sabotage will be detected and
punished. By combining insights from the literature on delegation, oversight, and
managerial norms, we deduce that the likelihood that service entrepreneurs will
succeed at sustaining transformation depends on the specific combination of intra-
organizational procedures for administrative control and for accessing shared norms
of problem-solving.
Strategic Interaction Between Champions and Agents of Change
The process of institutionalizing a fundamentally new way of war begins with
the assignment of specific units (commanders) to supervise transformation. These
24 This argument draws on the insights from the literature on the new economics of
organization, and is adapted to explain the management of military innovation from Peter D.
Feaver, “Crisis as Shirking: An Agency Theory Explanation of the Souring of American Civil-
Military Relations,” Armed Forces & Society, 24:3 (Spring 1998), pp. 407-434; and Avant
(1994).
Managing Defense Transformation44
champions of change are formally charged with deciding on a new mix of exploration
and exploitation appropriate for the prevailing technology and task environments.
Professionally accountable to the High Command (and in many cases to respective
civilian authorities) for the “success” or “failure” of their units—both in terms of
the rationalization of defense expenditures and performance on the battlefield—they
have strong incentives to advance the service’s innovative capacity as well as its
efficiency at performing specified tasks. Accordingly, the commanders of change are
very sensitive to opportunities for sustaining new means and methods of war that will
allow them to achieve both goals simultaneously. Yet, entrepreneurial commanders
are neither omniscient, naïve, nor instrumentally myopic; their offices are limited in
the information and expertise regarding the final outputs of transformation, as well
as in the computational skills needed to make effective choices. As a consequence,
commanders are critically dependent on the input and performance provided by
subordinates that are closer to developments on the ground and control crucial
knowledge about the possibilities and limitations of new approaches for carrying out
specific organizational missions. Before embarking on the process of administering
reform, newly assigned supervisors must decide on the general scope and direction
of organizational change, even without knowing exactly where they are headed.
Thus, an important challenge before them is to devise effective administrative
control mechanisms that motivate subordinate offices to progressively define, refine,
and flesh out the practical implications of new directives that are otherwise general
and inchoate.25
In addition, the purveyors of change within a service look to external actors
to bolster their understanding of the likely fruits of transformation. They can be
swayed by new knowledge generated by civilian “experts;” pressures generated
by the overarching political, commercial, and social milieu; and by information
produced by competition among other commanders and services that also seek
to strike out new balances between exploration and exploitation in managing
respective units. These actors generate new ideas and understandings about future
technologies and possibilities of warfighting that principals can use to chart an initial
course for organizational change. The upshot is that commanders have an incentive
to innovate in dynamic technology and task environments, but only to the extent
that the possibilities and effectiveness of doing so are brought to their attention by
subordinates and/or outside pressures.
Upon striking a new balance between exploration and exploitation, commanders
must select a mechanism to monitor sub-unit compliance. One option is to monitor
intrusively. In practice, this requires that commanders micro-manage sub-unit
activities by identifying technologies relevant to performing discrete tasks, scripting
new procedures for wartime and peacetime exercises, supervising directly the
integration of new approaches into all phases of decisionmaking, and retaining large
staffs to police the behavior of sub-units down to the lowest level. This is a hands-
on, labor-intensive approach to oversight that is very reliable for communicating
25 Rosen (1991), pp. 19-20; and Mathew D. McCubbins, Roger D. Noll, and Barry R.
Weingast, “Administrative Procedures as Instruments of Political Control,” Journal of Law,
Economics, and Organization 3:2 (Fall 1987), pp. 246-250.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 45
and observing agency behavior. However, “police patrolling” imposes significant
direct and opportunity costs in terms of the allocation of scare time and resources.
Intrusive oversight compels commanders to sacrifice energy that could be used for
exploring technologies and approaches in order to devote more attention to the
details of effectively performing specific missions. It also risks increasing mistakes
caused by the meddling of commanders in areas outside of their expertise.26 These
problems are compounded when it comes to managing radical change where the
ends are intrinsically nebulous.
Alternatively, commanders can choose to monitor sub-unit performance
indirectly, relying on either outside input provided by civilian experts, the private
sector, and watchdog agencies, or information generated by competition among
rival sub-units. This is a less costly approach to oversight, as commanders can take
advantage of affected third parties (or “fire alarms”) with complementary interests
in detecting and reporting on the opportunism or insolence of agents. It also allows
for more energy to be devoted to exploring novel approaches to war. The drawback,
however, is that commanders become increasingly removed from the activity of sub-
units and potentially hostage to divergent interests of “third parties.”27 Monitoring
indirectly also comes at the expense of overseeing the full range of agent activities.
This renders superiors increasingly dependent upon crude performance indicators,
such as the procurement and acquisition of new technologies, and the creation of new
job titles. As discussed below, this hands-off approach to managing change affects
sub-unit calculations about the costs and benefits of giving priority to exploration
versus exploitation in responding to new directives. Thus, commanders strive to put
in place an optimal mix of the two forms of oversight that allows them to secure
proper control over subordinates while maximizing residual discretion devoted to
exploring new ways of war.
The third step in this process involves choices made at lower levels of the chain
of command. Once the supervisor settles on an appropriate mode of monitoring,
sub-units must decide how to react. They face a choice between strictly following
directives or undertaking different forms of shirking. The former entails doing exactly
what commanders ask for, how they ask for it, as well as performing new tasks with
due diligence and skill, and in a manner that reinforces the new balance between
exploration and exploitation struck by commanding offices. Vigilant compliance
also can be manifest in proactive measures to advance the cause of transformation.28
Conversely, sub-units can choose to shirk, either acting opportunistically to re-
interpret directives consistent with their own self-interests, or to sabotage new
directives, taking action to intentionally undermine transformational initiatives
from above. Unlike commanders, agents are concerned primarily with improving
the exploitation of established operations rather than with the exploration of new
technology and task environments. This conflict of interest is endemic to military
hierarchies, as sub-units stand to reap direct rewards for effectively performing
established tasks, on the one hand; while they bear the full costs but receive only
26 McCubbins and Schwartz (1984). See also discussion in Feaver (1998).
27 McCubbins and Schwartz (1984)
28 This is adapted directly from Feaver (1998).
Managing Defense Transformation46
partial benefits of implementing novel procedures, on the other hand. Moreover, when
an agent shirks by clutching to the exploitation of traditional operations and reducing
efforts towards the completion of novel tasks, the savings in effort accrue only to the
agent; the resulting losses of foregone innovation are borne collectively by the other
members of the organization. This fundamental asymmetry of incentives induces
agents to engage in some degree of shirking, irrespective of personal competence
or intentions.29
Three factors ultimately affect an agent’s decision to shirk. The first is related
to the asymmetry of information within service hierarchies. The more commanders
are dependent on agents for interpreting the significance of new technology and task
environments, the more vulnerable they are to the choices made by subordinates.
The second condition has to do with the extent of the conflict of interest between
upper- and lower-levels of decisionmaking, or the difference between what
commanders want agents to do and what sub-units would likely do anyway. The
smaller the difference between a commander’s call for exploration and an agent’s
understanding of the potential benefits of such action, the smaller the incentive to
shirk. Unconvinced of the appropriateness of the direction that they are headed,
the more recalcitrant the agency response. The third factor is related to how agents
expect commanders to respond to shirking. The more likely a principal is to follow
through on threats of punishment for shirking, the greater the incentives agents have
to comply with directives for change.
The final choice in this simple model of managing transformation involves the
reaction by commanders to agency compliance, shirking, or sabotage. This entails
an acknowledgement of vigilant compliance or the detection of opportunistic or
subversive behavior, as well as a subsequent decision by a commander to follow
through with respective rewards or punishment. Given the asymmetry of information
between principals and agents and the high costs of intrusive oversight, commanders
must contend with problems of adverse selection, as they risk promoting sub-units
with limited convictions for change, thus generating incentives for sub-optimal
compliance. Similarly, limits to observing sub-units raise problems of moral
hazard, as commanders must rely on proxy measures of performance that can be
manipulated to redirect sub-unit behavior towards specific indicators other than the
desired transformational behavior.
Furthermore, the decision to reward compliance or punish shirking/sabotage is
not self-evident, as there are direct and indirect costs involved. The promotion of
vigilant agents can potentially create a void that may be difficult to fill. During the
time it will take to retrain and coordinate successor agents, a principal risks losing
momentum for change. Although there are tangible benefits in terms of “correcting”
the implementation of directives and deterring future shirking or dissention by
other agents, a commander must divert time and resources to intervening at lower
decisionmaking levels to reverse opportunism. The incentive to punish varies with
the salience of the issue (and degree of infraction) to the changes desired by senior
officers. Commanders also must take care to issue credible threats of punishment,
and to avoid overreacting in a manner that may discourage desirable and proactive
29 Alchian and Demsetz (1972).
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 47
forms of creativity and flexibility that are necessary for coping with dynamic
technology and task environments. In addition, while commanders retain authority
to set boundaries for acceptable behavior and to interpret the implementation of
policy guidelines, their responses ultimately are constrained by what actors inside
the organization tell them and deem appropriate. Thus, the probability of effectively
rewarding or punishing agents is a function of the costs of: detecting compliance,
opportunism or defiance; mobilizing sufficient resources to reward compliance or
reverse “independent” behavior; and diverting energy from alternative priorities.
The result is a dynamic process in which imperfectly informed principals and
agents interact to determine a military organization’s response to new technologies
and tasks. It is the potential for opportunism, fostered by information asymmetries
and conflicts of interest between commanders and sub-units, that makes it difficult
to sustain new means and methods of war. Although responsible for striking a new
balance between exploration and exploitation, commanders confront high costs
of directly observing and controlling the implementation of new directives. If not
careful, they risk paying the price of adverse selection, taking cues for innovation
from risk-averse sub-units in order to compensate for information deficiencies.
On the other hand, agents have a structural incentive to shirk, as they are directly
affected by the challenges of implementing new directives and stand to benefit more
from successful exploitation than from exploration. If left unabated, this generates
problems of moral hazard, with agents retaining incentives to redirect behavior from
acting creatively to meeting the crude performance targets specified by commanders
who are otherwise limited in their capacities to observe directly their actual behavior.30
Consequently, the prospects for honing and sustaining true military transformation
are fundamentally linked to the internal mechanisms put in place to manage the
choices involved in formulating and implementing new directives.
In light of asymmetries in authority, interests, and expertise between principals and
agents, as well as the objective uncertainty of pursuing unproven means and methods
of war, how can service supervisors contain the agency costs of transformation? How
can they mitigate the adverse selection and moral hazard problems that confound
hierarchical decisionmaking, and increase the likelihood that sub-units will comply
by using their residual autonomy to sustain exploration? To answer these questions
we need to understand the procedural and normative conditions that affect the
alignment of incentives and inclinations for sustaining transformation up and down
a service hierarchy.
Procedural Remedies
The principal-agent literature suggests that there are both direct and indirect
procedures that can mitigate monitoring and enforcement problems of managing
organizational change. Given gaps in hierarchical control, one obvious solution is
to “dangle the residual,” offering material and professional rewards that encourage
30 Oliver E. Williamson, Markets and Hierarchies (New York: Free Press, 1975); and
Terry M. Moe, “The New Economics of Organization,” American Journal of Political Science
28:4 (November 1984), pp. 739-777.
Managing Defense Transformation48
transformation. As argued by Stephen Rosen, a highly effective manner to ingrain the
intellectual and organizational dimensions of change is to create new promotional
pathways that advance the careers of those who accomplish new tasks. 31 Yet new
promotional pathways, though necessary, are not sufficient to transcend the agency
costs of managing change. In particular, information asymmetries encourage
agents to embrace reform initiatives only up to the point that the material reward is
extended. This tends to produce “short-term winners” of reform with vested interests
in withholding efforts at transformation beyond that which is formally required. This
can lead to premature “lock in” on new tasks, as agents rewarded early for carrying
out limited change subsequently acquire a veto over future decisions to perpetuate
organizational change. Accordingly, the primary managerial challenge does not
turn on outflanking the intra-organizational opponents of change, as much as on
sustaining the impetus for transformation in the face of efforts by early winners to
preserve the partial reforms that elevated their status in the first place.32
A second problem with focusing exclusively on material incentives and the
formation of new promotional pathways is that there are traditionally multiple
avenues for agents to rise up through the ranks within an organization to become an
admiral or general. In practice, the creation of billets associated with the performance
of new tasks may simply compete at a disadvantage with more established pathways.
This is especially problematic when new assignments are merely grafted onto
traditional billets and duties with more established constituencies and powerful
patrons within the service. Ultimately, material motivations for agency compliance
with new directives are affected by where professional pathways are situated within
the broader institutional incentive structure of the service.33
Given these caveats, there are three supplementary procedural features
that condition the potency of material inducements for advancing the cause of
organizational change. The first parameter pertains to the interface between
the service’s traditional and new career pathways that shape the desirability of
promoting change. It is not sufficient simply to reward agents for undertaking new
tasks or to grant access to new autonomous billets. Insulating new billets from core
organizational promotional pathways makes it more difficult for the officeholders
to coordinate and gain recognition within the broader organization.34 What matters
31 Rosen (1991), pp. 20-21.
32 This is derived from an analysis of the institutional constraints on the political
decisions to embark on market transition in Joel S. Hellman, “Winners Take All: The Politics
of Partial Reform in Postcommunist Transitions,” World Politics 50:2 (1998), pp. 203-234.
The authors extend special thanks to Alexei Shevchenko for drawing attention to the relevance
of this discussion.
33 Avant makes a similar observation that promotional policies cannot be interpreted
in an institutional vacuum. She, however, focuses on the broader institutional context that
regulates civil-military relations, as opposed to our focus on the intra-service institutional
context. Avant (1994), p. 17.
34 On the problems of insulation versus integration of new offices within the broader
organizational structure, see especially Daniel Drezner, “Ideas, Bureaucratic Politics, and the
Crafting of Foreign Policy,” American Journal of Political Science, 44:4 (October 2000), pp.
736-737.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 49
is that new promotional tracks open opportunities for rising to the top of a service.
The benefits of pursuing transformation do not come from the mere creation of new
service hierarchies or alternative postings, but derive from how well these new
offices complement core lines of promotion and serve as instruments for moving new
cadres up through traditional ranks. The trick, however, is to open new pathways to
established senior ranks without facilitating premature defection from new posts.35
From this we can deduce that the closer that incentives for performing new tasks are
tied to an organization’s core chain of promotion—as indicated by the integration
of formal rewards and promotional pathways within a service—the stronger the
incentive to innovate. Conversely, where such rewards are distinct or preclude
mainstream advancement within the organization, sub-units will be discouraged
from fully embracing new ways of war.
A second procedural parameter relates to the clarity of formal responsibility
among the agents of change. The costs of direct monitoring (police patrols) are
lower when there are clear lines of authority and a clear set of relationships between
different sub-units throughout a military hierarchy. The delineation of discrete
mandates among sub-units makes it easier for both principals and agents to calculate
probabilities and to understand the results of different decisions. It also gives agents
a partial stake in modifying behavior in response to changing external and technical
requirements.36 This improves the transparency of organizational operations both
across different levels of hierarchy and among specific-sub groupings. Conversely,
the proliferation of redundant or ambiguous responsibilities creates opportunities
to hide information and encourage behavior at lower levels of decisionmaking that
together raise the cost of uncovering shirking within an organization. Ill-defined
and ambiguously delegated authority at best muddles an agent’s commitment to
upholding the interests of a principal.37
Similarly, the coherence of informal structures and mandates bears directly on
the efficacy of promoting and sustaining specific military innovations. Typically,
ad hoc groups have leeway to address specific problems by operating outside of
formal structures. According to several scholars, it is precisely the flexibility to
mitigate performance shortfalls that renders “ad hocism” crucial to the absorption
of new technologies and methods of warfare.38 The problem, however, is that ad
hoc structures tend to be marred by ambiguous and fluid reporting relationships, as
well as by poorly defined job responsibilities. As a result, they are prone to foster
problems of moral hazard due to the unobservability of actual behavior and the
necessary reliance on crude measures of oversight. Members of an ad hoc group have
an incentive to restrict compliance with directives for innovation to the fulfillment of
35 The authors thank Colonel Thomas Ehrhard for this point.
36 On the importance of the clarity of institutional decision rules and the choice of
actors, see especially the general discussion in Ronald Rogowski, “Institutions as Constraints
on Strategic Choice,” in David A. Lake and Robert Powell, eds., Strategic Choice and
International Relations (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1999), pp. 127.
37 Alchian and Demsetz (1972); and Jones (1983), p. 460.
38 Mark D. Mandeles, Organizational Structures to Exploit the Revolution in Military
Affairs (Fairfax, VA: The J. de Bloch Group, January 2000).
Managing Defense Transformation50
specific proxy measures, and stand to benefit little from institutionalizing changes that
require sustained actions that are not directly apparent to commanders. In contrast,
those informal or quasi-formal structures that are sanctioned by the organization and
that complement formal reporting arrangements and career paths tend to reduce the
costs of shirking.39 Informal groupings that combine the clarity of formal structures
with the direct engagement of commanders and the flexibility to address specific
problems that cut across internal boundaries are more transparent to the upper-
levels of management of an organization. Consequently, there is less need for senior
military officials to rely on crude proxy performance measures, and more incentive
for sub-units to follow through by fleshing out new operational procedures.40
A third, complementary set of parameters that eases fire alarm oversight is related
to procedural mechanisms governing access to external information and competition
within an organization. In general, indirect monitoring is less costly and more reliable
when principals can create multiple avenues of access for competing sub-units. By
fostering competition among rival services and sub-units, and by opening the lines of
communication, senior military officers can establish incentives and venues for agents
to distinguish themselves and to report on the performance of rivals at lower-levels.
This becomes more efficient when directives for incorporating new technologies
and tasks apply to multiple sub-units and external actors, and the absorption of new
functions carries spillover-effects for these different actors.41 Conversely, the absence
of competition from below or alternative outlets for reporting, in effect, deprive
principals of surrogate forms of low cost oversight. Thus, the wider the potential
diffusion of new technologies and tasks within and across military hierarchies, the
more cost-effective it is for principals to rely on sub-unit or inter-service competition
as an indirect mechanism for managing innovation.
Under certain circumstances, shielding or insulating organizational sub-units
that carry out change can attenuate agency costs. The more specific the requirements
for innovation and the more specialized the skills and knowledge needed for
implementing change (i.e. the more idiosyncratic the process of innovation), the more
important it is for sub-units to be insulated from competition with rival groupings
and to possess clear mandates for carrying out new tasks.42 Insulated agents of change
typically enjoy relatively more autonomy and stable resource allocation than do rival
offices within the broader organizational structure.43 These advantages are especially
39 Rosen (1991).
40 Claudia Bird Schoonhoven and Mariann Jelinek, “Dynamic Tension in Innovative,
High Technology Firms: Managing Rapid Technological Change Through Organizational
Structure,” in M. Von Glinow and S. Mohram, eds., Managing Complexity in High Technology
Organizations (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1990), pp. 90-118.
41 Williamson (1975).
42 This is adapted from the logic of “asset specificity” provided by Williamson (1975).
See also Benjamin Klein, Robert G. Crawford, and Armen Alchian, “Vertical Integration,
Appropriable Rents, and the Competitive Contracting Process,” Journal of Law and Economics
21:2 (October 1978), pp. 297-326; and Oliver E. Williamson, “Transaction-Cost Economics:
The Governance of Contractual Relations,” in Steven G. Medema, ed., Journal of Law and
Economics 22:1 (1979), pp. 233-261.
43 Drezner (2000), p. 736.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 51
important in transaction-specific technology and task domains, as sub-units require
assurances that the fulfillment of unique and complex contingencies associated with
a specific innovation will be rewarded by commanders in order to be encouraged to
invest in and sustain long-term efforts at undertaking organizational change. In this
context, the incentives for agents to act opportunistically are diminished, since an
agent might not have another consumer of its innovations besides its own principal.
Moreover, to elicit appropriate change requires that principals continue to reward
sub-unit compliance even after agents have incurred initial failure or sunk costs of
undertaking reform. Competition with other sub-units here can undermine confidence
that the interactions and rewards needed to meet idiosyncratic tasks will be secured,
thus reducing the stakes of individual sub-units in the outcome of organizational
change and raising the incentives for shirking.
Managerial Norms
Even under ideal conditions, incentive-schemes alone cannot root out non-compliance.
It simply costs too much in time, effort, and resources for principals to ride herd over
agents to ensure that they diligently apply residual discretion towards transformation.44
In stable environments, where there are few externally- or internally-generated
pressures to perform non-routine tasks, lingering gaps in oversight are not necessarily
devastating. Organizations with well-defined divisions of authority and standardized
practices generate stable expectations that over time increase the value of continuity
among interacting sub-units that can smooth over marginal goal incongruity among
principals and agents.45 These omissions are very problematic, however, when it
comes to managing transformation where both the external and internal demands
on principals and agents are in flux. Faced with dramatic changes in technology
and task environments, principals must cope with even greater uncertainty about
the meaning and direction of organizational change. Although policy entrepreneurs
may settle on the importance of change, shifting strategic opportunities, technical
possibilities, and conceptual understandings associated with new ways of warfare
make it difficult to stipulate coherent directives for implementation beyond either a
perfunctory or generic call for change. The incentives and opportunities for shirking
grow as agents confront demands for performing novel, vague and highly variable
non-routine tasks. In this situation, limitations on institutional oversight compound
what are already very high transaction costs of managing change.46
Recognizing that formal institutional mechanisms of oversight alone do not
suffice, scholars increasingly look to organizational culture to fill the gap. William
Ouchi and Gareth Jones, for example, argue that shared norms and beliefs play
especially important roles in reducing the costs of supervising the performance of
new tasks. Out of a clearly defined set of property rights among principals and agents
44 Brehm and Gates (1997), p. 17.
45 Charles Perrow, Organizational Analysis: A Sociological View (Belmont, CA:
Wadsworth Press, 1970); and William Ouchi, “Markets, Bureaucracies, and Clans,”
Administrative Science Quarterly, 25 (1980), pp. 129-141.
46 Jones (1983), pp. 458-461; and Dougherty (1996), p. 426.
Managing Defense Transformation52
can emerge a professional culture in which organizational actors share ideas and
beliefs about what constitutes appropriate behavior. This professionalism facilitates
reciprocal monitoring to augment hierarchical supervision, as well as the emergence
of shared norms and values to reinforce formal procedures. “The use of sophisticated
socialization programs in the training of professional employees may also be seen
as a way of economizing on transaction costs, since the internalization of norms and
values provides employees with a common language with which to enact events
and regulate the exchange relationship.”47 Others point to the pivotal role of shared
norms and ideas for overcoming agency problems when there are multiple equilibria
to the strategic interaction between principals and agents. Shared attitudes and ideas
can serve as “focal points” around which the perceptions of organizational actors
converge that pave the way for internal coordination and common approaches to
new circumstances.48 In keeping with the main focus on principal-agent structures
and transaction costs, these insights offer a conceptual bridge between the material
and non-material features of organizational oversight and compliance.49
Which normative attributes are decisive for minimizing the agency costs of
military transformation? The extant literature, for example, draws special attention
to the consequences of “strong” organizational culture—defined as “those norms
and values that are widely shared and intensely held throughout the organization”—
for the effectiveness of organizations at performing tasks in stable environments.50
Many argue that there is a positive link between strong culture and effectiveness,
as the former can facilitate goal convergence, define the appropriateness of certain
behavioral norms, and unify motives across all levels of hierarchy.51 Others discern
that strong cultures predispose organizations towards greater reliability in the face of
environmental change. The homogeneity of beliefs within the organization offers a
common template that makes performance more consistent. This improves collective
resilience towards a mission amid changing external circumstances. In short,
strong cultures reduce differences in values and clarify goals that, in turn, render
performance more reliable. Conversely, still other scholars note that internal strength
becomes a liability for meeting the challenges of performing radically new tasks.
Strong cultures are just as likely to narrow perceptions and displace incongruous
data. Organizations that embody strong cultures are less prone to acclimating to
fundamentally new requirements for change, as they are ill-suited to foster learning
47 Jones (1993), p. 464; Ouchi (1980); and Alan L. Wilkins and William G. Ouchi,
“Efficient Cultures: Exploring the Relationship Between Culture and Organizational
Performance,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 28 (1983), p. 471.
48 Kreps (1990); Gary J. Miller, Managerial Dilemmas: The Political Economy of
Hierarchy (New York: Cambridge University Press, 1992); and Geoffrey Garrett and Barry R.
Weingast, “Ideas, Interests, and Institutions: Constructing the European Community’s Internal
Market,” in Judith Goldstein and Robert O. Keohane, eds., Ideas & Foreign Policy: Beliefs,
Institutions, and Political Change (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1993), pp. 173-206.
49 Brehm and Gates (1997), pp. 18-22.
50 Jesper B. Sorensen, “The Strength of Corporate Culture and the Reliability of Firm
Performance,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 47 (2002), p. 72.
51 J. P. Kotter an J.L. Heskett, Corporate Culture and Performance (New York: Free
Press, 1992); and Kreps (1991). See also review in Sorensen (2002), pp. 72-73.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 53
and strong “counter-cultures” needed to embed novel ideas and methods within the
unit.52 For organizational transformation to occur, members must first reinterpret
the organization’s mission in light of new opportunities or fears for survival, thus
experiencing a cultural change.
As evidenced in the military context, some organizations with strong cultures
and clearly defined missions handle environmental flux better than others. In the
cases of the U.S. Navy and Air Force, the dominant service cultures that privileged
big gun ships and manned aircraft, respectively, did not prevent the radical
transformation to carrier and missile warfare.53 However, in the case of the U.S.
Army, the strong cultural affinity to maximizing firepower and the deployment of
large-scale mechanized units stymied efforts to adapt to the demands for counter-
insurgency warfare in fighting unconventional enemies in the Third World.54 These
contrasting examples suggest that the strength of an organization’s culture might
mean less than its content for mediating gaps between internal incentive structures
and transformational behavior.
Added to the confusion is that there are different dimensions to organizational
culture, aside from perceptions about missions and goals, that generate different
types of shared values and understandings of appropriate behavior. Edward Schein,
for example, draws distinctions between artifacts (visible organizational processes
and behavioral regularities), espoused values (goals), and the basic underlying
assumptions that “actually guide behavior and tell members how to perceive, think
about, and feel about things.”55 As reviewed in chapter 1, other scholars breakdown
the cultural core to its constitutive and regulative dimensions that ascribe related
functional attributes to shared identities, ideologies, core values, rules of the game,
standards of behavior, habits of thinking, and axiomatic knowledge. Although there
is a general consensus that organizational culture is defined by elements of stability
and integration, a culture’s essence is multidimensional and can affect the variety of
ways members collectively think about themselves and their environment, as well as
pattern different aspects of their behavior.56 Thus, while culture has been implicated
52 Sorensen (2002), pp. 75-87; and Barry A. Turner, “The Organizational and Inter-
Organizational Development of Disasters,” Administrative Science Quarterly 21:3 (1976), pp.
378-397.
53 See especially Robert L. O’Connell, Sacred Vessels: The Cult of the Battleship and
the Rise of the U.S. Navy (New York: Oxford University Press, 1991); Edward Rhodes, “Sea
Change: Interest-Based vs. Cognitive-Cultural Accounts of Strategic Choice in the 1880s,”
Security Studies 5:4 (Summer 1996), pp. 73-124; and Edmund Beard, Developing the ICBM
(New York: Columbia University Press, 1976).
54 Andrew F. Krepinevich, Jr., The Army in Viet Nam (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins
University Press, 1986).
55 Edward Schein, Organizational Culture and Leadership (San Francisco: Jossey-
Bass Publishers, 1992), p. 22
56 See especially discussion in Sonja A. Sackmann, “Culture and Subcultures: An
Analysis of Organizational Knowledge,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 37 (1992), pp.
140-161; Stanley Davis, Managing Corporate Cultures (Cambridge: Ballinger Press, 1984);
and Mariann Jelinek, Linda Smircich, and Paul Hirsch, “Introduction: Code of Many Colors,”
Administrative Science Quarterly, 28 (1983), pp. 331-338; and Linda Smircich, “Concepts of
Managing Defense Transformation54
as a potential explanation for redressing lingering agency costs, which aspects of an
organization’s normative template or which sub-cultures matter most to complement
procedural mechanisms of oversight remain largely unexplained.
Just as there is no such thing as an “immaculate innovation,” as purely novel
ideas cannot register without institutional preconditions, new administrative
forms cannot root out old practices without an element of “common knowledge”
within an organization. For innovations to diffuse effectively, their content must
be communicated in a manner that forges understanding among organizational
actors with different responsibilities. Otherwise, innovations can go undetected,
as well as unrewarded.57 This presents a dilemma for managing major change.
Without invoking a collective understanding of transformation, entrepreneurial
principals risk devoting scarce resources to micromanaging sub-units or succumbing
to information asymmetries at the expense of exploring change. By clutching to
a strong sense of organizational mission or well-defined goals, they may never
appreciate the opportunity for novel change, nor have the capacity to implement
an innovation if realized.58 One way out of this paradox is to appeal directly to
shared professional norms about framing and solving problems.59 Enlisting common
procedural understandings can facilitate acceptance among agents to perform ill
defined and incompletely rewarded new tasks without prematurely bumping up
against the organization’s substantive identity and goals.60
One dimension of organizational culture that pertains to agency costs relates
to shared understandings about appropriate methods for creative problem-solving.
Among the many different elements to culture are shared mental maps that determine
how members of a group relate to each other, interpret the prevailing physical and
social realms, acquire new knowledge, define and assess problems, take pragmatic
action, and pursue truth. Some refer to this set of beliefs as comprised of shared
Culture and Organizational Analysis,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 28 (1983), pp. 339-
358.
57 Everett M. Rogers, Diffusion of Innovations 5th Edition (New York: Free Press,
2003), pp. 18-19.
58 This corresponds to the problem of managing “sustainable” versus “disruptive”
military innovations described in Captain Terry C. Pierce, Warfighting and Disruptive
Technologies: Disguising Innovation (London: Frank Cass, 2004), pp. 20-28.
59 Here, the force of shared beliefs derives from their administrative utility, as
opposed to their intrinsic compatibility with a novel way of war. Kreps (1990); and Garrett
and Weingast (1993), pp. 181-185. Whereas these authors treat ideas as “focal points” for
coordinating expectations among multiple solutions for cooperation, our formulation treats
them as salient for reducing agency costs in hierarchical administrative relations. Unlike these
authors, we emphasize the special importance of ideas for managing disparities in power
among organizational actors.
60 This draws on Jones (1983), pp. 454-467; Andrew B. Hargadon and Yellowlees
Douglas, “When Innovations Meet Institutions: Edison and the Design of the Electric Light,”
Administrative Science Quarterly 46 (2001), pp. 476-501; and Wilkens and Ouchi (1983),
pp. 468-481. This is distinguished from accounts that treat culture as a decisive independent
variable that automatically specifies means for carrying out tasks within an organization
without the instrumental action by entrepreneurs.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 55
assumptions of reality and human nature; others define it as “directory knowledge”
that “delineates the ‘how’ of things and events, and their processes, such as how a
specific problem is solved in a given organization or what people actually do to be
promoted.”61 Still others refer to these beliefs as organizational frames that structure
how members collectively identify, represent, and solve problems that, in turn, form
the basis for how the organization acquires knowledge about its environment and
establishes routines to contain such knowledge.62 We refer to these traits collectively
as comprising an organization’s managerial norms, defined as understandings of
appropriate means and methods for internal interaction and clarifying and solving
problems shared throughout an organization. These concepts are distinguished
from constitutive or regulative norms, as they pertain specifically to the means by
which issues are defined and evaluated. A particular managerial norm is manifest in
accepted standards of evidence, criteria, and metrics (qualitative or quantitative) that
members use to present arguments and assess performance; special competencies
that members display to approach and fulfill tasks; mental templates or rules of
thumb that guide members in interpreting, analyzing, and acting on new information;
and collective affinities for centralization and flexibility of command structures.
These elements provide common analytical referents that members are socialized
into accepting for guiding the everyday business of communicating, interacting, and
problem-solving that are distinct from assumptions and knowledge about specific
identities and strategic missions.63
Managerial norms are especially important for closing the monitoring gap in the
performance of non-routine tasks. First, they provide a common analytical prism for
measuring, assessing, and legitimating new ideas and behavior across different levels
within an organization. Managerial norms can provide the basis for a “reasoned
consensus” about the meaning of innovative ideas and technologies.64 Clarity
61 Sackmann (1992), p. 142; Schein (1992), pp. 94-143. See also Ann Swidler, “Culture
in Action: Symbols and Strategies,” American Sociological Review 51 (April 1986).
62 Lynn Eden, Whole World on Fire: Organizations, Knowledge, and Nuclear Weapons
Devastation (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2004), pp. 49-57; and Edwin Hutchins, “How
a Cockpit Remembers its Speed,” Cognitive Science 19 (1995), pp. 265-288.
63 Eden (2004), pp. 37-60; and Kier (1997), pp. 31-32; and Wilkins and Ouchi (1983),
p. 471. The emphasis on procedural norms and shared beliefs on the means of action draws
on insights from Swidler (1986). Whereas Eden links “organizational frames” to the social
construction of organizational knowledge and constitutive norms, I draw attention to the
implications that such professional norms hold for generating intra-organizational trust and
inclinations to comply or shirk responsibilities for performing non-routine tasks. Therefore in
my account, such norms do not have to change to cause shifts in the organization’s strategic
behavior or substantive identity or culture. and
64 Thomas Risse, “Let’s Argue: Communicative Action in World Politics,” International
Organization 54:1 (Winter 2000), pp. 11-14. The main purpose of enlisting managerial
norms is to communicate and validate claims needed to generate common knowledge about
an innovation. This contrasts with other arguments that feature adjacent norms for either
deceiving or shaming other members to acquiesce to organizational change. See especially
Pierce (2004); and Frank Schmimelfennig, “The Community Trap: Liberal Norms, Rhetorical
Action, and the Eastern Enlargement of the European Union,” International Organization 55
(Winter 2001), pp. 47-80.
Managing Defense Transformation56
about where and how to begin assessing novel action allows for the convergence
of judgments not only about which type of behavior is proper, but which analytical
arguments and conclusions are justified to support those conclusions. In this respect,
managerial norms assist with validating claims by offering common evidentiary
standards for measuring performance and assessing the appropriateness of new
technologies and operations. They serve as common referents for processing and
evaluating new data that can be used to legitimate new ideas and align preferences
up and down a military service. Invoking managerial norms constitutes an accepted
“ritual” within an organization that signal to others the potential fruitfulness of
otherwise unknown or unobservable behavior.65 This significantly eases the burden
of defending new positions to superiors, as well as provides a sound basis for
competing against rival policy positions.
Second, an instrumental sensitivity to common professional norms of intra-
organizational communication and accepted analytical referents can build trust.
Tapping into managerial norms provides an important normative crutch for bolstering
the credibility and commitment to sustaining transformational steps when objective
realities are ambiguous and evidence of the success or failure of initial reform is
unclear. By framing adjustments consistent with existing professional judgments of
appropriate problem-solving, principals can make it easier for agents to “visceralize”
new directions for policy, even when transformational objectives are neither shared
nor obvious.66
Finally, common professional norms increase the consistency among approaches
for navigating uncertain paths. Where there is broad agreement on acceptable norms
of communication and interaction, violations of behavioral norms are more easily
detected. Shared professional norms and expectations reduce transaction costs of
oversight by generating an impulse for self-monitoring. Not only does this ease
hierarchical supervision and reciprocal monitoring among rival sub-groups, but
common notions of appropriateness provide agents with benchmarks for judging their
own actions and the legitimacy of shirking.67 Thus, by invoking shared managerial
norms, policy entrepreneurs can make new directives seem more familiar at all
levels of the organization, and manipulate how agents understand change and use
their residual autonomy.68
The ability of military entrepreneurs to tap into the core managerial norms of
the service can pay significant dividends for mitigating the residual agency costs of
supervising transformation. Enlisting managerial norms matters for inclining both
commanders and agents to share in their approaches to making sense out of new
possibilities for change, notwithstanding the uncertainty of technology and task
environments and different distributions of intra-organizational power, incentives,
65 Michael Suk-Young Chwe, Rational Ritual (Princeton: Princeton University Press,
2001), pp. 3-19.
66 On the motivational attributes of organizational culture, see especially C. A. O’Reilly,
“Corporations, Culture, and Commitment: Motivation and Social Control in Organizations,”
California Management Review, 31:4 (1989), pp. 9-25; and Dougherty (1996), pp. 434-435.
67 Jones (1983), p. 464; and Wilkens and Ouchi, (1983), p. 471.
68 Dougherty (1996), p. 434.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 57
and even strategic visions. Shared professional norms provide common knowledge
that galvanize principals and agents to reach similar conclusions for striking out a
new balance between exploration and exploitation. As Elizabeth Kier demonstrates
in her study of the inter-war French and British armies, intra-service dogmatism
about the appropriateness of certain methods of organization, such as centralized
command structures, conscription, and relations between ranks, played crucial roles
in shaping choices between offensive and defensive doctrines.69 General acceptance
of managerial methods and evidentiary standards allows commander and sub-units
to speak the same language in assessing new information and events. Attuned to
the same method for solving problems and realizing opportunities, sub-units are
predisposed to disclose and gather information useful for developing a credible
knowledge base for commanders to draw on in support of a proposed innovation.
Conversely, the more that inter-subjective understandings of how best to interpret
new technological and task environments diverge among principals and agents, the
wider the gap in preferences for change, and the stronger incentives there are for
sub-units to remain wedded to traditional tasks and shirking new responsibilities.
Because those directives for innovation that do not speak to core managerial norms
of the organization generally encounter more resistance from below, successful
implementation requires more intrusive intervention from above. Yet, the greater
the need to micromanage change, the greater the opportunity cost of exploring new
ways of war. From this perspective, managerial norms do not dictate the course of
change; rather, if accessed, they can serve as an important adjunct to institutional
control mechanisms, facilitating or impeding effective management of military
transformation by altering inclinations to shirk and the legitimacy of compliance.
Hypotheses
The discussion above suggests that a successful transformational strategy turns on
the interaction between the material incentives that it embodies and the extent to
which it embraces prevailing managerial norms. Certain combinations of material
incentives and norms are likely to encourage continued exploration across a service
hierarchy. Others are likely to increase agency costs, retarding or even subverting the
introduction of a new way of war.
Figure 2.2 summarizes the core hypotheses for management strategies that
synthesize material control mechanisms with norms of professionalism within a
military service. Neither factor is sufficient by itself to explain the variation in the
internal traction of new ways of war. All else equal, military transformation will be
successfully institutionalized when entrepreneurial commanders employ strategies
that allow them to devote more resources to discovering and defining new ways
of war than to directly supervising sub-units, and that leave sub-units with little
69 Kier (1997). While both our argument and Kier’s emphasize the importance of
organizational culture for explaining change, we stress how shared managerial beliefs affect
agency costs within mechanisms of intra-organizational oversight, while Kier focuses on
how shared beliefs condition how military organizations react to changes in the external
environment.
Managing Defense Transformation58
incentive to resist carrying out new directives and inclined to devote their residual
autonomy to advancing interests in exploration. As depicted in the upper-left cell,
transformation is most likely to be vigilantly sustained when clearly delineated
institutional mechanisms of oversight are reinforced by concerted efforts to lodge
exploration within the service’s traditional understandings of creative problem-
solving. In this situation, both the savings on supervision and residual autonomy
can be readily channeled towards exploration across different levels of hierarchy.
Conversely, the lower-right cell captures administrative conditions conducive for
sabotage and active resistance to transformation. In this context, an entrepreneurial
commanding staff must devote a disproportionate amount of resources not only to
monitor opportunistic implementation of new directives, but to hold in check sub-
unit initiatives to circumvent what are otherwise regarded as inappropriate methods
and means of warfare.
In between the polar cases are conditions ripe for promoting either the status
quo or incremental adjustments to changing technology and task environments.
In these scenarios, sub-units lack either incentives or inclinations to embrace new
directions. Given the room for opportunism intrinsic to both managerial strategies,
the respective services can be expected to act more as followers than leaders in
coping with technology and task environments. The upper-right cell reflects those
intra-organizational situations where the institutional mechanisms of oversight are
muddled, effectively reducing the incentives for compliance with new directives, but
where agents share a common vision about the appropriate means for defining and
pursuing transformation. The result is hedging and drawn out agency responses to
new directives. Though it may be possible to broker radical change, the process will
be protracted, marked by gradual shifts along different dimensions of behavior. By
contrast, the lower-left cell depicts those scenarios where the main impediment to
transformation is related to the accessibility and content of the service’s traditional
Sabotage / StasisFoot-dragging /
Resistance to radical
change
Hedging / Deliberate
Change
Vigilant
Transformation
Sabotage / StasisFoot-dragging /
Resistance to radical
change
Hedging / Deliberate
Change
Vigilant
TransformationAccessed
Managerial Norms
Neglected
Clear Unclear
Procedural Oversight
Accessed
Managerial Norms
Neglected
Accessed
Managerial Norms
Neglected
Clear Unclear
Procedural Oversight
Clear Unclear
Procedural Oversight
Figure 2.2 Managerial Strategies and Compliance
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 59
managerial norms. While clearly delineated institutional mechanisms sufficiently
reduce the agency costs to sustaining adaptation, gaps in common knowledge of
the appropriateness of change discourage sub-units from applying their residual
autonomy to advance the cause of transformation beyond what they are directly
rewarded for undertaking. Given the limits to supervision, marginal improvements in
tightening oversight and increasing material incentives will not encourage sub-units
to fully embrace transformation, and may even lead them to derail initial advances.
The likely result is foot-dragging and resistance towards blazing innovative trails.
Testing the Argument
Testing the modified agency framework of military transformation first requires
identifying operational measures for the respective variables that are independent
of each other. The extent to which new technologies and new primary missions
accumulate and are integrated into new training procedures and organizational
structures is used as the indicator of transformation. Successful transformation
results when advances along all these parameters are synthesized into a new way
of war. This is an internal organizational matter that involves coordination of
multiple activities; success is not a reflection of performance on the battlefield or a
function solely of the introduction of a new idea, technology, or tactic of warfighting.
Alternatively, incremental shifts along different policy dimensions (i.e. technology,
strategy, tactics, etc.) are regarded as part of a hedging strategy. The failure to absorb
new technologies and to codify doctrinal revisions in established procedures for
training and wartime deployments represents foot-dragging. Finally, sabotage is
indicated by active measures undertaken by military sub-units to lobby against or to
embrace alternatives to change along any one parameter.
To operationalize the agency costs of managing transformation, we start by
examining the formal institutional distribution of authority and oversight. First, we
measure policy incentives by the character of formal mandates. The extent to which
entrepreneurial offices are charged with implementing change is a function of their
formal responsibilities and scope of authority over sub-units. Similarly, we examine
the specificity of tasks that are delegated to sub-units to comprehend respective
interests in exploitation versus exploration. Second we assess the efficacy of direct
oversight mechanisms by examining a combination of formal reporting requirements,
the clarity by which new task directives are specified, and the material incentives
tied to the performance of new tasks. With respect to the latter, we turn to the formal
organizational structure to discern official pathways of promotion and the institutional
link between the core chain of promotion and performance success registered in new
organizational offices. This is augmented by a review of the personal histories of
the champions of change to gain an understanding of the practical value of different
avenues for promotion. In addition, we explore the efficacy of indirect institutional
checks (fire alarms) on sub-units by analyzing the extent to which sub-units or inter-
service rivals are formally positioned against each other with competitive mandates
and have access to independent channels for reporting to immediate supervisors.
This includes mechanisms put in place to regularize exchanges of information
Managing Defense Transformation60
between sub-units across services, and between outside political actors (via official
testimony) and private actors (via formal contracting and oversight stipulations).
Finally, we measure the effectiveness of informal and ad hoc control mechanism
by analyzing the personal exchanges between and among rival commanders and
sub-units.
Managerial norms are uncovered by analyzing respective attitudes, beliefs, and
norms pertaining to problem-solving held by officers across intra-service divisions.
We measure professional attitudes by examining the assumptions and metrics used to
structure and evaluate experimentation, training exercises, interpretation of historical
lessons, and presentation and rationalization of policy initiatives. We also draw on
both the memorial and secondary literature to gain insights into how officers assessed
the appropriateness of specific issues related to basic organizational structure. This
specifically includes attitudes towards centralization/decentralization of command,
flexibility and initiative at lower echelons, and qualitative versus quantitative
indicators of training and battlefield performance. The focus on managerial norms,
as opposed to strategic beliefs, eases the problem of separating the defining traits
of organizational culture from the substantive outcomes of transformation. Given
that the relevant normative features reflect attitudes towards the means not ends
of reform, this also reduces the chance of conflating the impact of cultural with
institutional mechanisms of oversight.
The comparative case method structures our preliminary test of the propositions
advanced in this study. First, we selected four “strong” cases to probe the plausibility
of the modified principal agent framework.70 Each case—the British armor, U.S.
carrier, U.S. counterinsurgency, and German armor—is distinguished in the
historical literature as an episode of either unequivocal success or failure at military
transformation. In none of the cases were these outcomes either preordained or
fully predicted by rival explanations. At the same time, the variety of cases controls
for national, technological, service, and strategic conditions. Moreover, the cases
offer extreme but alternative values on the proposed independent variables. They
all stood out for either the conspicuous presence or absence of procedural oversight
mechanisms and managerial norms. Although the cases alone cannot validate the
superiority of this new framework, they offer a first cut at systematically illustrating
the combined effects of managerial incentives and norms to advance research on
institutionalizing defense transformation.
Second, we employ “process-tracing” to structure the inquiry and investigate
prospective casual links between managerial oversight and transformation.71
For each case we ask the following questions: Was the initial impetus for change
institutionalized? Who were the relevant principals and agents assigned responsibilities
70 This provides a “doubly decisive” case for testing the certainty and uniqueness of
the predictions generated by a principal-agent framework. On “strong cases,” see especially
Stephen Van Evera, Guide to Methods for Students of Political Science (Ithaca: Cornell
University Press, 1997): 30-34.
71 Alexander L. George and Timothy J. McKeown, “Case Studies and Theories of
Organizational Decision Making,” in Robert Coulam and Richard Smith, eds. Advances in
Information Processing in Organizations (Greenwich, CN: JAI Press, 1985), pp. 43-68.
Principals, Agents, and Service Transformation 61
to formulate and implement change? What were the respective interests in sustaining
change? What were the formal and informal procedures and material incentives for
change that were embodied by the managerial strategy for transformation? How
attuned was this strategy to the prevailing managerial norms of the service’s? How
were the choices and pace of the service’s response to honing an sustaining change
linked to the incentives and inclinations embodied by the managerial strategy?
Finally, we selected the cases for their policy relevance. Each serves as an historic
benchmark for contemporary military transformation. Scholars and policymakers
alike typically hold up the interwar German armor and U.S. carrier cases as models
to emulate for successful military transformation. Some have gone so far as to
single out in each case the strong sense of mission and progressive attitude towards
experimentation as bellwethers for inculcating revolutionary sensibilities to contend
with today’s diverse, asymmetrical and unforeseen security threats.72 Others lament
the absence of entrepreneurial leaders, and champion either civilian directed, top-
down assaults on the services to bludgeon transformation or the creation of new
promotional tracks within each service. By the same token, the absence of these
conditions in the British armor and U.S. counterinsurgency cases are typically used to
underscore the potential costs of neglecting these factors. Yet if resting on misguided
understandings of even exceptional cases, these strategies could unnecessarily
inflame civilian-military tensions, squander scarce resources, orphan new ranks,
and/or discredit viable opportunities for transformation.
Conclusion
This chapter addressed gaps in the extant literature on military transformation by
positing an argument that attributes success to the managerial strategies of delegation
and oversight within a service. Change is a function of the internal structures put
in place to cope with asymmetries of information and conflicts of interests that
exist between different levels of hierarchy within an organization. In this regard,
“successful” military transformation is more likely when commanders do not have
incentives to monitor intrusively and sub-units do not have incentives to shirk
directives for change. The focus on agency costs and the specific parameters that
shape them offers a prism for linking “outside” and “inside” pressures for change—
stemming from shifts in the technology and task environment and distinctive
normative templates—to distinct patterns of military innovation. This approach
stands to illuminate just what is different about managerial variables, and how they
72 See especially Krepinevich, Transforming to Victory: The U.S. Navy Carrier Aviation
and Preparation for War in the Pacific (Cambridge, MA: The Olin Institute, 2000), available
at www.csbaonline.org/4Publications/Publications.htm; and Barry Watts and Williamson
Murray, “Military Innovation in Peacetime,” in Military Innovation in the Interwar Period,
eds., Williamson Murray and Allan R. Millett (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
1996), pp. 369-415; Williamson Murray, “Does Military Culture Matter,” Orbis 43:1 (Winter
1999), pp. 27-57; and Hunter Keeter, “Transformation Office Calls for Cultural Change,
Possible Shift in Acquisition Priorities,” Defense Daily, 28 November 2001, p. 1.
Managing Defense Transformation62
can supplement analysis of strategic factors in a systematic framework for basing
predictions about the capacity of armed services to reinvent themselves.
Ultimately, the validity of these deductions depends on how well they hold
up against the historical record of military transformation. Because the argument
identifies factors attendant to general problems of hierarchy associated with military
organizations, its relevance and potential implications are neither country nor service
specific. Therefore, the challenge taken up by the chapters in Part 2 is to test the
strength and limits to these theoretical propositions in a set of comparative case
studies of “successful” and “unsuccessful” military transformation.
PART II
Case Studies
This page intentionally left blank
Chapter 3
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation:
Rebuilding Preeminence From
Catastrophe
At the conclusion of The Great War, the German Army was in disarray and reduced
to a fraction of its former strength through the Versailles treaty restrictions imposed
by the victorious allies in 1919. Germany was permitted only a 100,000 man army
and only a 4,000 man officer corps, greatly reducing manpower and eliminating
its ability to defend the country’s borders. The restrictions also forbade possession
of heavy artillery, poison gas, any form of air power, and heavy armor, as well as
the industries to make them. The General Staff system was abolished, although
it was deftly reconstituted in a reorganized entity named the Truppenamt which
retained the same spirit, status, and many of the functions as the old General Staff,
as which it was often referred during the Versailles period. Furthermore, the German
economy was in ruins, insuring that besides the treaty restrictions the Army would
have minimal funding. To insure that the Allies’ goal of handicapping Germany’s
military potential succeeded, the Inter-Allied Control Commission was established
to monitor the German military’s compliance with the treaty restrictions.
Ironically, the catalyst for reconstruction of the Army into a more effective
organization came with the imposition of the restrictions of the Treaty of Versailles.
The Treaty served only to strip the German military of technological and organizational
dead wood. Its restrictions had the internal effect of providing opportunities for
reconstruction of a small, simple command structure that could more easily manage
innovation. The restrictions also forced the German Army to seek ways around
some of those restrictions externally, by monitoring foreign military developments
closely and exporting military industry, training, and experimentation that created
new opportunities for innovation. This combination of internal reform and external
monitoring helped to mitigate principal-agent problems in the management of
innovation during the interwar period.
Paradoxically, when the Second World War began the German Army had
successfully adopted new technologies and doctrine, especially that of armor, to a
far greater degree than the victorious allies. The most striking and comprehensive
aspect of this tactical and technological development was blitzkrieg, the use of
massed tank formations with combined arms support to make rapid and decisive
penetrations into enemy forces. Motorization of the Army had produced extremely
rapid mobility for which the Allies were completely unprepared. Thus in May and
June of 1940 the German Army defeated the combined forces of Britain, France,
Belgium, and Holland in a mere six weeks. The tactical superiority of the German
Managing Defense Transformation66
Army was demonstrated fully in this victory considering the aggregate numerical
and material superiority of their opponents.
Given the enormous disadvantages that characterized the German military at the
end of The Great War compared to the Allied situation, how did Germany enjoy
such complete initial success in the Second World War? There have been several
explanations for the German Army’s renewal. Some, like J.F.C. Fuller, believe that
the rebirth of spirit, ingenuity, and capability occurred under the National Socialist
regime and was attributable to Hitler himself. When he felt confident enough to
throw off the shackles of Versailles and begin rearmament in earnest, he forged
advancements in capabilities to support a clairvoyant and aggressive foreign policy
through dominating leadership, and he either convinced or coerced the military
professionals to accede to his organizational, operational, and technological visions,
and to give him the capabilities he demanded.1 Others, like Matthew Cooper, who
explicitly refute Fuller, believe that the blitzkrieg was neither new nor revolutionary
but was simply the logical extension of German operational thinking from Clauswitz,
Moltke, and Schlieffen that emphasized technological adaptation, mobility over
mass, speed of execution, envelopment, and force concentration against enemy
weak points. Historically, all of this was driven by the dictates of German political
geography that made Germany vulnerable to a two front war.2 Thus, to Fuller the
transformational technology, organization, force posture, doctrine, and operational
art developed during the interwar period was the province of one man’s mind
and to Cooper it was evolution, not military revolution, and besides, others were
simultaneously working on similar developments.
Our approach is different and adopts an organizational perspective. Despite the
losses in manpower, weapons potential, and funding, the remaining officer corps and
troop structure maintained the basic efficiency and professionalism that historically
had characterized the German military. The unwavering commitment of this German
Army leadership to the reconstruction of a modern, effective military, to the utmost
extent possible under the treaty restrictions, ensured that the Army would utilize every
opportunity to progress. The Army itself was stripped of useless stockpiles of outdated
weapons and reduced to a size that permitted reorganization and simplification in
management and maximization of efficiency in learning and training.3 Strict attention
to foreign military developments both formally and informally ensured that the Army
remained at the forefront of tactical and technological development even though it
did not possess the actual weapons of the Allies. These initial characteristics and
necessities helped pave the way for more radical and progressive developments in
technology and tactics which were to come later.
One of the primary factors contributing to this success was German military
culture. Since the middle of the nineteenth century, the Prussian and later German
1 J.F.C. Fuller, The Conduct of War: 1789-1961, (New York: Da Capo Press: 1992
edition), p. 244.
2 Matthew Cooper, The German Army: 1933-1945, (Lantham: Scarborough House;
Latham, 1978), pp. 126-129.
3 Bart Whaley, Covert German Re-Armament, 1919-1939 (Frederick: University
Publications of America, 1984), p. 31.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 67
Army had focused on maneuver as the decisive element of battle, and continued
that focus in studying The Great War and trying to understand how to circumvent
trench warfare and restore mobility to military operations. The introduction of new
technologies that enhanced mobility was a perfect complement to this organizational
belief in maneuver. Experience in The Great War, particularly with the successful
combined arms efforts of the storm troops, further strengthened German belief in
combined arms maneuver. Emphasis on higher education of the officer corps also
increased after The Great War, creating a small but well educated officer corps. An
organizational history of reassessment after defeat that traced back to the Battle of
Jena during the Napoleonic Wars was another valuable asset in the management
of innovation. Finally, the norm of decentralized decision-making, that gave junior
officers discretion in carrying out orders, increased the confidence of principals, and
reduced the need to monitor intrusively.
The German high command also was unique in its training methods by developing
technical proficiency in all of its officers and men, and encouraging independent
initiative and enterprise.4 A U.S. Army representative stated in 1927 after witnessing
the maneuvers of that year that the German Army “seemed to be training an army
of technicians.”5 This increased technical knowledge and training created an officer
corps that would not only be able to envision the same set of possibilities for
exploration and exploitation but would be quicker to accept technological innovations
into common use. One particular method of entering the highly competitive General
Staff also introduced incentives for technological innovation; officers with high
Military District Examination scores could obtain a technical degree at a university
and then enter the General Staff, usually in the Weapons Office.6
The German Army during the interwar period benefited from the interactions
between a hands-on leadership and junior officers that both had incentives to see the
rapid development and incorporation of innovation. High-level commanders like
Hans Von Seekt and other chiefs of Army command took a personal interest in the
daily operations of almost every aspect of the Army’s development. Supervising
appointments and training methods, and even writing training and doctrinal manuals
were regular exercises by Army leaders that desired a return to prominence for
the military.7 High-level leaders regularly attended exercises and maneuvers,
thus personally witnessing the innovations that were developed by subordinates,
but without micro-managing their actions.8 Leaders in the armor development
field experienced accelerated career paths through successful participation in tank
development, which was a branch clearly expanding in importance. Subordinates
found many opportunities, often encouraged by the high command, to convey novel
ideas and advance themselves through successful innovation and incorporation of
4 Robert Citino, The Path to Blitzkrieg (Boulder: Lynne Rienner Publishers, 1999), p.
100.
5 Quoted in ibid., (1999), pp. 100, 181.
6 James S. Corum, The Roots of Blitzkrieg (Lawrence: University Press of Kansas,
1992), p. 93.
7 Ibid., pp 52-55.
8 Citino (1999), pp. 105-106.
Managing Defense Transformation68
new technologies. The high command placed high value on armor development, and
those officers developing it could expect to play prominent roles in the new branch
of the Army.
Success of tank and heavy armor development resulted from freedom through
a form of “shielding” by being placed in its own organizational structure where
experimentation by armor enthusiasts could proceed unhindered. This shielding
did not constitute disinterest; the high command intended the unit to be important
and monitored its development enthusiastically but not intrusively. The latter
characteristic was demonstrated early on during the formation of the early command
structure, when Army leaders transferred all of those officers with experience and
learning in armor to the Inspectorate of Motor Troops (IN-6). The concentration
of armor knowledge in its own branch, in conjunction with an Inspector or
“branch leader” who was a proven armor or tank enthusiast and expert, such as
Oswald Lutz of the Weapons Office, ensured decentralized, innovative testing and
successful technical/doctrinal development of armor. IN-6 control over exercises
and experimentation with tanks only increased during the existence of this branch,
culminating after much success with the establishment of a Tank Forces Command
that shielded and concentrated tank development even further.9 Separated into a
main sub-branch of the Army, yet linked directly to the Weapons Office and the
highest levels of command, the organizational unit for armor achieved maximum
shielding for unhindered development with maximum chances for incorporation into
the operating core.
The comprehensive post-war studies initiated by Von Seekt and simultaneously
pursued by the Air Staff were naturally important for beginning the process of
internal change with regards to air power tactics and technology. The sheer number
of officers involved inculcated a norm of learning through saturation, and also
insured that some of those officers actively engaged in this innovative process
would eventually be placed in positions of command. The Air Staff, being the most
technically concentrated section of the Army, executed the post-war studies with a
heightened technical focus. Thirty-one officers, most with technical or engineering
background, were initially selected to begin the study, but by 1920 there were 130
working on the technical and industrial concerns of air war. (Then) captains Hugo
Sperrle and Kurt Student were two of the participants that later became innovators
in higher command positions; and both went on to work toward innovative concepts:
Sperrle for close air support (CAS) and Student for paratroops.10
The role of German industry also was critical to the development of blitzkrieg
during the interwar period. Industry’s connections overseas allowed for the
circumvention of the treaty restrictions on armor and aircraft. Thus the German
military was able to design and test equipment it could not possess. For example,
armor pioneer Heinz Guderian first operated a tank in Sweden at a subsidiary of a
German company. The initial necessity of relying on civil aviation in war simulations
9 Samuel Mitcham, The Panzer Legion (Westport: Greenwood Press, 2001), pp. 10-
14.
10 James S. Corum, The Luftwaffe: Creating the Operational Air War, 1918-1940
(Lawrence: University Press of Kansas, 1997), p. 60.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 69
and for planning air power made industry critical to the development of air assault
and air power, which became an integral part of blitzkrieg. Industry was a key source
of alternative information for principals, which reduced monitoring costs.
The location of German specialized warfare schools in Russia constituted a hybrid
formal/informal mechanism that advanced military doctrinal and technological
development. Although the schools themselves were formally constructed, joint
operations with the Soviet Army provided opportunities for testing and practice
that would not have been available to Germany. Tank doctrine and technology
was developed jointly, with engineers and representatives from German industry
working at these schools to develop tanks and airplane designs.11 The Germans had
their first opportunity to participate in large-scale maneuvers with tanks as active
parts of the Soviet Army’s maneuvers. Another similar informal experience was the
German participation in the Spanish Civil War; German forces operated in the same
command structure with the Spanish Nationalist forces. The experience provided
opportunities to directly test and perfect close air support and blitzkrieg operations,
under the direct supervision and direction of important German commanders like
von Sperrle.
It is maintained here that the development of blitzkrieg and its adoption into the
operating core of the German Army was advanced by the Versailles treaty restrictions.
These restrictions helped forge the principal-agent relationships that encouraged
experimentation, tolerated experimental failure, identified core competencies,
institutionalized successes, and minimized incentives for shirking and stove-
piping. In the end, this system of human organization and interaction facilitated the
development of new and transformational military doctrine and operational art, new
technologies, weapons and military systems applications, and new organizational
structures through which to implement them. In short, the Germans developed a new
way of war. External sources of information provided initial guidelines for testing
and experiments that would later incorporate the actual weaponry they simulated.
Highly vested commanders implemented an organizational structure that facilitated
development of truly innovative weaponry and doctrine. All of these efforts at
various levels of German society and within German institutions were driven by
the unified national purpose to again “make Germany strong” and return her to the
status of a great power. This unity of purpose was framed before the ink was dry on
the Versailles Treaty and was pursued with equal vigor by the democratic Weimar
Republic and the totalitarian Third Reich. The collective desire for renewal within
the armed forces as well as within society as a whole facilitated inter-institutional
pathways for cooperation and collaboration within and among the various branches
of the armed forces and provided a common goal for the armed forces leadership, the
political leadership, and the industrial elites.
11 Corum (1992), pp. 194-195.
Managing Defense Transformation70
Formal Control Mechanisms
Formal Structure
Despite the Versailles restriction that prohibited the military from having a General
Staff, the officers were reconstituted in a body that was effectively the same thing.
The core of the old General Staff was preserved in the Truppenamt, but consisted of
only about sixty officers. It contained four sections—Army, Organization, Statistical,
and Training. The new Army headquarters would consist of two other significant
bodies on the same level as the Truppenamt—the Weapons Office, in charge of
weapons and technological development, and the Branch Inspectorates, in charge of
directing training and doctrine in the different sections of the Army. The Weapons
office consisted of slightly over sixty officers (about the same as the Truppenamt)
and each branch had four to six officers (with one “Inspector”—the commander of
that branch inspectorate). The small number of officers in total that constituted the
high command ensured transparency and reduction of agency costs, and ensured
rapid and easy cooperation among the diverse branches of the Army. The impressive
linkage between all three bodies helped ensure consistent coordination between
leadership, doctrine, and technology.12
Clear and direct links existed between sections of the Weapons Office and the
appropriate branch inspectorates—each branch inspectorate had a corresponding
section in the Weapons Office (IN-6 to WA-6, for example). Representatives of
each unit were housed in the other to further ensure that doctrinal, tactical, and
technical innovation would always be linked for mutual application of independent
developments.13 Von Seekt personally monitored the links between the Weapons
Office, the Inspectorates, and the Truppenamt to make sure there was a smooth flow
of information. For example, Corum reports that in 1924 he once sent a memo to all
the leaders of the Inspectorates and the Weapons Office demanding greater mutual
education of technical and tactical developments. Department and section chiefs had
to attend bi-monthly seminars on weapons technology, and Weapons Office reports
on specific projects went not only to the corresponding branch inspectorate but also
to the T-1 and T-2 sections of the Truppenamt.14
The resources and personnel involvement of the Weapons Office in R&D is
impressive; a “significant percentage of [the] four thousand man officer corps [was]
engaged directly in weapons research and development.”15 These groups included
Weapons Office officers stationed with each branch inspectorate, and officers within
each branch inspectorate school conducting experiments and equipment tests.
The high number of officers directly involved in weapons R&D and their wide
12 Ibid., pp. 34-37.
13 James S. Corum, A Clash of Military Cultures: German & French Approaches to
Technology Between the World Wars (Defenselink Joint Doctrine Electronic Library Online,
1994).
14 Corum (1992), pp. 101-102.
15 Ibid., p. 102.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 71
organizational placement ensured that every section of the Army would be exposed
to the constant innovation.16
A brief description of the development of radio communications and the
important decision to place a radio into every tank demonstrates the impressive
coordination between experimentation, weapons development, and implementation
that the Weapons Office-Inspectorate relationship made possible. During the 1920s
extensive radio research and experimentation was conducted by the Inspectorate of
Communications Troops (IN-7) and its corresponding section in the Weapons Office.
This included sponsoring projects with German civilian firms, where the extremely
valuable development of the ultra-short wave frequency radio occurred.17 Ernst
Volckheim in 1924 had determined that a radio in every tank was a necessity; he was
part of the Inspectorate of Motor Troops—which also had a corresponding section
in the Weapons Office.18 The Weapons Office matched that operational guideline
developed in that inspectorate (IN-6) with the radio development underway in IN-
16 Ibid., pp. 101-102.
17 Ibid., pp. 108-109.
18 Ibid., p. 129.
Truppenamt
T1: Army Section
(Operations & Planning)
T2: Organization
T3: Statistical
(Intelligence)
T4: Training
Weapons OfficeInspectorates
IN1:Weapons
Schools
IN2: Infantry
IN3: Cavalry
IN4: Artillery
IN5: Pioneers
& Fortresses
IN6: Motor Troops
(Lutz became
Inspector, then
Guderian)
IN7: Signal
Troops
WA1
WA2
WA3
WA4
WA5
WA6
(Oswald Lutz
served as a
section leader)
WA7
Army High Command (Heeresleitung)
Field Commands
Group 1
(East
Germany)
Group 2
(West
Germany)
Truppenamt
T1: Army Section
(Operations & Planning)
T2: Organization
T3: Statistical
(Intelligence)
T4: Training
Weapons OfficeInspectorates
IN1:Weapons
Schools
IN2: Infantry
IN3: Cavalry
IN4: Artillery
IN5: Pioneers
& Fortresses
IN6: Motor Troops
(Lutz became
Inspector, then
Guderian)
IN7: Signal
Troops
WA1
WA2
WA3
WA4
WA5
WA6
(Oswald Lutz
served as a
section leader)
WA7
Army High Command (Heeresleitung)
Field Commands
Group 1
(East
Germany)
Group 2
(West
Germany)
Figure 3.1 Reichwehr Command Structure, 1919-1934
Managing Defense Transformation72
7 (Communications) and its linked Weapons Office section and mandated that a
radio be included in every prototype tank developed in the 1920s. Innovations like
these were quickly incorporated because of the coordination between the Weapons
Office branch in charge of its technical development and the Inspectorate, which
was responsible for its operational, tactical, and doctrinal incorporation and use.19
The linkage between these branches reduced information asymmetries and agency
costs by making it easier for managers to unobtrusively monitor both technical and
doctrinal developments simultaneously.
The quick reinforcement of innovation into military training also was an important
aspect of blitzkrieg developmental success. Much of this occurred because of direct
participation of high-level commanders in the mechanisms—like the maneuver—that
produced innovation. Equally important was the linking of commanders in charge
of innovative units to the writing of military training literature. An example of this
was the work carried on at Lipetsk, the secret, Russian-located German air training/
development base. Officers there, for example, wrote the most current manuals on air
power based on their direct findings, and important IN-6 figures like Tschischwitz,
Lutz, and Volckheim contributed substantially to the doctrinal literature.20 The
Army’s Tank School at Wunsdorf used personnel practices to incorporate recent
lessons learned—all of its instructors in late 1940 were officers who had just fought
in the French campaign, where blitzkrieg enjoyed its most impressive success.21
There were important promotion and prestige incentives for officers that pursued
technical knowledge and innovation. Successful positions in the Weapons Office,
the center for R&D in all technical matters, often led to important positions as
commanders in corresponding branches. Oswald Lutz’s impressive achievements in
the Weapons Office led to a promotion to the Inspectorate of Motor Troops.22 Captains
Kurt Student and Wilhelm Wimmer were important officers in the Weapons Office
and later achieved senior ranks, with Wimmer becoming chief of development and
testing for the aviation section of the WO.23 The air staff of both the Truppenamt and
Waffenampt had a high concentration of talent and expertise, much as IN-6 did, and
a high percentage of those officers went on to high-level promotion. Hugo Sperrle
was chief of Air Staff in the Truppenamt during 1927-29, and possessed an unusual
technical competence. He went on to command the Condor Legion in Spain and later
became a fleet commander.24 A number of the civil service members of the Weapons
Office became generals of the Luftwaffe. Rudolf Spies, who earned an aeronautical
engineering degree, achieved the rank of general as a senior Luftwaffe engineer.25
19 Ibid., p. 108.
20 Ibid., p. 195.
21 R. L. DiNardo, Germany’s Panzer Arm (Westport: Greeenwood Press, 1997), p. 61.
22 Corum (1992), p. 119.
23 Ibid., (1992), p. 148, and (1997), pp. 173-174.
24 Ibid., (1997), pp. 86-87.
25 Ibid., pp. 85-86.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 73
Shielding and Formal Links—The Inspectorate of Motor Troops
The greatest advances in tank doctrine during the interwar period occurred within a
subunit of the German Army, the Inspectorate of Motor Transport Troops.26 It was
the sixth inspectorate, referred to in organizational abbreviation as IN-6. A detailed
examination of the evolution of this branch is necessary considering that it housed
virtually all the most important German armor doctrine developments during the
interwar period. As this unit proved more and more successful in producing real
innovation, it was changed and refined to both shield it and increase its ability to
concentrate on its most important achievement—tank doctrine. Both its principals
and agents were given greater incentives to innovate by granting them extra powers
and exemption from normal duties. From this formal branch of the Army came the
formation of massed tank doctrine, tank tactics, and eventually the organizational
core of the blitzkrieg—the panzer division. The extra authority of its commander
and ample attention by high command ensured that the lessons learned there made
quick transition into general training.
The Inspectorate of Motor Transport Troops (IN-6) was number six of the branch
inspectorates in the Army high command headquarters, each of which contained
several General Staff officers and operated on par with Truppenamt and the
Weapons Office.27 The authority of the Inspectorate of Motor Transport Troops over
tank training and development is due largely to the forward thinking of Hans Von
Seekt, whose interest in and planning for the mechanization of the Army gave the
advancement of tank doctrine its necessary roots. Von Seekt planted an important
organizational seed with IN-6, which he desired to become a separate main branch of
the Army like the infantry. Instead of managing its efforts directly, he left its course
largely up to the inspector commanding it.28
As time passed IN-6 would gain greater autonomy and continuously produce
important innovations in armor doctrine. As described in the section on formal
links, IN-6 was directly linked to its corresponding section in the Weapons Office,
WA-6. IN-6 would determine what new weaponry/motorization was required and
its specifications, and WA-6 would determine the exact technical specifications
and begin to draw up development contracts for contractors.29 The initial task of
distinguishing this new unit, IN-6, fell to Erich von Tschischwitz, its first commander
(or “Inspector”), and one of his staff officers, Heinz Guderian. Both were strongly in
favor of motorized and armored combat formations and turned IN-6 toward tactical
experimentation instead of normal service tasks.30 In 1921 Tschischwitz conducted
motorized exercises in the Harz Mountains, and decided, based on the success of
26 Different authors translate the name of this inspectorate, Kraftfahrtruppen, several
different ways—Transport Troops, Motor Transport Troops, and Motor Troops. IN-6 will
most often be used in this study.
27 Corum (1992), p. 36.
28 Ibid., p. 137.
29 Ibid., pp. 100-101.
30 Albert Seaton, The German Army 1933-1945 (New York: St. Martin’s Press, 1982),
pp. 61-62.
Managing Defense Transformation74
these maneuvers, that motorized infantry were viable in combat. Demonstrating the
strong relationships that existed between principals in the German High Command
and the agents developing doctrine, Von Seekt issued copies of Tschischwitz’s report
directly throughout the Army.31
The importance of placing a progressive commander in the position of Inspectorate
of Motor Troops was demonstrated by the lack of progress under its next commander,
Von Natzmer. Natzmer, a virtual reactionary, succeeded Tschischwitz in 1924 and
interpreted the IN-6 mission as nothing more than a transport support organization
for the other branches. Guderian left in 1924 to become a military history instructor
at Stettin; convinced that his efforts would fall on deaf ears, this strong innovator
ceased to try. The fact that Guderian was chief of staff under Tschischwitz but
voluntarily left the branch of the Army he was most interested in during the tenure
of Natzmer highlights the importance of reciprocity in principal-agent relationships.
Guderian in 1924 was suddenly bereft of organizational outlets and channels for
conveying novel ideas, reducing his incentive to try. Natzmer was succeeded in 1927
by Vollard-Bockelburg, re-introducing into the branch a commander interested in the
potential of armor doctrine.32
Vollard-Bockelburg used his authority to bring IN-6 back on track toward
mechanized warfare. He directed the Inspectorate of Motor Troops’ Berlin-Moabit
school to change a small technical course for motor officers to include amour and
motorized warfare tactics. Under his direction the school began to evolve in general
toward a more tactical orientation, finally becoming the Panzer Troops School in
1935 when rearmament began. Vollard-Bockelburg was also the first to change the
name of the Inspectorate to reflect its more militarily offensive instead of support
focus—to Inspectorate of Motorized Fighting Troops.33 The name could not be
reported officially because of Versailles restrictions, but even this internal designation
would help spur further innovation toward combined arms tank doctrine. Vollard-
Bockelburg actually began the first regular instruction of IN-6 officers in theory of
armored warfare by translating a 1927 British manual on the subject and using it for
a teaching tool.34
The evolution of mechanized and tank doctrine took a huge leap forward with
the appointment of Major General Oswald Lutz to the position of Inspector of Motor
Transport Troops in 1931.35 He was the perfect man for the job. Lutz was a technically
minded commander who would not only make experimentation with armor his top
priority but also give his subordinates, especially Guderian, clear opportunities to
implement their ideas. Lutz had spent almost his entire career in Army transport,
including service in The Great War as director of motor transport for the Sixth Army.
He was promoted to a higher technical command in 1924 as a lieutenant colonel,
transferring to become the Weapons Office section leader in charge of vehicle
development. Already he was displaying much zeal for technological innovation
31 S. J. Lewis, Forgotten Legions (New York: Praeger Publishers, 1985), p. 18.
32 Seaton (1982), pp. 62-63.
33 Corum (1992), p. 136.
34 Seaton (1982), p. 62.
35 Mitcham (2001), p. 7.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 75
and consequent impatience with lack of progress during this posting in the Weapons
Office.36 Upon arrival, he discovered the failure of the Weapons Office to undertake
advanced armored car development since 1921, which annoyed him particularly.
Lutz changed a technical course for his staff on the purely technical aspects of motor
vehicles to include tactical uses, as well as generally training his staff in armor
tactics. He conducted numerous studies that among other things led him as early as
1925-26 to recommend differentiation in both a medium and light tank for different
types of tactical missions.37
Lutz’s energetic efforts in the Weapons Office got him onto the staff of IN-6 in
1928, and when Lutz finally succeeded Vollard-Bockelberg in 1931 as Inspector
of Motor Transport Troops,38 Guderian transferred back to become his Chief of
Staff. During 1931-1932, Lutz conducted exercises that yielded lessons essential
to the future development of the panzer division. Using dummy tank battalions, he
experimented and used the results to draft a report to Von Brauchitsch, who was in
charge of revising Leadership and Battle, the primary training text for the Army.
One of his more important discoveries in the report was that tanks should be used in
nothing less than battalion strength, although on special occasions a few might be
used for support in other missions. Equally as important was the need to give a tank
battalion its own offensive mission; the experiments had demonstrated to him the
speed and range capability of tanks when freed from the slow-moving, unmotorized
infantry. These two discoveries alone demonstrate how capable an IN-6 manager
could be given ample resources and authority to experiment; it has been argued that
the exercises of 1931-32 were the true birth of blitzkrieg.39
The incentive for promotion in IN-6 through successful doctrinal development
was reflected by the number of officers that used the inspectorate to achieve higher
rank in the all important tank divisions. Officers could be sure the high command
intended from its very inception that IN-6 would be the center of tank doctrine
and technology development because they transferred all of their experienced tank
officers there, including Volckheim and Thoferhn. IN-6 also served as an impressive
channel for promotion throughout the interwar period. Von Tschischwitz after his
impressive management of IN-6 went on by 1927 to command Group I, one of the
only two Riechswehr field commands equivalent to an army level command. A
number of other officers went on to higher positions in the Army generally.40 Oswald
Lutz and Heinz Guderian both exhibited very impressive career promotions through
IN-6.
An important example of IN-6 organizational linkage with the high command
occurred in 1933 when Guderian was able to lead an exercise for Hitler’s benefit.
It was really just a demonstration of new weaponry; Guderian led a tank formation
display for the new chancellor, which consisted of a combined arms motorized
formation involving the experimental light tanks that would soon become the Pzkw.
36 Corum, (1992), p. 119.
37 Ibid., pp. 134-136.
38 Ibid., p. 134.
39 Citino (1999), pp. 202-204.
40 Corum (1992), p. 137.
Managing Defense Transformation76
I. The demonstration resulted in Hitler’s often quoted comment: “That’s what I need!
That’s what I want to have.” Thereafter the panzer had direct support from the top
commanding officer in the government, ensuring that the overall organization of IN-
6 and armor organization would continue to receive high support.41
Due to the impressive results obtained in IN-6 under Lutz and Guderian, the
Kommando der Panzertruppen (Tank Forces Command) was created in 1934 as an
autonomous organization to deal specifically with tanks. Lutz and Guderian were
transferred to this new unit with their same command relationship (commander and
his chief of staff), and were ordered to continue with experimenting tactically and
organizationally with tanks.42 An important organizational addition to the authority
of the new unit greatly increased its potential for innovation.
Due to the fact that panzer units had yet to be created but were expected to
come into existence, both Lutz and Guderian were given field armored commands
with which they would control and organize panzer units as each was created.43
The panzer troops were now distinguished from other branches of the Army in that
their commander and chief of staff had a double authority—field commander and
a managing role as commander of the Tank Forces Command. The extra command
authority gave Lutz even more ability to directly instigate and implement a number
of highly important exercises during his tenure.44 It was also an incentive to innovate,
granting power that made it easier to produce results. This important command
structure demonstrates principal-agent model linkage between high command and
field command, and shielding from the bureaucratic difficulties that would have
resulted from Lutz’s attempts to secure field armies for his exercises.
The exercises that Lutz conducted in fall 1935 with his new authority yielded
results that he and Guderian used to recommend successfully the creation of the
first three panzer divisions.45 These exercises also produced a number of other key
changes, most importantly helping advance the concept of combined arms. Based
on his findings from the events, in which he personally commanded the first panzer
division to operate in a maneuver, Lutz recommended that motorized infantry and
tanks be used in conjunction with each other. This was a significant break with the
teachings of the British armor theorists Fuller and Liddell-Hart, and an important step
in combined arms armor doctrine. The 1935 exercises revealed the important role
of engineer units in the panzer division; their special talents could be immediately
employed for a host of problems like bridging rivers or removing obstacles to clear
the path for the panzers.46
Guderian succeeded Lutz as commander of Tank Forces Command in 1938,47
and enjoyed even greater authority to test and implement innovative ideas for tank
doctrine. Guderian’s primary incentives to innovate were his near religious belief in
41 Quoted in Citino (1999), p. 230.
42 Citino (1999), pp. 230-231.
43 Seaton (1982), pp. 62-64.
44 Ibid., p. 102.
45 Citino (1999), pp. 230-231.
46 DiNardo (1997), pp. 77-78.
47 Mitcham (2001), p. 12.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 77
the utility of the massed offensive tank formation and his desire for personal prestige
through being its champion. This can be witnessed through his largely successful
attempt to paint himself as the father of blitzkrieg, a kind of armor messiah fighting
against an intractably conservative leadership. This view took hold initially because
it was based on Guderian’s self-serving autobiography, which was for some time after
the war one of the only major historical sources on the institutional development of
blitzkrieg. Although it is has become clear that he was neither the father of blitzkrieg
nor forced to fight against an impossibly conservative leadership, it cannot be doubted
that he was as influential on the development of tank doctrine as any other.48
Initially Guderian possessed the same impressive linkage authority by being
both the commander of the Tank Forces Command and having his own armor field
command to use for exercises and experimentation. In autumn of 1938 he was
granted additional powers when a new military organization was established, the
Mobile Troops with him as Chief. The new organization included all the elements of
a blitzkrieg operation minus air power: all tank, anti-tank, and motorized infantry,
rifles, etc (Tank Forces Command had only possessed tanks and tank troops). Now
Guderian was truly on a different authoritative level than the other arms inspectors,
having even greater authority than Lutz had to design and implement his own
experiments. He also was in charge of the mobile troops schools so that he had
their resources for experimentation and could immediately introduce lessons learned
through experimental exercises directly into training curriculums.49
48 Corum, (1992), p. 138.
49 Seaton (1982), pp. 102-103.
Army High Command (Heeresleitung)
Inspectorates
IN 1,2,3,4,5,7
IN-6: Tank Forces
Command
(Commando der
Panzertruppen)
Formerly Inspectorate of
Motor Troops
Oswald Lutz Commanding
Field Commands
Panzer Divisions – Part of the
Field Armored Command under
Lutz – now both Inspector of Tank
Forces Command and a field
commander
Division 1
Div. 2-Guderian
Commander
Division 3,4,5, . . .
Figure 3.2 Tank Forces Command, 1934-35
Managing Defense Transformation78
The Role of Managerial Norms
The German Army’s managerial norms heavily influenced the management of the
innovations that would come to characterize blitzkrieg in several ways. First, the
strategic and operational conceptions of the Army determined how the innovations
would be received and incorporated. Second, the impact of World War I on German
organizational culture would shape the composition of the panzer division. Finally,
managerial norms affected the ways in which innovation would be monitored and
evaluated by principals in the German Army.
The defeat of Germany and imposition of the Versailles Treaty at the conclusion
of World War I, as catastrophic as many Germans considered them, were not
without precedent in German military culture. Little more than a century before,
the Prussian Army had suffered similar catastrophe at the hands of Napoleon.50 The
defeat at the Battle of Jena, and subsequent imposition of oppressive treaties by
the French created a situation for the Prussian Army similar to that experienced by
the German Army in the interwar period.51 The response of the Prussian Army was
led by Generals Scharnhorst and Gneisenau, and involved review of the failures
of the Army and overhaul of the education system for officers. Eventually these
reforms strengthened the Prussian military to the point that it could cast off the
constraints of the hated treaties and join the new coalition against Napoleon.52 The
Army consciously promoted this model for reform in the interwar period. As James
Corum notes, “this period in German military history was a favorite theme of the
German military writers of the 1920s.”53
The educational reforms undertaken by the German Army in the aftermath of
both defeats focused on increasing the scientific and technical capabilities of the
officer corps. Prior to the reforms of Scharnhorst after the defeat at Jena, for example,
mathematics and even basic literacy were often neglected and even scorned by the
Prussian officer corps.54 In the 1920s, reform further increased the educational
requirements of the officer corps. University matriculation was made mandatory,
examinations were toughened, and a new officer-training program was introduced.
An emphasis on knowledge of technology and its relation to military affairs was
created, with sections of the Weapons Office, the service branch inspectorates,
and General Staff sections required to hold two or more seminars on technology
per month.55 The most radical change was the new possibility of substituting an
engineering or technical degree for the General Staff academy course as a means for
joining the General Staff.56
This focus on technology was in keeping with the German Army’s culture, dating
to the time of Helmut von Moltke, the elder. Moltke came to appreciate the impact
50 Gordon Craig, The Politics of the Prussian Army (London: Oxford University Press,
1955) pp. 33-36.
51 Ibid., pp. 35-38.
52 Ibid., pp. 38-53.
53 Corum (1997), p. 79.
54 Craig (1995), pp. 44-46.
55 Ibid, (1995), pp. 393-397, and Corum (1997), p. 68.
56 Corum (1997), pp. 66-68.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 79
of new technologies on war after the 1864 war between Prussia and Denmark over
Schlieswig-Holstein. First among these was the increased capability of defensive
arms. Rifling, percussion caps, and eventually breech loading and repeating weapons
meant that defenders could dominate attackers with firepower. Moltke wrote in 1869
“it is fire effect, nowadays so powerful, which will determine the issue.”57 Second was
the ability of telegraph and railroad to increase mobility dramatically. Moltke was
thus forced to reconcile increased strategic tempo with decreased utility of frontal
assaults. His solution, which would dominate Prussian and then German military
culture for the next seventy-five years, was to move offensively yet fight defensively,
or put another way, to combine offensive strategy with defensive tactics.
This solution was focused on moving rapidly to envelop the enemy, and attack
his flanks and rear. If the enemy sought to break out of the encirclement, he would be
forced to launch a costly frontal attack on the prepared German defenders. Moltke’s
idea became came known as Kesselschlacht, or cauldron-battle.
Kesselschlacht was an unorthodox concept, which in many ways ran counter
to the lessons of the Napoleonic Wars. Napoleon fought offensively, concentrating
assaults on the weakest part of an enemy’s front. When Moltke sought to revise
Prussian tactics in the period prior to the Austro-Prussian war of 1866, he was
resisted by the king and others who still believed in the utility of the massed frontal
assaults.58 When the war occurred, the Prussian infantry attacked en masse at the
battle of Konniggratz with little success. Victory came after a second Prussian Army
arrived and attacked the Austrian flank.
Moltke used the experience of the Austro-Prussian War to rewrite doctrine,
cautioning against the frontal assault and urging the flanking and enveloping
maneuver. He also sought to upgrade the technological capabilities of the Army to
enhance this new doctrine. He encouraged the development and adoption of the
Dreyse rifle, an early breech-loading rifle of considerable accuracy prior to the
Austro-Prussian war, and the adoption of breech-loading rifled artillery after the
war. Once encirclement was completed, the massed infantry and artillery fire would
render it inescapable.
Implicit in Moltke’s thinking was a realization of the possibility of a two front war.
This became particularly important in the period following German unification. As
early as 1871, Moltke began contemplating this eventuality.59 The solution to the two
front war was to rapidly concentrate and defeat one enemy while holding the other at
bay. Moltke and his successor Schlieffen would rely on rapid mobilization and defeat
of one enemy through decisive offensive maneuver to overcome the limitations of
German geography. Victory would be decisive and quick, or unattainable.60
57 Quoted in Cooper, (1978), p. 133
58 Larry H. Addington, The Blitzkrieg Era and the German General Staff 1865-1945
(Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 1971), p. 5.
59 Craig (1995), pp. 273-276.
60 Indeed, Moltke indicated that victory may have been altogether impossible. Moltke
had experienced “people’s war” after Sedan, and began to believe rapid victory was becoming
impossible. Schlieffen would not accept this, and sought to salvage war as a political
instrument. Nonetheless, the Prussian tradition remained focused on the decisive short war.
See Stig Forster, “Dreams and Nightmares: German Military Leadership and the Images of
Managing Defense Transformation80
The Napoleonic concept of war nonetheless proved difficult to remove from
Prussian military culture, particularly at the tactical level. When the Franco-Prussian
War erupted in 1870, some Prussian officers still attempted frontal assaults. It was
only after encountering the powerful defensive fire of the French at the battles of
Spicheren and Worth that the Prussian officer corps began to accept the utility of
Moltke’s doctrine. Relearning the lessons as the war moved into French territory,
sometimes with heavy losses, the Prussian officer corps finally accomplished a
successful encirclement at Metz, and then a greater one at Sedan. At Sedan, Moltke’s
new doctrine proved itself, as the French command lost 17,000 men trying to escape
before surrendering 104,000 troops.61
The Kesselschlacht doctrine would guide German strategic and tactical thinking
both prior to and during World War I. The Schleiffen Plan was Kesselschlacht on
a grand scale, which notably failed due to the limits of logistics, the limits of the
endurance of men and beasts of burden, and the limits of effective command and
control over such an extensive front.62 After the failure of the Schleiffen plan at the
First Battle of the Marne, attempts were made to outflank the Allies on their left
by moving towards the English Channel, attempts which by the close of the year
had ended in entrenchments from the Swiss border to the English Channel. In the
East, however, the victory over the Russians at Tannenberg in August 1914 was a
masterpiece of Kesselschlacht.63 This success would not be forgotten.
German military culture also was influenced at the tactical level by the
Kesselschlacht concept. Von Moltke saw the importance of cooperation between
infantry and artillery in maneuver and encirclement, and the experience of the First
World War reinforced it. The Germans reorganized the structure of the infantry
division during the war from four infantry regiments (the “square”) to three
infantry and one artillery regiment (the “triangle”), increasing both combined arms
effectiveness and tactical maneuverability.
Of even greater importance to combined arms concepts was the development
of the Storm Troops. The Storm Troops were detachments which sought to effect
penetration of enemy lines by combining light machineguns, flamethrowers, and
even man-portable light artillery with short yet intense concentrations of heavy
artillery fire.64 In the final Ludendorff offensives of 1918, the Storm Troops proved
successful in breaching enemy lines through combined arms operations.65 This initial
success, which ultimately failed for lack of resources, would be remembered by the
German Army during the interwar period.
Future Warfare 1871-1914” in Manfred F. Boemeke, Roger Chickering, and Stig Forster, eds,
Anticipating Total War (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1999).
61 Addington (1971), p.8.
62 It is worth noting that some argue that had the original plan been followed rather
than the variant imposed by Moltke, the younger, victory could have been achieved by the
Germans. The timetable for victory was less than six weeks, meaning that Germany could have
beaten France in approximately the same time it took to win in 1940. See Fuller, (1992).
63 Ibid., pp. 23-24.
64 Ibid., p. 24.
65 Corum (1992), p. 2-9.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 81
This combination of education and experience produced a set of shared values for
evaluating developments in technology and doctrine that helped reduce monitoring
costs within the German Army. These managerial norms are summed up in the
introduction to the German manual “Command of Troops” (Truppen-fuhrung) from
1936:
The art of war is in a state of constant development. New weapons cause it to assume ever-
changing forms. The advent of these weapons must be foreseen in good time, and their
effect correctly assessed. Thereupon they must be quickly taken into service.66
The German officer corps, therefore, was oriented towards exploration of new
technology, and able to assess its value in terms of enhancing the Army’s ability
to perform its perceived mission of conducting rapid strategic offensives through
Kesselschlacht.67 This normative approach provided cohesion for the management of
innovation and reduced the costs of monitoring. Evidentiary rules became stronger as
technical education increased during the interwar period. Nonetheless, and perhaps
apocryphally, Hans von Seeckt, as commander of the Reichswehr, was thus able to
correctly assess the value of the innovations that would comprise blitzkrieg despite
maintaining belief that horse cavalry could still play an important role in modern
warfare.68
Armor theorist Heinz Guderian, in his manifesto Achtung-Panzer, makes
extensive reference to these shared evidentiary rules as a means of gaining support
for his vision. While Achtung-Panzer exaggerates in several places, it is nonetheless
relevant as a clear example of the type of arguments that would be acceptable to
members of the German military. As such it illustrates the value of shared concepts
of valid evidence for the management of innovation.
In the introduction, Guderian first notes the German need for short war: “Such
nations have been forced to consider what means may best conduce an armed conflict
to a rapid and tolerable end.”69 He further notes the importance of assessing new
technology which can further this goal:
When a nation has to reckon with a struggle against superior forces on several fronts, it
must neglect nothing that may conduce to the betterment of its situation… it is a question
66 Quoted in Martin van Creveld, Fighting Power: German Military Performance
1914-1945 (Report to Office of Net Assessment, December 1980), p. 30.
67 The German military’s perception of its mission and methodology was not monolithic
and was contradicted by various statements of senior German leaders. Nevertheless, the
overall culture was centered on maneuver and decisive battle, even if, for example, von Seeckt
criticized slavish obsession with envelopment.
68 The extent to which von Seeckt believed in cavalry is debatable, with some arguing
he was a reactionary who wanted to bring back the lance charge, and others arguing he merely
saw cavalry as part of an all-arms light division. See Cooper (1978) for the former view; and
Corum (1997) for the latter.
69 Heinz Guderian, Achtung-Panzer (London: Arms and Armor Press, 1992), p. 23.
The original German edition was published in 1937.
Managing Defense Transformation82
of making sure that military developments keep pace with the technical and economic
ones.70
Guderian later details a variety of technical developments obtained from foreign
sources and discussed in the German military journal Militar-Wochenblatt.71
Guderian also devotes time to discussing the need to adopt combined arms
doctrine for blitzkrieg: “Tanks are unable by themselves to meet all the combat
tasks which come their way; the other arms will be needed as well…Everyone is
agreed on this basic point.”72 He then discusses the appropriate relationship between
armor and the other arms from the perspective of “striving for decisive victory on the
grand scale.”73 The tank, he argues, must be the primary arm, supported by aircraft
and mechanized infantry and artillery.74 Finally, Guderian argues for a doctrine of
operations which combines the new technology with the overall German concept of
war by maneuver. He states the goal of armored warfare thusly: “We therefore aim
at achieving a sweeping victory by the means advocated by our third school, namely
a breakthrough which will lead to a pursuit, and the rolling up of the intact sectors
of the enemy front.”75 It is worth noting also that Guderian makes reference to the
concepts of Moltke the elder on firepower.76
The final normative element of the German Army’s managerial approach
was the decentralized conception of command. Rather than focusing on detailed
planning from above, the Germans sought to instill junior officers with initiative and
creativity. Principals thus had a high degree of confidence in agents, reducing the
need to monitor intrusively.
War is described in the 1936 manual “Command of Troops” as “an art, a free
creative activity resting on scientific foundations.” Regulations are described as
“guiding lines that must be applied in accordance with circumstances.”77 The manual
is replete with statements that reinforce this decentralized theory of command.
According to Martin van Creveld, these ideas trace back to the time of Moltke the
elder.78 The limitations of communications technology during the century prior to
World War II combined with a concept of warfare based on maneuver required that
subordinates have latitude to effect maneuver. In describing the essence of an order,
the 1936 manual states: “An order should contain everything a subordinate must
know to carry out his assignment and only that.” It also states that “a commander
must leave freedom of action to his subordinates.”79 This norm of decentralized
70 Ibid., pg 24.
71 Ibid., p. 156 provides a good example of his argument about technical details of
armor vs. artillery.
72 Ibid., p. 188.
73 Ibid., p. 188.
74 Ibid., pp. 193-198.
75 Ibid., p. 190.
76 Ibid., p. 203.
77 Quoted in Van Creveld (1980), p. 30.
78 Ibid., p. 40.
79 Quoted in Ibid., p. 41.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 83
command hinges upon, as van Creveld notes, “complete confidence of superiors in
their subordinates, and vice versa…”80
Encouragement of technical writing and thinking by the high command and
informal outlets for novel ideas also created incentives for senior and junior officers
to offer innovative thinking. One of the best outlets for this type of thinking was
the Militarwochenblatt (MW), a semi-official weekly Army journal that provided
an informal outlet for the expression of innovative ideas—armor doctrine among
the most important. It was edited by a retired general who was a progressive
military theorist, leading him throughout the 1920s to include numerous works on
armor doctrine. Through 1924-1925 he even went so far as to produce a monthly
supplement called “The Tank”, to which Volckheim contributed to every issue.81
Overall, the MW demonstrated the technical orientation of the German Army; there
was an almost complete absence of political or economic articles in the publication.
This was a result partly of the fact that officers were not permitted to take part in
any kind of political activity; their intellectual energies were thus channeled toward
operational thinking.82
The High Command used this informal mechanism, the MW, as a teaching and
encouragement tool by attaching official importance to some of its products. In
addition to gaining prestige through publication in the MW, theoretical and analytical
contributors might find their works in a recommended reading list compiled and
promoted by the high command. Volckheim in particular benefited from this practice;
the only books that were part of the list were written by him. All the rest were MW
articles, of which he also wrote many.83 Thus with the formal and informal outlets
that had the high command’s attention, an author on armor might attract favorable
notice with innovative ideas on the new type of warfare.
Maneuvers, Exercises, & War Games
The German maneuver during the interwar period was by no means a new
mechanism for tactical learning; all of the major European militaries participated
in their own versions of military exercises and battle simulations in the interwar
period. The German military prior to 1914, however, had been the world expert
in staging full-army maneuvers as a teaching tool in which new tactics could be
tested and discovered. During the early interwar period the practice of war gaming
and maneuvers continued to receive intense attention. Various types of simulations
were practiced; the commander’s war game involved simulated battle on a sand
table using a map—this emphasized strategic and operational learning.84 Staff tours
were another learning tool in which the Chief of Army Command beginning with
Von Seekt would lead members of higher staff officers through geographical areas
to provide familiarity and tactical brainstorming for particular tracts of terrain.
80 Ibid., p. 46.
81 Corum (1992), p. 127.
82 Ibid., p. 86.
83 S. J. Lewis, Forgotten Legions (New York: Praeger Publishers, 1985)
84 Citino (1999), p. 105.
Managing Defense Transformation84
Maneuvers and field exercises involved simulated battle with actual units of the
field; maneuvers often used division and even corps level armies for the simulations.
In the commander’s war game, field exercises and maneuvers, the simulated war was
usually set up with two opposing teams; Germany as the blue team and the enemy
(France or Poland for example) as the red.85 None of these mechanisms by their
simple existence were innovative—it was their application and realistic intensity,
coupled with principal-agent relationships that primed them for producing serious
innovation.
Field exercises and maneuvers provided the most concrete and productive
method for discovering and incorporating tactical innovation, and were thus the most
important peacetime tool for training and tactical innovation of the German Army.
Unlike the pre-war German military, leadership tried to avoid isolation of the main
arms in the exercises and instead perfected them through cooperation with others.
Initially the practice of the maneuver began small, at the company and battalion
level, but by 1926 the Army had advanced to the multi-divisional maneuver.86
Innovation was realized to a much greater scale through the German maneuver,
however, because its structure, comprehensive application, and attention to large-
scale exercises created a particularly conducive atmosphere for production and
incorporation of innovation. No other interwar power performed the maneuver on
even close to an equivalent scale, nor attached the importance to the results that the
Germans did.87 The innovations on the field were guaranteed to be examined because
of the unobtrusive but close participation of high command officers in observing the
maneuver and officiating the post-maneuver critique.
Creative solutions were given the highest priority in war gaming. Directors of
exercises were tasked with inventing new situations that would consistently require
non-schematic novel approaches. Von Seekt insisted on exploring a full spectrum
of possibilities, so the Army practiced combat situations that ran outside the actual
strategic requirements of Germany.88 So much emphasis was given to realism and
innovative structure that wooden dummy tanks were used to simulate tank action
in these maneuvers. This practice was another aspect of German war training that
received high marks from the American military attaché.89
The maneuver in the hands of the Germans was especially conducive to new
ideas, due to the traditional Prussian operational doctrine of decentralization of
command to the junior officer in the field. This devolution of tactical authority was
not a new aspect of the interwar period, but it allowed the Germans to produce
greater innovation through the maneuvers and exercises. Commanding generals
developed the mission and left it up to the field commander to implement it. This
practice extended to the maneuver as well, leaving freedom to innovate tactically
to junior officers that normally might not otherwise have the opportunity to convey
novel ideas. The role of the high command during battle was to exploit the local
85 Ibid., pp. 105-106.
86 Corum (1992), p. 183.
87 Citino (1999), pp. 105-106.
88 Ibid (1999), p. 18.
89 DiNardo (1997), p. 76.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 85
successes of the junior commanders in the field.90 Attention to planning was another
impressive and important hallmark of the German maneuver. Army commanders
gained constant experience in planning and movement, operational size, and fighting
tactics of division-size units.91
Much of the success of the maneuver can be attributed to the realism produced
by the German umpire system, which surpassed by far anything other militaries had
developed. The basis for the operation of an umpire was the manual Regulations
for Umpire Service During Troop Maneuvers issued by Von Seekt in 1921 and
subsequently revised several times. The umpire’s job was to prevent anything
unrealistic, and to force situations in which both sides would use and realize the
necessity of individual action and combined arms. The umpire had to be a veritable
expert on all types of arms and tactics to be able to both guide and judge the
complicated maneuvers.
The umpires themselves operated in their own military organization, with a head
umpire receiving reports from an array of diverse umpire officers assigned to each
unit. All tactical and operation actions of the maneuver were reported on by umpires
from beginning to end, including judging the effectiveness of fire and tactics by
one side toward the other. The specificity of the umpires’ tasks and training are
astonishing, and led to maneuvers and exercises of the most realistic nature possible.
The umpire regulations also had an annex, the “Guiding Principals for Judging the
Effectiveness of Weapons” which provided guidelines for examining the tactical
utility of all combined arms. The 1924 revision of this annex already demonstrated
some very early blitzkrieg doctrine by suggesting that tanks should be used en masse
and never individually as mere infantry support weapons. Subsequent exercises and
maneuvers would prove these statements correct and greatly advance the doctrine.92
The U.S. military attaché during the period remarked very positively on the training
and use of umpires in the German Army, and noted that the U.S. military had no
literature on the use of umpires and no umpire training.93
The post-maneuver analysis was one of the key components insuring that
successful innovation would be recognized and receive attention by the highest
level of commanders. Each maneuver had its own commander, often an officer of
very high rank in the general staff. He would be in charge of assigning umpires and
ensuring their level of readiness, in addition to receiving the reports and presiding
over a post-maneuver critique that studied the lessons of the previous few days.
Winning or losing a war game or maneuver was inconsequential; what mattered
was the lengthy analysis of lessons learned and tactics discovered. Participation in
the full-scale maneuver critiques was always at the highest level; Von Seekt during
his tenure as commander of the German Army observed the maneuvers personally
and then presided over the critiques—later Army commanders did the same. The
critiques were not secretive affairs; they were often conducted almost like a press
90 Van Creveld (1980), pp. 40-46..
91 Corum (1992), pp. 187-188.
92 Citino (1999), pp. 105-116.
93 Corum (1992), p. 183.
Managing Defense Transformation86
conference—with all the maneuver’s participating officers and foreign attachés in
attendance.94
Brief descriptions of some specific actual maneuvers and exercises will illustrate
the practical application of principal-agent relationships. As early as 1922, exercises
began to yield substantive results in tactical innovation, providing in that year new
important knowledge in signal operations.95 A detailed description of the Group
Command Maneuvers of 1927-1928 provides an excellent example of the direct
link between the high-level principals observing the maneuvers and the field
commanders participating in them. It is valuable as an example of the extensive
nature of the post-maneuver critique that provided for direct information channels
between the actions of field commanders and the high command.96 There were post
exercise daily critiques, followed by a post-maneuver critique that summed up the
entire experience. General von Reinhardt conducted the first day critique. He was
also the commander of the 2nd Group Command that participated in the maneuver.
Among other things he was highly critical of the use of cavalry and stated that this
would be the last maneuver in which certain cavalry maneuvers would be used.
This critique was attended by numerous foreign military attaches in addition to the
German officers. The final post-maneuver critique was astonishing for its high-level
officer participation; besides involving all the officers of the red and blue teams,
it was presided over by Defense Minister Otto Gessler, Chief of Army Command
Heye and again General Reinhardt. The lessons learned during the exercise were
witnessed by the leaderships of the high command and the civilian government.97
The maneuver also was a mechanism through which commanders experienced
and learned the new motorized and armored innovations that later propelled them
to high and reputable positions, and often fame, in the German Army.98 During the
autumn 1932 maneuvers several new experimental formations and units were fielded
for the first time, chief of these being the motorized reconnaissance detachment
(MRD). The testing of that unit was a great success, personally witnessed and
favorably commented on by Chief of the Army Command Kurt von Hammerstein.
The red team demonstrated quick and deep penetrations that were clear early
precursors of blitzkrieg. Overall the maneuver was impressive for its level of
motorization; every unit participating was motorized at least in part. This maneuver
also demonstrated how future high-level commanders had an innovation incentive
by becoming familiar with motorization and armor. Future famous commanders
Gernd von Rundsted, Fedor von Bock, Werner von Fritsch, and Ewald von Kleist all
commanded maneuver forces in the field.99
The close participation of Chief of Army Command Hammerstein was especially
important because he personally planned, in consultation with Oswald Lutz, an
amazingly busy exercise schedule for 1933. Motorized armor played a large role
94 Citino (1999), pp. 106-109, 178-181.
95 Ibid., pp. 116-117.
96 Ibid., pp. 178-181.
97 Ibid., pp. 178-181.
98 Ibid., pp. 212-213.
99 Ibid., pp. 212-215.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 87
because of Hammerstein’s strong agreement with Lutz in that area, building off of
what Lutz had already accomplished with his own exercises. The planned exercises
were extensive enough to involve every single unit in the Army, thus achieving
maximum exposure to lessons learned and new potential discoveries.100 Lutz and
Guderian later in 1935 used the results of large armored maneuvers to bring about
the creation of the first three panzer divisions. The new emphasis on combined arms
was the true German difference from the teachings of the British armor theorists in
the construction of the panzer division; the MRD had even made it into the structure
based on its proven success in prior maneuvers. Indeed the entire combined arms
additions to the tanks in the panzer division came from the steady experimentation
through exercises, war games, and maneuvers on the field. 101
The autumn 1937 maneuvers proved to be invaluable for the acceptance of
the panzer division into the operating core, and were arguably the most important
maneuvers of the interwar period. These maneuvers were by far the largest the
Germans had held during the interwar period, involving 160,000 men and 830 tanks.
The participants were as usual divided into blue and red teams, and the maneuver
was planned for seven days—longer than the normal two or three days. On the very
first day of the maneuver, before hostilities had even begun, the Red 30th division
commander decided that a sharp armored thrust at a particular point in the Blue
forces would be best and requested permission for the action. X corps commander
agreed (Red forces were divided into X and V corps) and amazingly an entire panzer
division was given to the Red 30th division commander to use at his disposal. This is
an amazingly clear example of giving a subordinate both the incentive to innovate
and the power to carry out his ideas, without sacrificing higher level authority or
damaging the chain of command.102
This also was the first opportunity that the panzer division had been given to
perform in front of the entire Army—and perform it did, surpassing the hopes of
even the most ardent of mobile armor advocates. In only four days, the red armor 3rd
panzer division thrust had captured a vital bridgehead, broken through the blue lines,
and destroyed the blue position in that entire area. The move was unprecedented
for the German maneuver; the planned seven-day maneuver had been effectively
decided in favor of the Red team on day four. Most importantly, the participation
of the high command ensured that the success of this junior field officer in proving
the innovative use of armor would be quickly accepted into the operating corps.
Chief of the General Staff Beck was there, as well as his 1938 successor Gen. Franz
Halder, who was astonished by the “fluid mobility”103 and effectiveness of the panzer
division.104 The spectacular success of the panzer division and the presence of a full
spectrum of witnesses, from the common soldier on the field to the high command,
resulted in the extremely rapid incorporation of panzer instruction into training
centers, most importantly the Kriegsakademie. By 1938 students there were already
100 Ibid., pp. 216-218.
101 Ibid., pp. 231.
102 Ibid., pp. 236-242.
103 Quoted in Citino (1999), p. 241.
104 Ibid., pp. 236-241.
Managing Defense Transformation88
studying general principals of panzer operation and deployment and participating in
simulations and tactical problem solving.105
During 1939 the maneuver, exercise, and staff tour continued to provide evidence
for successful innovation. One of the most successful staff tours occurred in 1939
and involved Guderian and large numbers of tanks, further demonstrating to the staff
their impressive mobility and effectiveness.106 The Battle of France, which remains
the most effective and memorable use of blitzkrieg, was supported and finally agreed
on because of high-level attention to war gaming simulations. Germans took the
results of war games more seriously than others. The consistency of war gaming
before the attack into France also helped solidify and improve the plan, as did the
lessons learned in the Polish campaign the previous year.107
External Influences and Methods of Oversight
Kazan and Lipetsk
Due to the extensive restrictions of the Versailles treaty the German Army in the
1920s had to seek both technical, weapons, and doctrinal and tactical development
outside of its borders. Some of this evasive export occurred through joint training
and development efforts with the Red Army in the Soviet Union; it was coordinated
secretly on the German side by the Truppenamt and the Defense Office of the
Reichswehr (German Army). Von Seekt founded the program, creating a special
staff within the Intelligence Section of the Truppenamt (T-3) tasked with negotiating
and coordinating the joint efforts with the Soviets.108
The two most important of these joint efforts in Russia were the clandestine tank
school at Kazan and the equally secret air school in Lipetsk. The direct management
(although geographically removed) by the highest military offices and the immense
effort they expended to maintain the secret collaboration clearly demonstrated the
importance they attached to the endeavor. Intense and expensive smuggling of men
and machine parts were necessary, and on one occasion three dead Germans from
airplane crashes were smuggled back as spare parts. There was a substantial flow
of German officers through Moscow going to tour the facilities, which ensured
ample attention from the high command; Colonels Keitel and von Brauchitsch of
the Truppenamt visited the installations. Contact and management was maintained
with Soviet representation at the German Embassy and with a Reichswehr office in
Moscow.109
The Air Training Center at Lipetsk was very important for the development of air
doctrine and the testing of new airplanes. It opened in 1924, and between then and
1930 it housed around 200 Germans, fifty of which ran training courses. After 1930
105 Ibid., pp. 242-243.
106 Walter Goerlitz, The German General Staff (New York: Barnes & Noble, 1995), p.
301.
107 Ernest May, Strange Victory (New York: Hill and Wang, 2000), pp. 258, 261-263.
108 Corum (1992), p. 98.
109 Whaley (1984), p. 80-81.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 89
that number rose to over 300 to facilitate an enlarged aircraft testing program. A
great many prototype aircraft were tested at Lipetsk, and pilots were trained in a one-
year course that covered all the aspects of flight. They also received some experience
in joint operations with the Soviet air force, like the joint operations at Kazan. By
the time the school closed in 1933, it had produced 120 fighter pilots, 300 air and
ground crew, and 450 administrative personnel—all highly qualified.110 Their chief
importance now came primarily from their capacity to be instructors in Germany,
perpetuating the innovation achieved at Lipetsk.111
The tank school at Kazan was established in 1927 and was a major success for
the armor program, just as Lipetsk was for air doctrine and development. Rigorous
testing took place at Kazan, and by 1927, tank prototypes were tested frequently at
the clandestine training grounds. German technicians were permanently stationed in
Kazan from 1926 on.112 Testing of several tank and vehicle models began in 1927,
and courses were taught on tank tactics and development. Because Kazan was the
only center in the German Army both for experimentation and training, discoveries
at Kazan made an instantaneous transition into the literature and learning.113
Kazan and Lipetsk were formal mechanisms with some informal aspects that
promoted innovation yet avoided an ad hoc nature through formal planning and
organization. The necessary limitations of concealment produced institutions of the
barest necessity and size, stripped of unnecessary bureaucratic layers. The small
number of officers (principals and agents) stationed there at any one time (200-300 for
Lipetsk, less for Kazan) ensured interaction among innovators and that all members
of the operation would be first-hand participants in innovation. Both the Kazan and
Lipetsk schools were also essentially “shielded” from the costs of innovation by their
geographic and secretive isolation from the main military establishment in Germany.
The foreign base meant that it was difficult for conservative elements at home to
block new ideas. Aside from Kazan’s isolation, it was under the jurisdiction of IN-
6, the Inspectorate of Motor Troops and thus shielded even within the main core of
the Army.114 The installations themselves were primed for innovation because of
their small and intimate nature and the variety of armor and technological experts
concentrated there. Innovations also had a clear channel for acceptance. Clear lines
of accountability and responsibility were preserved within the structure.115 The lack
of extensive bureaucracy strengthened efficacy and reduced the distance novel ideas
had to travel between subordinates and their commanding officers; indeed in many
cases the commanding officers were directly present for experimentation.
Innovation is most likely if it complements clearly delineated formal structures and
procedures for promotion, and both Kazan and Lipetsk were military units with strong
potential for promotion through successful innovation. Incentives for innovation
came from the opportunity to work on and develop two forms of warfare, either tank
110 Ibid., p. 81.
111 Corum (1997), pp. 115-117.
112 Whaley (1984), p. 32.
113 Corum (1992), pp. 190-195.
114 Ibid., p. 192.
115 Ibid., pp. 190-193.
Managing Defense Transformation90
or air, that were clearly recognized to be of the highest value to the military. Officers,
teachers and students—Kazan produced slightly more than 50 armor experts—were
now leaders in important technological and tactical developments which would
prime them for promotion. Other successful participants included the engineers from
Daimler, Rheinmetall, Bussing & Magirus that would now be experienced in the
doctrinal direction of the armed forces and could benefit from successful innovation
as well.116 Among the participants there could be no doubt that successful innovation
would bring about personal success; the importance that the high command attached
to the work in these centers was clear. It also ensured that innovation there would
find quick and easy incorporation into the Army. The Chief of Army Command von
Bloomberg was so worried about delay in the establishment of the tank school that
he personally discussed the matter with the Soviet Commissar for War. Extreme
effort was exerted to get it running; new types of bombs were smuggled across the
Baltic at night in foggy weather and fake identities were arranged for officers to
travel there. High ranking soldiers like Colonels Keitel and Von Brauchitch also
traveled under secret identities to tour the facilities. 117
The list of high-level officers and innovators that these clandestine training
camps produced is impressive, indicating that their participation in tank technical
and doctrinal development fulfilled promotion incentives. Kazan produced or trained
Volckheim, Nehring, Reinhardt—not only high level officers but also important
tactical thinkers. Many of the graduates of the school became the German Army’s
leading armored warfare instructors during the 1930s and 1940s—for example the
first three commanders of the Tank Gunnery School (established 1934). Radlemaier
and Harpe became commanders of the Panzer Troops School, and others became
important armor commanders (like Nehring and Rheinhardt). Friedrich Kuhn,
Kazan’ first course leader, became commandant of the Panzer Troops School.118
Lipetsk in the year 1928 alone contained four future generals der fleiger, nine
generals of the Luftwaffe, and ten future major generals. The Lipetsk facilities
produced Kurt Student, founder and commander of paratroops of the Luftwaffe,
and trained future field marshals Abert Kesselring, Hans Stumpff, and Hugo Von
Spurrle as pilots.119 Lipetsk was extremely important in the development of German
air doctrine; the importance of close air support and ground support missions was
reinforced. This organizational learning was facilitated, in part, through joint missions
with the Soviet military. The Lipetsk fighter school instructors were directed to write
the fighter operational doctrine for the Shadow Luftwaffe; this meant that written
standard doctrine was produced directly by a highly innovative mechanism.120 The
innovators themselves wrote what they learned directly into manuals requested
by the high command—there is no greater or more direct channel for conveying
novel ideas and incorporating them. Nehring in 1932-1934, who had just finished
the armor course at Kazan, was asked by the training section of the Truppenamt to
116 Ibid., p. 195.
117 Ibid., pp. 190-192.
118 Ibid., pp. 192-195.
119 Whaley (1984), p. 81.
120 Corum (1997), pp. 115-117.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 91
write on the tactics of the Panzer brigade.121 Kurt Student visited every year and
had the opportunity to test around 800 aircraft parts. This impressive list of future
commanders demonstrates the importance of the center as a testing and training
ground.
Joint training with the Soviet army and air force was an informal aspect of the
two installations. At Kazan there was exchange of officers for duty, in 1926-1927
alone 39 German officers were assigned to duty with the Red Army. The Soviet tank
commanders and the German officers worked effectively together on technical and
training aspects of the program. Kazan’s capabilities were increased further by the
British decision to sell modern tanks to the Soviet army. By 1930 there were enough
tanks at Kazan for battalion and company maneuvers, and the Germans were able to
participate in truly large-scale Soviet maneuvers—observed by officers from Army
headquarters including General von Hammerstein-Equord. Joint exercises continued
through 1931 with the benefit of the most modern British tank technology. The
experiences increased opportunities for innovative thinking and produced a group
of German officers with direct experience in combat maneuvers involving tanks and
a sense of confidence in further writings on the subject.122 Experience at Lipetsk,
as with the Kazan school, was gained through joint operations with the Russian air
force.
External Sources of Information
The German Army managed the acquisition of external information through an
extensive structure for monitoring foreign military developments. The Intelligence
Section of the Truppenamt (T-3) was the primary organizational unit for this task.
T-3 made the surveillance of foreign military developments its top priority, and
concentrated on the most technically developed nations—the U.S., Britain, and
France. The office collected publications on foreign weaponry and vehicles, translated
and repackaged it in a series of Technical Bulletins. T-3 also intensely studied the
performance of new equipment employed in the French maneuvers of 1922-23 and
the British maneuvers of 1924, and then distributed reports of the results throughout
the Army.123 Von Seekt required all officers to speak a second language, and there
was a great deal of travel by officers, who then reported on foreign developments.124
The intelligence section also aided the development of radio use through closely
monitoring the effectiveness of radio use in the British maneuvers of 1924.125 The
civilian sector was monitored closely as well. IN-7 and the Weapons Office, for
example, were able to help advance their mobile army communications program by
keeping close tabs on civilian developments.126
121 Ibid., p. 197.
122 Corum (1992), pp. 194-196.
123 Ibid., pp. 102-103.
124 Corum (1997), pp. 100-101.
125 Corum (1992), p. 108.
126 Ibid., p. 108.
Managing Defense Transformation92
Many studies of foreign military developments and articles on foreign technology
breakthrough and use, including much armor development, appeared in the journal
Militarwochenblatt. Much of the British tactician and theorist Fuller’s work appeared
there.127 Study of foreign militaries was no intermittent practice by the MW; every
issue contained translations and critique of foreign military literature. The most
serious student of and writer on foreign tank development, an Austrian automotive
engineer, wrote numerous articles for the MW during the 1920s.128 The quick
evolution of German armor thought from re-statement of foreign developments to
expression of indigenous ones can be seen in the MW—in 1923 most of its articles
on armor are from foreign sources, while by 1926 they are primarily German.129
The Role of Industry
The German management and adoption of the blitzkrieg innovation would have been
impossible with out the aid of German industry. Cooperation with industry allowed
for the evasion of treaty restrictions, as well as provided a variety of alternative
information sources. In addition, German industry created and maintained ties to
foreign industry which provided additional sources of alternative information.
Development of armor by German industry during World War I was preserved
when Josef Vollmer, one of Germany’s principal armor designers, fled to Sweden
at the end of the war. Vollmer took several disassembled prototypes of a light tank
known as the LK II with him. In Sweden, Vollmer went to work for Landswerk,
which was purchased by Krupp, the German heavy equipment firm. The LK II
became the basis for the Swedish tank known as the Strv m/21.130 German Army
officers worked closely with Vollmer in the Strv m/21 development, though this
cooperation was highly clandestine. It would be here in Sweden that Heinz Guderian
would first drive a tank.
German industry produced a number of prototypes from 1926 to 1929 under
a variety of codenames such as Grosstraktor (field tractor). Competition between
firms such as Rheinmetall, Daimler-Benz and Krupp allowed for a number of
different approaches to tank design. In particular, suspension systems were advanced
by this competition.131 It is worth noting that firms such as Opel and Ford were
excluded because their foreign connections rendered them suspect. This would have
implications for later mass production of tanks. Opel and Ford were automobile
firms which had experience with mass production techniques, whereas Krupp and
Rheinmetall were heavy equipment firms with limited mass production experience.
The designs the heavy equipment firms produced were not as readily produced in
rapid assembly line fashion.
The first true panzer design was the result of design competition between
Daimler, Benz, Henschel, Krupp, MAN, and Rheinmetall in the early 1930s. The
127 Ibid., p. 142.
128 Corum (1997), p. 103.
129 Ibid., p. 130.
130 Christopher Chant, The Tank (London: Haynes Publishing, 1994), p. 106.
131 Whaley (1984)
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 93
Krupp design was chosen, though elements of the other designs were incorporated.
The Panzer Kampfwagen I (Pz I) was primarily an experiment, though it would
be used in combat. However, even as production began in 1934, it was declared
obsolete and a new design was commissioned known as the Pz II.
The Pz II was a result of a design competition between Henschel, Krupp, and
MAN. The MAN design was accepted, though Daimler-Benz apparently contributed
some elements to the superstructure.132 The Pz II was a stopgap until the Pz III and
Pz IV were available, but served as a design learning experience for industry and
army alike.
The Pz III would be the main battle tank of the Wehrmacht through the early
stages of the war. Both Pz III and Pz IV were a result of competition between the
same firms that had designed the Pz I and Pz II. The Pz III went through multiple
prototypes with numerous changes to the suspension and drive system. These
changes reflected the preferences of each firm. The heavy industry firms such as
Krupp preferred leaf springing each road wheel or longitudinal arrangements for
suspension, as would be expected from firms that built locomotives. Daimler-Benz,
with automobile experience, preferred latitudinal suspension. Eventually, a transverse
torsion bar arrangement was settled on for Pz III, after much experimentation. This
competition between firms allowed a number of alternate viewpoints and sources of
information to be presented to managers.133
German industry also contracted overseas for technology the German military
might not have otherwise had access to. German firms, for example, licensed the
highly efficient Pratt-Whitney air-cooled radial engine, which had been developed
in conjunction with the U.S. Navy.134 This licensing arrangement not only allowed
for immediate access to alternate information on technology, it also allowed for
“reverse-engineering” of the technology. German industry was thus able to acquire
advanced technology through commercial arrangements that enhanced both military
and industrial capabilities.
The Czech Takeover
The German takeover of Czechoslovakia in March 1939, though coming late in
the period, provided an excellent source of alternative information for German
principals. The Czech army had a number of modern tanks that the German army
annexed. Czechoslovakia also possessed an advanced armaments industry centering
on the Skoda arms works, the absorption of which provided valuable alternative
information for German principals. Skoda was one of the largest munitions plants in
the world and had large numbers of technicians and engineers. The German takeover
allowed for principals in both the German military and German industry to evaluate
the reports of subordinates more effectively by referencing what had been done at
Skoda.
132 Chant (1994), p. 48
133 Ibid., p. 50.
134 Corum (1997), p. 177.
Managing Defense Transformation94
It is worth noting that the Czech tanks which would be incorporated into the
Wehrmacht as Pz-35(t) and Pz-38(t) were designed with the aid of Josef Vollmer, who
had left Sweden for Czechoslovakia. The Czech tanks were effective and roughly
as capable as the German Pz III. Absorption of these new machines provided an
external validation of German design and practice.
Innovation in the Spanish Civil War
The German participation in the Spanish Civil War was an experience that
incorporated a number of principal-agent relationships conducive to innovation.
The Luftwaffe units in Spain were exposed to important external information, were
informal in much of their organizational structure, and necessitated a very close
yet unrestrictive relationship between agents experimenting in actual combat and
the high-level principals monitoring them. The German Army was able, from 1936-
1939, not only to test innovation already accomplished but also to further advance
existing doctrine through direct participation in the Spanish Civil War.135
At the start of the Spanish Civil War, commander Francisco Franco of the
Nationalist Forces passed to two German businessmen a message requesting
military aid from Germany. Hitler eagerly assented and commanded Goring to begin
using the Luftwaffe for aid, which began with airlifting Spanish military personnel
and equipment from northern Africa to Spain. In an impressive demonstration of
German military efficiency and readiness in 1936, a significant German presence
was on the ground in Africa assisting only four days after Hitler’s decision.136 The
full four years of participation with Franco’s forces, from 1936-1939, provided the
Luftwaffe with a wide range of experience in air and joint land-air operations, and
provided ideal testing of innovations in armor doctrine.137 The German participation
went further than simply practicing and testing their current doctrine; the campaign
was structurally unique in that the force was relatively small and tightly-knit, and
necessitated a simple, informal command structure that grouped both Army and
Luftwaffe units under a single Luftwaffe command, the Condor Legion.138
Commanders were of high quality, forward thinking, and tactically very hands-
on. Junior officers had many opportunities for expressing new ideas, that they were
able to directly test in actual combat. The poor quality of the opponent and near
absence of air opposition encouraged realistic experimentation without fear of heavy
losses, especially in the area of joint air-land operations.
By October 1936 the Spanish civil war had developed into a stalemate, prompting
the Wehrmacht high command to increase the small German force there into a larger
operation. The force was upgraded to over 5,000 Luftwaffe personnel using over 100
of their most advanced aircraft; the new force was named the Condor Legion—it
included a bomber group, fighter group, reconnaissance group, staff, flak battalion,
135 Ibid., pp. 219-223.
136 Ibid., pp. 182-183.
137 Herbert Mason, Jr. The Rise of the Luftwaffe (New York: Dial Press, 1973), pp. 288-
289.
138 Corum (1997), pp. 187-188.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 95
logistics supply battalion, and medical group. New preproduction prototype German
aircraft models were included for combat testing. Army participation included a tank
battalion and around two hundred military advisors, supported by the Condor Legion
logistics group and all serving under Major General Hugo Sperrle and Chief of Staff
von Richthofen, both senior Luftwaffe officers.139 During the subsequent years of
combat the Germans would gain the opportunity to test a wide array of new aircraft
and to assess their military faults and benefits, making the needed changes. Equally
important was the constant testing of tactics and combat formations with the new
weaponry.140
This informal command structure, placing both the Luftwaffe and Army under
the same command, was important in helping produce the air-ground coordination
and blitzkrieg innovations soon to come.141 It was a simple structure; the commander
of the Condor Legion reported directly to the Special Staff W (the high command
structure in Germany coordinating the effort), which reported to the Army high
command.142 The Condor Legion had the benefit of an easy access to the highest
levels of leadership, yet enjoyed relative freedom from intrusive oversight. They
were separated geographically and possessed tactical authority to control the course
of the war. Hitler and the central government showed almost no interest in the day
to day management of the operation, leaving the Wehrmacht and Luftwaffe to direct
the effort. The lack of micro-management by central command allowed Condor
Legion commanders to operate as agents with more freedom to experiment and
incorporate. These commanders were also principals of the Condor Legion, and
the disentanglement from central command provided stronger principal-agent links
between these commanders and their agents in the field.143
Commanders Sperrle and Richthofen were very hands-on commanders,
overseeing attacks and constantly constructing forward bases so that they could
personally witness the actions. The difficulty of coordinating air-ground attacks,
especially with Spanish forces, necessitated this intense involvement, but it allowed
the highest command level—commander and chief of staff—to see innovative air-
ground tactics employed first-hand.144 Richthofen had come to Spain specifically
hoping to see the Luftwaffe and its equipment in action,145 and has been described
as the “spiritual mentor” of close air support development by Karl Ries and Hans
Ring in their book on the Condor Legion146. The highly vested commander is an
important commodity for innovation, and the command in Spain was both eager to
succeed and willing to remain ever-present during innovative tactical operations. As
with the German maneuver, it becomes obvious how important it can be for leaders
to personally witness innovation.
139 Ibid., pp. 187-188.
140 Mason (1973), pp. 236-237.
141 Ibid., pp. 187-188.
142 Ibid., pp. 190.
143 Corum (1997), p. 188.
144 Ibid., pp. 194-196.
145 Mason (1973), p. 219.
146 Karl Ries and Hans Ring. The Legion Condor (Westchester: Schiffer Pub. Ltd,
1992), p. 234.
Managing Defense Transformation96
Agents of course had incentives to successfully innovate because they were
involved in actual combat, and despite the obviously inferior nature of the enemy,
their lives were dependent on the success of the operation. Even the junior officers
not directly exposed to combat were responsible for the successful execution of a real
war effort. Another benefit of having a small and somewhat independent operating
force was demonstrated by the ability of junior officers to express novel ideas to
higher command. One young lieutenant, Werner Molders, developed ideas on
tactical fighter formations that were implemented during the course of the operation
in Spain. He changed the traditional three plane “V” formation into a pair formation,
a superior structure which the Condor Legion used to great effect.147 The combination
of the highly vested yet unrestricted leadership and small operating core of junior
officers with incentive to innovate is a perfect example of the proper principal-agent
relationship, neither excessively top-down nor bottom-up.
Another informal aspect of the German command in Spain was the necessity
of operating through the Nationalist Spanish command in order to coordinate with
ground units. At first this might seem like a detriment to the process of innovation,
given that Spanish military leadership was of such low quality compared to their
German collaborators. In the ground-support sphere, however, it led to improved
communications structures. In order to better coordinate attacks, Luftwaffe
personnel had to work tirelessly to find ways of jointly planning the air and ground
offensives. Besides having to work hard at the command level, the Luftwaffe placed
communications and liaison teams at the front lines for better information sharing.148
Herbert Mason describes these inter-service cooperation lessons as being very
beneficial for the later blitzkrieg operations during the Second World War.149
Air-ground coordination improved a great deal during the campaign based on the
increased effort for managerial efficiency. The informal command link reinforced
the obvious need for good air-ground coordination because the Spanish Army was
repeatedly unable to follow up after Luftwaffe forward attacks. It was a constant
irritation to the German commanders, who became aware of what a well-coordinated
attack could accomplish and what innovative information sharing would need to
take place to achieve it.150 Thus in only a year’s time of combat experience in Spain,
the Luftwaffe had truly mastered close air support. On the December 29, 1937, they
participated in a battle in Teruel, in which they executed excellent forward bombing
that allowed the Nationalist ground forces to follow up, then seamlessly switched
to bombing of the follow-up Republican reserve forces 151 This battlefield proof of
the effectiveness of ground attack led directly to technological innovation; Condor
Legion commanders requested the development of heavily armored aircraft made
147 Corum (1997), p. 207.
148 Ibid., p. 194.
149 Mason (1973), pp. 288-289.
150 Raymond Proctor, Hitler’s Luftwaffe in the Spanish Civil War (Westport, CT:
Greenwood Press, 1983), pp. 252-253.
151 Corum, (1997), p. 204.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 97
specifically for ground attack. The Henschel and Focke Wulf companies produced
the Henschel 129 as a result.152
Incentives for the German commanders were naturally based in part on
the fact that they were participating in a real conflict, trying to secure a military
victory and protect the lives of their troops. Many German officers experiencing
the innovative work in Spain later gained valuable promotions, demonstrated by
Sperrle’s advancement in 1937 to field marshal of the Luftwaffe, and the promotion
of officers Drum, Plocher, Galland, and Seidemann to the rank of general. Von
Richthofen later served as a senior commander in most of the major theaters of the
war, including Britain and Russia.153 An example of direct processing of innovation
due to command promotion from the Spanish Civil War to the main Luftwaffe force
came after evidence of German deficiency in night and bad weather flying. The
German accidents resulting from poor visibility crashes had an immediate impact
on Condor Legion commanders, and new training practices were immediately
implemented. Sperrle in 1937 returned to Germany to become a commander of the
Luftwaffe Third Air Fleet, and immediately strengthened the deficient night and bad
weather training.154
The importance of Sperrle’s promotion should not be underestimated; he later
found himself in the position to directly implement exercises and experimentation
designed to strengthen CAS practices. Both Sperrle and von Richthofen were two of
the very few Luftwaffe officers to achieve the rank of field marshal.155 In Germany
Sperrle ordered Luftwaffe commanders to set up joint war games with Army units,
and used his influence to get Army commanders to allow the participation of the
Luftwaffe in their own war gaming and exercises. His Luftwaffe officers were not
allowed to merely attend these exercises, but had to participate as commanding air
officers.156
German air power innovation was aided, particularly in the north of Spain, by
their opponents’ lack of air power. German Luftwaffe operations in the Basque
region of northern Spain were carried out virtually unopposed by enemy aircraft,
giving Luftwaffe command the opportunity to execute ground support, bombing
and experimental operations at will. The experimental process benefited from
the environmentally-constructed high error tolerance.157 This historical anomaly
suggests opportunities for successful innovation can be abundant when competing
against a highly inferior enemy. Ineffective opposition led to high error tolerance
for experimentation because there was much less chance of penalty for unsuccessful
attempts at actions like close air support or use of massed armor. For example, the
near-perfect operating conditions for the Stuka dive-bombers, due largely to the
152 Ibid., p. 245.
153 Ibid., p. 220, pp. 199-200.
154 Ibid., pp. 222-223.
155 Proctor (1983), p. 260.
156 Corum (1997), pp. 245-247.
157 Ibid., pp. 193-196.
Managing Defense Transformation98
ineffectiveness of Spanish anti-aircraft guns against them, led to tactical perfection
and large-scale passing on of lessons learned to parent units in Germany.158
An alternate source of information was provided by the participation of the
Russian military, which committed forces on behalf of the Spanish Republic. The
military value of the fighter/bomber was further emphasized for the Germans in
March 1937 when Russian-piloted fighter aircraft nearly decimated a motorized
corps of Italian troops. The action demonstrated the devastating potential of tactical
ground bombardment. These results, in particular, were analyzed by the German
command and the international military press.159
A unifying military culture occurs when both commanders and sub-units
envision the same set of possibilities. This was facilitated by the comprehensive
exposure of large numbers of the Luftwaffe to the Condor Legion’s innovations. In
the interest of providing combat experience for its officers, over fourteen thousand
German personnel of all levels of rank were rotated in and out of Spain, seeing
and participating firsthand the new innovations. The rapid production of combat
veterans that returned to their units after a year of service in Spain ensured the rapid
integration of the new tactics throughout the operating core of the Luftwaffe.160 The
experience had an immense influence on Luftwaffe doctrine, tactics, and technology
through its involvement in every type of air campaign. Commanders and managers
involved with innovation also infused the Luftwaffe; in addition to Sperrle and
von Richthofen, future generals Drum, Plocher, and Seidemann all gained combat
experience in the Spanish Civil War. The Luftwaffe gained a command staff
experienced in planning and execution of joint land-air combat operations.161 This
heavy exposure to innovation worked the same way as the comprehensive post-War
studies of the German Army’s failures and the changes that needed to be made—by
saturation through involvement of a large number of officers.162
The commitment by the German Army of one armored battalion to the Spanish
campaign, under the leadership of the Luftwaffe, provided excellent opportunities
for testing blitzkrieg tactics. These opportunities began after the Fascist forces had
essentially broken the fixed Nationalist lines and initiated a war of maneuver. In what
was considered one of the first true blitzkrieg operations, in 1938 the armored force
was able to break through the front lines and make a thirty-six kilometer advance
in one day. The Luftwaffe had to make several forward deployments to continue
support to the quick-moving armor squadron, gaining valuable experience for future
blitzkrieg operations.163 Many attribute the German experience in the Spanish Civil
War as the final field test of the joint doctrinal and operational lessons that had been
first introduced at Kazan and Lipetsk.
158 Ries and Ring (1992), p. 235.
159 Corum (1997), p. 193.
160 Mason (1973), p. 236.
161 Corum (1997), p. 220.
162 Whaley (1984), pp. 61-62.
163 Corum (1997), pp. 205-206.
The German Blitzkrieg Transformation 99
Conclusion
In 1937 when the German Army held the all-important autumn maneuvers in
which blitzkrieg proved itself beyond a doubt, the close air support employed was
a direct result of Sperrle’s participation in the Spanish Civil War and the Condor
Legion’s experience with blitzkrieg.164 As Herbert Mason confirms, Condor Legion
commander Richthofen—like Sperrle before him—became a passionate supporter
of the Luftwaffe’s close air support role in blitzkrieg operations. During the invasion
of Poland, Richthofen was so committed to securing the benefits of air and ground
cooperation he had learned in Spain that he shared command headquarters with
Tenth Army commander von Reichenau. This excellent inter-service cooperation,
also learned through dealings with the Spanish officers, facilitated Richthofen’s
close air support to Reichenau’s armor during that campaign and was a key element
in the next year’s success in France. 165 Indeed, Richthofen’s close air support against
the French at Sedan facilitated the crossing of the Meuse and the breakout from the
Meuse river bridgeheads on 15 May 1940 by Guderian’s XIX Panzer Corps and the
XLI Panzer Corps, the seminal event in the Allied collapse in the West.
In another irony, this German advantage was fleeting. The blitzkrieg successes
against Poland and France, going down from the wide to the narrow openings of a
funnel, were inverted in the following campaign against the Soviet Union where
the German forces traversed the funnel from narrow aperture to wide, dissipating
their mass over the vast Russian land mass and stretching their air assets to beyond
the breaking point. Strategic mismanagement and over-extension will always trump
doctrinal innovation and tactical brilliance.
The history of successful military transformations also reveals that others always
will catch up. By 1944 the United States Army had almost double the armored
divisions as the Germans, beginning in 1940 with none. Indeed, the interwar
experiences of U.S. armor innovators, George Patton and Dwight Eisenhower, is one
of repudiation and official rebuke by higher authorities. Yet, the circumstances of the
onset of the war and the initial disaster at Kasserine Pass brought to the forefront
these experimenters whose views had been vindicated by the German successes. That
the Germans did all that they did without the pressures of an ongoing war or high
intensity threat environment stands as a truly remarkable achievement in the history
of military transformation. The combination of the highly vested yet unrestricted
leadership and small operating core of junior officers with incentive to innovate is a
perfect example of the proper principal-agent relationship, neither excessively top-
down nor bottom-up. As demonstrated by the following chapters, this achievement
was neither inevitable nor has it been easily replicated by other military services.
164 Ibid., p. 247.
165 Mason (1973), pp. 288-289.
This page intentionally left blank
Chapter 4
The U.S. Navy Transformed: Managing
Change From Sea To Air
By the onset of World War I, the prolonged transformation of naval warfare had
culminated with the ascendance of the Battle Fleet. From the mid-nineteenth century
onward, the mighty navies of the world gradually but deliberately harnessed the
technological fruits of the Industrial Revolution to produce a new class of battleship
and to re-organize naval command and control in service of a new mission of long-
range combat at sea. The protracted fusion of new types of big-gun cruisers with
evolving changes in strategy, tactics, education, and training brought about the first
true revolution in naval warfare since the arrival of the line-of-battle ship in the
seventeenth century.1 But by the end of the war, the seeds of another revolution at
sea began to germinate.
It was during the halcyon days of the Battle Fleet, in the immediate aftermath
of World War I, that the great navies of the world began in earnest to explore the
potential of the modern aircraft carrier. The Royal Navy, the purveyor of the seas for
the previous two centuries, exhibited early interest in testing and deploying a wide
variety of sea platforms for launching naval aircraft in support of the fleet. By 1918,
the British introduced the Argus, the precursor to the modern carrier. Imperial Japan
followed by pioneering carrier-centric attack formations and elevating the stature
of naval aviators.2 Yet it was the U.S. Navy that after initial foot-dragging surged
full speed ahead, honing and integrating innovative technologies, strategies, and
tactics that transformed carriers and naval aviation into an independent strike force.
This achievement was marked by sufficient funding for new technologies, extensive
experimentation, entrepreneurial leadership, a coherent service-wide vision of future
warfare, and doctrinal and organizational adjustment; all trademarks of effective
military change.3 Together these factors enabled the Navy to overcome bureaucratic
1 Holger H. Herwig, “The Battlefleet Revolution, 1885-1914,” in MacGregor Knox
and Williamson Murray, eds. The Dynamics of Military Revolution, 1300-2050 (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 2001), pp. 114-131.
2 For a discussion of the Royal Navy’s early (1914-1922) enthusiasm and open-
mindedness towards carriers, see especially Geoffrey Till, “Adopting the Aircraft Carrier: The
British, American and Japanese Case Studies,” in Williamson Murray and Allan R. Millett,
eds., Military Innovation in the Interwar Period (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
1996), pp. 194-203.
3 Theo Farrell and Terry Terriff, “The Sources of Military Change,” in Theo Farrell
and Terry Terriff, eds., The Sources of Military Change: Culture, Politics, and Technology
(Boulder, CO, Lynne Rienner Publishers, 2002): 5; Willliamson Murray and MacGregor Knox,
“The Future Behind Us,” in Knox and Murray (2001), pp. 179-181; and Andrew Krepinevich,
Managing Defense Transformations102
inertia, allowing carrier aircraft and task groups to step out of the shadow of the
battleship to assume core missions of projecting power and disabling enemy warships.
By the end of World War II, this new way of war was fully institutionalized by the
U.S. Navy, prefiguring naval combat into the twenty-first century.4
The U.S. Navy’s success at orchestrating the “revolution at sea” was as curious
as it was remarkable; neither preordained nor fully predicted by rival explanations.
While the U.S. military confronted powerful strategic pressures during the interwar
period, neither the high threat environment nor new technological possibilities
determined the variable rates and patterns of naval transformation, or that it would
be a traditional “follower,” such as U.S. Navy, that would eclipse Britain’s initial
advances and eventually surpass Japan at sharpening carrier-led power projection.5
The procurement of radically new naval aviation technologies, let alone profound
displacement of the reigning Battle Fleet and intra-service embrace of carrier-
based power projection, is particularly difficult to reconcile with the pessimistic
prognosis of internally driven change served up by traditional organizational theory.
Nor, for that matter, do the timing and pattern of transformation jibe with “new
wave” material-functional or cognitive-cultural explanations of organizational
change, as the operational and technological innovations to carrier warfare
dramatically outpaced the diverse and incremental adjustments that were initially
envisioned or rewarded. In short, why and how the U.S. Navy evolved from an
initial conservative approach to systematically transcending both political and
normative organizational barriers to nurture a fundamentally new and uncertain
way of war remains a puzzle.
This chapter explicates the managerial success of U.S. carrier transformation.
What made the U.S. Navy, an organization with an entrenched bureaucracy and
culture, receptive to exploring and sustaining a new way of war? How did carrier
advocates overcome internal political obstacles, including the ascendancy of the
“big gun” club, as well mitigate the inherent uncertainty associated with sustaining
and honing innovative and unproven technologies and practices? How did they
succeed at orchestrating a new synthesis of technological breakthroughs in naval
aviation with dramatic shifts in strategy, tactics, experimentation, training, and
education at an otherwise inauspicious moment for radical change within the
service?
The argument advanced here is that the U.S. Navy’s success at bringing about the
remarkable transformation to a carrier fleet rested with the convergence of incentives
“Military Experimentation: Time to Get Serious,” Backgrounder (March 31, 1999), available
at: www.csbaonline.org/Publica…/B.20000331.Military_Experimen.htm.
4 As summed up by one study, the U.S. Navy entered World War II as a battleship
navy and came out of it as the preeminent carrier fleet. “Less than four years later the U.S.
Navy ended the war with 28 large carriers and 71 smaller types. Naval aviation commanded
over 41,000 planes.” Andrew Krepinevich, Transforming to Victory: The U.S. Navy, Carrier
Aviation, and Preparing for War in the Pacific (Cambridge, MA: The Olin Institute, 2000),
available at http://www.csbaonline.org/4Publications/Publications.htm.
5 Emily O. Goldman, “Receptivity to Revolution,” in Emily O. Goldman and Leslie C.
Eliason, eds., The Diffusion of Military Technology and Ideas (Stanford: Stanford University
Press, 2003), pp. 267-303.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 103
and inclinations for innovation that cut across different levels of hierarchy within
the naval establishment. The story is not one of new technologies and institutional
reform imposed on the U.S. Navy by the civilian leadership. Nor is it a clear-cut
episode of top-down or deceitful management of innovation within the Navy.
Rather, the shift from foot-dragging to steady progress depended on a changing
constellation of intra-organizational mechanisms that allowed a committed group of
pioneers to overcome information asymmetries and conflicting incentives within the
U.S. Navy, as well as to tap into managerial norms in their efforts to champion new
ways for naval aviation to solve practical problems at hand. The secret to success
lied with the gradual alignment of material oversight and incentives with established
problem-solving norms within the service that mitigated principal-agent problems
and facilitated the adroit management of the twin pressures of exploitation and
exploration of a new carrier way of war.
The chapter unfolds in two parts. The first section evaluates the consistency
of the scope, pace, and pattern of U.S. carrier transformation with expectations
generated by contemporary material-functional and cognitive-cultural explanations
of organizational change. Though elements of each resonate in the case, respective
causal mechanisms are incomplete. The second section applies insights from the
modified principal-agent framework. Here we analyze how shifting procedural
advances combined with shared understandings of professional standards and methods
of assessment to create common interests and knowledge about naval aviation up
and down the service hierarchy. We illustrate the specific procedural mechanisms
that complemented long-standing managerial norms by easing the task for service
entrepreneurs of fusing incentives for change within the U.S. Navy. This includes
a review of the formal and informal mechanisms of promotion and administrative
control that gradually facilitated coordination among agents of change and gave
traction to new visions for naval aviation. Taken together, these factors empowered
a cadre of senior commanders to manage the transformation to a carrier fleet, while
remaining true to the U.S. Navy’s traditional operating core.
Confounding Expectations
During the interwar years, the U.S. Navy transformed itself. Over roughly 25 years,
the service transitioned from an initial reliance on the striking power of the battleship,
to the incremental introduction of naval aviation as an auxiliary arm for scouting,
directing fire, and protecting the battleship, to the institutionalization of the carrier
task force as the backbone of the world’s premier sea power during World War II.
What began as an adjunct to the Battle Fleet in 1919, evolved steadily into a carrier
strike force by 1942 that “had a combined strength of many hundreds of aircraft,
surface ships in close support, and a revolutionary system of mobile supply bases
that overcame distance and logistical difficulties.”6
There are numerous contending explanations for the imperatives and feasibility
of this historical feat. For one, the U.S. Navy was both challenged and constrained by
6 Krepinevich (2000).
Managing Defense Transformations104
prevailing strategic conditions. The Navy faced a deteriorating position in the Pacific
that overtaxed its ability to defend national interests in the Philippines and China, at
the same time that it confronted pressure of keeping pace with friendly competition
in Britain and offensive developments in Japanese naval warfare. Compounding this
strategic necessity was the impetus provided by the 1922 Washington Naval Treaty
that at once denied the U.S. Navy bases to operate land-based aircraft in the Far
East and compelled the conversion of two battle cruisers into the aircraft carriers
Lexington and Saratoga. Ironically, the arms control commitments stripped the Navy
of its established power projection capabilities, while opening the door to exploring
alternative sea-based solutions to naval aviation to compensate for the adjustment.7
In addition, elements of the case are consistent with rival material-functional
explanations of intra-organizational change. On the one hand, there is evidence
that speaks to the pivotal importance of a “missionary” subgroup that was shielded
from the inertia and predatory effects of routine operations. In 1927, for example,
the service created the “Taylor Board” to test and reevaluate the technological
frontiers of large-deck carriers. This “small innovative group” that was comprised of
committed carrier enthusiasts, worked in relative isolation to hammer out decisive
findings concerning the significance of producing large numbers and variable
types of aircraft for large-deck carriers and of deploying carriers for a variety of
offensive missions beyond strictly supporting the Battle Fleet. As summed up by
Terry Pierce, the main value of this and other small groups was to concentrate
progressive intellectual capital and foster insular debate among specialists that
were protected from the “big gun” club that was poised otherwise to “exploit cracks
within the aviation union.”8 On the other hand, different scholars point to the critical
role played by the determination of senior officers, such as Rear Admiral William
Moffett, to create promotional pathways for young, innovative aviators. The most
forceful commentary comes from Stephen Rosen, who argues that full realization
of the carrier revolution followed from the initial cooptation of senior surface ship
officers into aviation commands, and the subsequent insertion of new aviator cohorts
into the service’s promotional system. The integration of naval aviators into the core
command structure and the push for them to obtain sailing skills ensured that they
would be eligible for promotion to senior ranks, thus becoming “admirals in charge
of fleets incorporating aircraft carriers.”9
The case also supports insights from different cognitive-cultural theories. The
learning thesis, in particular, has been applied to explain the incremental character
of U.S. carrier innovation. Success depended on first overcoming experiential
7 Emily O. Goldman, “The U.S. Military in Uncertain Times: Organizations,
Ambiguity, and Strategic Adjustment,” The Journal of Strategic Studies 20:2 (June 1997),
pp. 56-57; and Captain Terry C. Pierce, Warfighting and Disruptive Technologies: Disguising
Innovation (London: Frank Cass, 2004), pp. 121-122.
8 Pierce (2004), pp. 125-127. For detailed discussion of the composition, as well
as technical and doctrinal conclusions generated by these different groups, see especially
William F. Trimble, Admiral William A. Moffett: Architect of Naval Aviation (Washington,
DC: Smithsonian Institute Press, 1994), pp. 230-254.
9 Stephen Peter Rosen, Winning the Next War: Innovation and the Modern Military
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1991), p. 78.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 105
and knowledge, not bureaucratic, barriers to change. As early as 1919, there was
growing appreciation among progressive officers in the Navy that carrier aviation
could perform duties beyond those of scouting for the Battle Fleet. “Air minded”
officers, in particular, began to value aircraft carriers as “spotters” that were critical
for enhancing the effectiveness of battleship gunfire and for shielding the fleet against
attacking bombers.10 Also during the early interwar period there was an overarching
strategic imperative to circumvent the constraints on forward basing of land-aircraft
imposed by the Washington Five-Power Treaty. The view of the flattop as a “vital
auxiliary” to the battleship was challenged in 1929 by new evidence provided by
Fleet Problem IX that large carriers could be used effectively as an independent strike
force.11 Yet the initial impulse for change was offset by evidence of the vulnerability
and limited effectiveness of carrier operations at night and in bad weather. There
also were expectations that carrier aircraft would suffer inordinately high attrition
rates during the early phases of surface warfare. The lack of conclusive evidence
“hindered the development of new consensual knowledge, raised ambiguity, and
limited prospects for learning.”12 It was only after continuous experimentation, war
gaming, simulation, and actual developments in the Pacific campaign that the U.S.
Navy acquired a sufficient experiential base to support the progressive shift to multi-
carrier task forces.13
Others credit the U.S. Navy’s organizational culture as especially attuned
to change. Several contemporary studies, for example, attribute the U.S.’ unique
success at institutionalizing carrier innovation to the visionary drive of key naval
officers and the evolutionary problem-solving orientation ingrained in the Navy. The
reformulation of naval warfare, from the traditional belief in the ascendance of the
battleship and battle line to acceptance of concentrated pulsating attacks by naval
aircraft, unleashed development of the multi-carrier task force as an independent
arm. By 1931, senior officers—most notably Admiral William S. Sims, Moffett, and
Captain (later Admiral) Joseph Reeves—forcefully championed the transformational
10 Thomas Wildenberg, “In Support of the Battle Line: Gunnery’s Influence on the
Development of Carrier Aviation in the U.S. Navy,” Journal of Military History 65 (July
2001), pp. 697-712.
11 Thomas C. Hone and Mark David Mandeles, “Managerial Style in the Interwar Navy:
A Reappraisal,” Naval War College Review 32 (September-October 1980), p. 95. By 1925,
one of the chief visionaries, then Captain Joseph Reeves, referred to the aircraft carrier as a
“vital auxiliary type” that reflected his appreciation of naval aviation as playing an important
independent but nonetheless subordinate role to the battleship in future naval warfare. See
discussion in Wildenberg (2001), p. 706.
12 Emily O. Goldman, “Mission Impossible: Organizational Learning in Perspective,”
in Peter Turbowitz, Emily O. Goldman, and Edward Rhodes, eds., The Politics of Strategic
Adjustment: Ideas, Institutions, and Interests (New York: Columbia University Press, 1999),
p. 8. See also Robert A. Winston, Dive Bomber (New York: Holiday House, 1939).
13 Hone and Mandeles (1980), pp. 95-98; and Michael Vlahos, The Blue Sword: The
Naval War College and the American Mission, 1919-1941 (Newport, RI: Naval War College
Press, 1980); and Goldman (1997), pp. 56-59.
Managing Defense Transformations106
view of the fast carrier as a “mobile airfield” and the capital ship of the future.14
This intellectual breakthrough was arguably fostered by the Navy’s custom of open-
ended experimentation via simulations and extensive fleet exercises that rendered
the service surprisingly open to exploring new ways of furthering carrier and aircraft
development with the accumulation of positive results. Accordingly, the U.S. Navy’s
success was distinguished by an organizational culture biased towards “systematic,
rigorous, evidentiary-based processes for testing visions and linking them to sound
technical decisions about carriers and aircraft.”15
In a slightly different twist, other organizational cultural accounts underscore
the significance of a unique external shock for removing the U.S. Navy’s embedded
blinders to the prospects of carrier warfare. Jeffrey Lego specifies that the causal
weight of the Pearl Harbor attack—particularly, the devastating blow to the U.S.
battleship force—rested with undermining the viability of the dominant “big gun”
culture within the service.16 Others go so far as to argue that had it not been for
the attack, the ambivalence of ranking admirals towards naval aviation would have
perpetuated the bias towards spending on additional battleships at the expense of
procurement and development of fast carrier task forces within the U.S. Navy.17
Although the U.S. Navy displayed elements of each of these factors, the case is far
from over-determined, as neither the scope nor pattern of carrier innovation jibes with
the extant causal claims noted above. Contrary to strategic predictions, the interwar
British, Japanese, and American Navies varied distinctly in their choices and success
with carrier innovation, despite gathering winds of war and technical breakthroughs in
the launch and recovery of aircraft at sea. Not only did all three navies systematically
under-estimate the technological potential and strategic significance of maritime air
power, they did so to different degrees.18 Ultimately, the Royal Navy—which at
the close of World War I laid keel to the prototype of future carriers, accumulated
the most extensive wartime operational experience, and deployed the only carrier
force—failed to develop carrier capabilities on par with those of the Japanese and
American navies by the onset of World War II.19 The variation is especially curious
in the cases of the U.S. and Imperial navies that confronted equally ominous threats
to national interests posed by each other. Both faced resource constraints that were
14 Rosen (1991), pp. 70-71; Charles M. Melhorn, Two-Block Fox (Annapolis, MD:
Naval Institute Press, 1974): pp. 88-89; Thomas Wildenberg, All the Factors of Victory:
Admiral Joseph Reeves and the Origins of Carrier Power (London: Brassey’s, 2003); and
Trimble (1994).
15 Barry Watts and Williamson Murray, “Military Innovation in Peacetime,” in Murray
and Millett (1996), pp. 405.
16 Jeffrey W. Legro, “Culture and Preferences in the International Cooperation Two-
Step,” The American Political Science Review, 90:1 (March 1996), p. 128.
17 This point is made by Thomas C. Hone, “Battleships vs. Aircraft Carriers: The
Pattern of U.S. Navy Operating Expeditures, 1932-1941,” Military Affairs, 41:3 (October
1977), pp. 139-140. For a slightly different interpretation, see Goldman (2003), p. 287.
18 Till (1996); and Thomas C. Hone and Mark D. Mandeles, “Interwar Innovation in
Three Navies: U.S. Navy, Royal Navy, Imperial Japanese Navy,” Naval War College Review
40 (Spring 1987), pp. 63-83.
19 Watts and Murray (1996), pp. 384-85.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 107
similarly “neutral,” in that they aided with clarifying priorities while imposing the
same limiting effects on the numbers of aircraft and carriers that were available.20
Moreover, both navies reacted very differently to the strategic necessity imposed
by losses at Midway. As noted by Emily Goldman, the Imperial Navy responded to
the loss of four carriers by “making the intellectual leap to seeing the carriers as the
backbone of the fleet, with all available battleships, cruisers, and destroyers used to
protect the carrier.” By contrast, after losing the Yorktown, the U.S. Navy initially
disavowed the concentration of carriers and preferred to use them separately and
sparingly for defensive operations.21
Arguments that attribute organizational change to shifts in internal political and
functional configurations are similarly incomplete. Airmen were neither orphaned
nor deprived of key staff positions within the U.S. Navy’s influential Bureau and
Fleet structures. Unlike the British that buried naval aviators both within the Royal
Air Force and Royal Navy—to the detriment of infusing the Admiralty with high-
ranking carrier enthusiasts from 1918-1939—the U.S. Navy resisted pressure to create
an independent air force or to insulate aviators from the broader service community.
Rather, it was precisely the integration and competition with other mainstream naval
programs that allowed carrier innovators to shine within the service.22
The creation of new promotional pathways alone cannot account for the U.S.
Navy’s achievement. This shortcoming is especially conspicuous when juxtaposing
the U.S. case to both the organizational receptivity to “pushing the offensive envelop”
of carrier operations demonstrated by the Japanese Navy, and the bureaucratic
impediments to aviation within the Royal Navy during the same period. Within the
Imperial Navy, for example, aviators achieved representation at the highest operational
and political levels by 1936 (before the U.S.), were concentrated in a combined
maritime and shore-based air wing in 1938, and pioneered “the first permanent carrier
force whose pilots trained together”23—yet they registered these accomplishments
while remaining outside of the service’s formal chain of command.24 By contrast, the
Royal Navy’s deficiencies at exploiting early leadership in carrier innovation and the
persistent poor performance of the Fleet Air Arm were due in no small part to the
flyers being too embedded into naval life. The Admiralty’s unwavering commitment
to immersing aviators in the surface navy, for example, came at the expense of
20 Till (1996), pp. 203-204. In addition, during the 1920s the Japanese Navy was
handicapped by dependence on “obsolete aircraft licensed by European manufacturers” and
poorly trained pilots. Thomas G. Mahnken, Uncovering Ways of War: U.S. Intelligence and
Foreign Military Innovation, 1918-1941 (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2002), p. 73.
21 Goldman (2003), pp. 283-284.
22 Till (1996), 209-211; Thomas C. Hone, Norman Friedman, and Mark D. Mandeles,
American & British Aircraft Carrier Development (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press,
1999); and Malcolm Cooper, “Blueprint for Confusion: The Administrative Background to
the Formation of the Royal Air Force, 1912-1919,” Journal of Contemporary History 22:3
(July 1987).
23 Goldman (2003), p. 285.
24 Till (1996), p. 212. Unlike the American and British navies, however, the Japanese
relied overwhelmingly on enlisted men for aviators up through the Pearl Harbor attack.
Mahnken (2002), p. 76.
Managing Defense Transformations108
retaining committed naval air officers that could act as a potent internal lobby both
before the service lost and after it regained exclusive administrative control over the
naval air arm.25 How then were U.S. carrier entrepreneurs able to stay the course
of transitioning to air-centric naval organizations, featuring independently operated
and offensively-oriented multi-carrier task forces, especially given the different rates
and directions of carrier development pursued by their Japanese and British peers?
By the same token, claims of the U.S. Navy’s learning and cultural affinity for
carrier-related technologies and operations offer only partial explanation for the
diffusion and consolidation of carrier innovations. First, the transformation to carrier
strike forces stood in stark contrast to the “reactionary impulse” pervasive within the
U.S. Navy both before and after the interwar period. For nearly a century earlier, the
Navy resisted abandoning a strategy based on coastal defense and commerce raiding
in favor of an offensive posture aimed at controlling distant waters with state-of-
the-art battleships and the massing of naval firepower.26 From the 1860s to the early
1900s, the Navy was similarly circumspect about synthesizing novel advances in
steam propulsion and radio technology with new forms of organization, training,
and communication. This ambivalence persisted for decades due to deep-seated
aversions to compromising on the efficiency of available naval fighting vessels,
the social status of line officers, and the traditional autonomy of commanders at
sea.27 Only gradually did senior officers relent, but they did so in ways that grafted
new systems onto traditional naval practices, thus limiting the operational benefits
offered by the technological breakthroughs. Furthermore, the same service that
ultimately embraced the full potential of carrier aviation failed subsequently to
assimilate new technologies with changes in doctrine, and to organize effectively
for anti-submarine warfare (ASW) at the onset of World War II. Despite resource
advantages, astutely anticipating full-scale ASW engagement, and digesting probing
“lessons” from the British experience with using ASW against Germany’s U-
boats, the U.S. Navy adapted only after suffering successive humiliating defeats.28
25 Ibid., 205-209.
26 Walter R. Herrick, The American Naval Revolution (Baton Rouge: Louisiana State
University, 1966). For a constructivist acknowledgement of the “stickiness” of the traditional
wartime strategy of coastal protection and commerce raiding, see especially Edward Rhodes,
“Sea Change: Interest-Based vs. Cultural-Cognitive Accounts of Strategic Choice in the
1890s,” Security Studies 5:4 (Summer 1996), pp. 73-124.
27 On the “reactionary impulse” of the U.S. Navy, see Michael Evans, “Fabrizio’s
Choice: Organizational Change and the Revolution in Military Affairs Debate,” National
Security Studies Quarterly VII:I (Winter 2001), pp. 8-10; and Vincent Davis, The Admiral’s
Lobby (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1966). Only gradually did senior
officers relent, but they did so in ways that grafted new systems onto traditional naval
practices, thus limiting the operational benefits offered by technological breakthroughs. Susan
J. Douglas, “Technological Innovation and Organizational Change: The Navy’s Adoption of
Radio, 1899-1919,” in Merritt Roe Smith, ed., Military Enterprise and Technological Change:
Perspectives on the American Experience (Cambridge, MA: The M.I.T. Press, 1985), pp. 2-
3.
28 Eliot Cohen and John Gooch, Military Misfortunes: The Anatomy of Failure in War
(New York: The Free Press, 1991), pp. 59-94.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 109
Thus, part of the remarkable story of the carrier case is that the Navy succeeded at
institutionalizing a new way of war in spite of maintaining an otherwise cautious
organizational profile.
Consistent with this conservatism, the overwhelming majority of senior naval
commanders were not initially impressed with carrier aviation. Although curious
about the potential for naval aviation—as reflected by the creation of the first pilot
training school in 1914 and the significant growth of officers, enlisted men, and
aircraft during World War I—the leadership opted to reduce disproportionately
the size of the force as part of the initial postwar demobilization effort.29 Secretary
of the Navy, Josephus Daniels, regarded the carriers as at best support vessels for
the battle line, and objected to funding construction of aircraft carrier.30 Similarly,
the Chief of Naval Operations (CNO) in 1918 was highly skeptical of the aircraft
carrier immediately after the war, dismissing its potential as “just a lot of noise.”
The CNO refused initially to press the case with Congress for creating a separate
organizational structure to oversee carrier development within the Navy. After
losing this bureaucratic battle, he then tried to abolish the naval aviation office and
subordinate it to the Naval Operations’ Planning and Material Divisions.31 Even
staunch advocates of the carrier initially were circumspect about its revolutionary
potential. At the apogee of the internal debate over the battleship’s vulnerability to
aerial attack in 1925, Reeves remarked that “airplanes and other auxiliary weapons
might prepare the way for the big gun, but ship battles have always been, and under
conditions that will probably exist for the next ten years will continue to be, decided
by the primary weapon (the battleship).”32 Although the Navy was open to exploring
alternative uses for naval aviation, it was in no way predisposed towards making the
carrier the next capital ship coming out of World War I.
Second, there was no single vision of carrier aviation that prevailed within the
interwar U.S. Navy. Instead, there were contending schools of thought even among
carrier enthusiasts.
One concept was to use carrier-based aircraft to attack land targets. Under this concept, the
carrier was just a forward airfield. It did not work in concert with, or form an integral part
of, a whole fleet. Another concept was that the carrier, though part of the larger fleet, was
nonetheless an auxiliary to existing weapons such as the battleship. Under this concept,
29 In 1914, U.S. naval aviation consisted of 9 officers, 23 enlisted men, and 7 aircraft.
By the end of World War I, the numbers increased to roughly 7000 officers, 33,000 enlisted
personnel, and over 21,000 aircraft. By the end of 1919, however, the number of officers was
down to 580 (of which 370 were aviators), and the number of enlisted men plummeted to
4,879 (of which only 3,479 were aviation certified). It was not until 1923 that the numbers
began to pick up. Hone and Mandeles (1987), p. 71.
30 Watts and Murray (1996), p. 390. See also discussion in Melhorn (1974), pp. 30-
31.
31 Krepinevich (2001). It was only after successive hearings conducted by the
Navy’s General Board in 1919 that the recommendation for creating a well financed and
organizationally shielded naval air service, consisting of both sea planes and aircraft carriers,
gathered momentum. See Hone and Mandeles (1987), p. 72.
32 Quoted in Wildenberg (2001), pp. 706. Parenthesis added.
Managing Defense Transformations110
carrier aircraft scouted, drove off enemy scouts, and directed gunfire of heavy ships. Yet
another, different—and revolutionary—concept was that of the carrier and its aircraft as
the centerpiece of a long-range striking force—the new battle line, so to speak.33
It was not until midway through World War II that the dominant intellectual strain
favored multi-carrier task forces as independent strike weapons. Until that point, only
a small group of visionaries espoused radical transformation, but they had neither
the legitimacy nor political clout to impose their views on other sympathizers, let
alone skeptics within the “big gun” club that dominated the service until after the
war.34
Lacking a clear affinity for change, cognitive-cultural models predict that the
Navy would have embraced carrier aviation technologies and independent operations
only after undergoing a fundamental paradigm shift. Yet, throughout the interwar
period, the Navy’s strategic mission fixated on defeating potential enemies at sea
via long-range fire. Consistent with the strategic adjustment from commerce raiding
and coastal defense to a unified battle line that was implanted in the 1890s, the U.S.
Navy clutched to an imperial-style strategy that featured the battleship and large-
scale engagements (guerre d’escadre).35 As the Japanese threat mounted, the shared
vision of naval warfare settled on fighting across the Pacific. This was codified in
“War Plan Orange” that prescribed offensive operations for engaging and defeating
the Japanese fleet west of Hawaii and in its home waters. The plan anticipated that
control of the sea would go to the nation that maintained a superior battle line in
the area of operations; a conviction that constituted “a holy writ in the interwar
Navy.”36 Notwithstanding the rise of Germany and growing dangers in the Atlantic
and Caribbean—as well as unfavorable balances in fleet bases, personnel, and ships
to support the required naval offensive in the 1930s—the U.S. Navy was intransigent
in support of this Pacific strategy.37 Moreover, the plan did not elevate the carrier to
capital ship, as most strategists at the time “inaptly viewed carriers as auxiliaries
to the battle line, imagining them hovering near battleships for scouting, artillery
spotting, and sky brawls before the decisive gunnery exchange.”38 It was not until
publication of “Pac-10” in 1943 that the incantation of sailing the battle fleet across
33 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 150.
34 Melhorn (1974), pp. 30-31.
35 Edward S. Miller, War Plan Orange: The U.S. Strategy to Defeat Japan, 1897-1945
(Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 1991); and Robert L. O’Connell, Sacred Vessels: The
Cult of the Battleship and the Rise of the U.S. Navy (New York: Oxford University Press,
1991).
36 Michael K. Doyle, “The U.S. Navy and War Plan Orange, 1933-1940: Making
Necessity a Virtue,” Naval War College Review (May-June 1980), p. 54. The strategic planning
debate revolved around the desired pace of the naval offensive campaign, as both “thrusters”
and “cautionaries” agreed that a large-scale battle line engagement was critical for the success
of the second phase of the war plan. See Miller (1991), pp. 77-85.
37 The tenacious adherence to what naval strategists at the time acknowledged was an
obviously flawed and outmoded conception of the Pacific war was borne out of a combination
of self-serving interest, narrow mind-set, and diplomatic flexibility to ensure British naval
cooperation in the Far East. See especially Doyle (1980), p. 54.
38 Miller (1991), p. 348.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 111
the Pacific ceded primacy to concentrated carrier operations in naval doctrine, and
that the multi-carrier task force became enshrined as the dominant feature of naval
warfare.39 However, this occurred after the sinking of the battleships at Pearl Harbor
in 1941, as well as after naval battles of the Coral Sea and Midway in May-June 1942
where mass aerial formations were exploited to deliver great pulses of firepower in
epic carrier engagements.
The pattern of naval appropriations also attests to the persistence of the strategic
commitment to the battle line and the absence of favoritism towards carrier aviation
during the interwar period. From 1932, the year that aircraft carriers were first
seriously discussed as an independent striking arm, to the Japanese attack on Pearl
Harbor in 1941, spending on battle line warships (battleships, destroyers, and land-
based air forces) as percentages of total ship and operational expenditures declined
steadily relative to the carriers. Allocations earmarked for second-generation
battleships dropped by over 50 percent, while those for carrier development increased
significantly.40 Yet these trends did not reflect conceptual transformation, as investment
in the battle line continued to figure prominently in naval procurement. Resources
once designated for the battleships were not reallocated solely to the carriers but
were spread among heavy cruisers and submarines as well, in order to prepare all
three types of vessels to escort and support the battleships. Annual modernization
expenditures on new battleships, as percentages of total ship and operating expenses,
significantly exceeded respective allocations for the carriers throughout the period.
According to one naval analyst, “any spending bias toward the surface fleet in the
1930s was a bias toward the cruisers, especially the 18 heavy cruisers permitted the
U.S. Navy by the London Naval Agreements of 1930.”41 To the extent that there
was any shift in mindset it was toward deploying a balanced fleet, with neither the
battleship nor aircraft carrier intrinsically favored as the capital ship of the future.
It was only between 1941 and the war’s end that transformation began to take full
effect, as reflected by decisions to terminate battleship construction and quadruple
the fleet carrier force.42
39 Rosen (1991), pp. 79-80.
40 Hone (1977), p. 135. The assumption here is that tradeoffs in operational spending
for the fleet, which were made by the Navy without special Congressional appropriations,
reflected the service leadership’s basic understandings of the types and mixes of vessels that
were most important for war.
41 Ibid., p. 139. The extent to which battleships continued to capture the attention of
the naval command was reflected by the facts that the plurality of naval officers served on
battleships, and that the number of battleships commissioned per year far exceeded respective
numbers for the carriers.
42 The argument here is not that the Navy leadership was resistant, in principle, to
investing in carrier development. As noted by the above trends, as well as by the fact that the
low proportion of the Navy’s property investment in the carriers (10 percent from 1919-1941)
was prescribed by the Washington Treaty limits, it is erroneous to claim that the Navy did not
value aircraft carrier development. Rather, naval budgetary patterns suggest that while the
aircraft carrier was valued, this conviction did not come at the expense of displacing the battle
line even as the war neared. Furthermore, “the balanced fleet stayed balanced. The ‘two-ocean
Navy’ authorized in 1940 was, like the ‘treaty Navy,’ centered on a battleship force augmented
Managing Defense Transformations112
Despite the contested appeal of a new way of war throughout the interwar period,
the aircraft carrier ultimately came into its own as the main strike force of the fleet
during World War II. Incremental learning accumulated to punctuate transformation
of naval doctrine that featured multi-carrier strike forces. This too, however, is
inconsistent with priority accorded to cognitive-cultural variables. Given the
traditional appeal and improvements in steam power plants, radar, mobility, armor, and
endurance of the battleship, as demonstrated both in simulations and initial wartime
engagements, naval commanders should have been resistant to basic learning at the
time. Such success augured well for the continued preeminence of the battleship,
notwithstanding the cumulative evidence that carriers could operate as an effective
independent force.43 Moreover, evidence marshaled in support of the ascendancy of
naval aviation was ambiguous at best. Fleet Problems IX-XIX, conducted from 1929
to 1939, featured both the advantages and lingering vulnerabilities of the carriers as
a potential capital ship. Critics as well as proponents of naval aviation seized on the
same set of fleet problems to make respective cases about the effectiveness of the
traditional battle line relative to the independent offensive and defensive roles of the
carriers.44
Third, there are serious grounds for questioning claims that the Pearl Harbor attack
dealt a decisive blow to a battleship-centric mindset or unambiguously strengthened
the appeal of offensive carrier warfare over the battle line. The affinity for maintaining
a “balanced fleet” persisted well after the devastating Pearl Harbor strike. The attack
also did not disproportionately discredit the battle line. It was widely acknowledged
that the aircraft carrier was no less vulnerable to a surprise attack than was the Battle
Fleet at Pearl Harbor. Without suffering a uniquely humiliating defeat and amid the
success of the Pacific naval campaign, the “big gun” club should not have been
primed to jettison the battle line or to internalize a potentially costly and uncertain
organizational myth that favored the aircraft carrier over the proven battleship.45 That
the Japanese had not given up on the battle line after 1942 suggests, according to
Thomas Hone, that “it cannot be assumed that any intelligent naval staff should have
by other warship types.” Alternatively, once the Navy bought into transformation during the
war, 16 fast carriers were commissioned together with 79 light and escort carriers. Thomas C.
Hone, “Spending Patterns of the United States Navy, 1921-1941,” Armed Forces and Society
8:3 (Spring 1982), p. 459.
43 At minimum, technical improvements in mobility and endurance of the battleship
augmented the battle line of the U.S. fleet, as well as “meant that carriers and battleships
would be able to steam together at high speeds.” Hone and Mandeles (1980), p. 91.
44 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), pp. 51-82. See also discussion in Krepinevich
(2000).
45 Clark Reynolds, The Fast Carriers: Forging an Air Navy (Huntington, NY: Robert
Krieger, 1978), pp. 18-19. The carrier fleet fortuitously avoided disaster, as three of the carriers
attached to the Pacific Fleet were not on station at Pearl Harbor at the time of the Japanese
attack. Moreover, the U.S. Navy was not shocked into endorsing carrier aviation by the attack
on Pearl Harbor, as evidenced by the fact that the Japanese carrier fleet was defeated by U.S.
carriers procured and developed during the preceding decade. See discussion in Rosen (1991),
p. 58.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 113
recognized the passing of the preeminence of the battle line.”46 Furthermore, to the
extent that the battleship lost stature in the future navy, carrier warfare was not the
obvious replacement. The dislodging of the battleship mentality did not presuppose
the ascendance of the carrier task force, as the attack also elevated the normative
appeal of other naval arms, including unrestricted submarine warfare.47
In sum, prevailing material-functional and cognitive-cultural theories offer
necessary but insufficient explanations for the institutionalization of carrier
transformation within the U.S. Navy. In the effort to push the frontiers of
organizational theory, each general approach privileges changing interests or ideas
as the main driver of radical change. Although each acknowledges an interaction—
with material-functional arguments recognizing the supplementary role played by
ideas for shaping proximate identities and constraining the struggle over contending
options, and cognitive-cultural arguments drawing attention to permissive material
power conditions that create openings for new ideas to take hold—neither alone
presents a framework to understand systematically how the two sets of factors were
rationally employed to overcome initial resistance and then to realize the revolution
at sea.
Fluid Institutions, Stable Norms
Despite the limitations to the extant literature, it is certainly the case that there were
new ideas and interests that favored change within the U.S. Navy. Our modified
principal-agent framework suggests this discrepancy can be reconciled by focusing
on the administrative measures that integrated these disparate factors to encourage
the successful maturation of the carrier strike force. For the U.S. Navy, this was
manifest by the gradual jettisoning of old forms of oversight in favor of new ones
that ensured that the introduction of naval aviation technologies and practices
would not require intrusive and costly mechanisms for internal monitoring. This
was realized within the context of a specific set of formal and informal intra-
organizational mechanisms. Lacking a clear idea of where they were headed
or dominance over service decisionmaking, those charged with guiding and
implementing the development of new carrier technologies and practices gradually
acquired discrete and complementary mandates. Moreover, these actors carefully
embraced mechanisms to reward innovative practices via main avenues of service
promotion. At the same time, informal arrangements were heavily relied on to
oversee change and to supplement the flow of information along formal channels.
These mechanisms complemented the formal division of labor by filling gaps in
oversight and reinforcing formal inducements. Finally, managerial norms within the
naval establishment offered common standards to validate the potential significance
of new technologies and practices, as well as provided a base for building trust among
initial skeptics of change within the naval establishment. By purposefully aligning
service incentives and tapping into these norms, carrier entrepreneurs gradually but
46 Hone (1977), p. 139.
47 Legro (1996), p. 128.
Managing Defense Transformations114
surely succeeded at putting in place low cost mechanisms to constrain opportunism
and promote common knowledge that augured well for a deliberate but progressive
course of transformation.
Procedural Changes
Though American interest in sea-based aviation predated World War I, early
proponents lacked a strong institutional base to give traction to new ideas about
carrier innovation. As discussed above, the service was dominated by “big gun”
enthusiasts who were predisposed to relegate the carrier to subordinate status. As
recounted by Barry Watts and Williamson Murray, coming out of The Great War,
“conservatives, including the chief of naval operations, saw the capital ship as
the decisive element of naval warfare; aviation could provide reconnaissance and
over-the-horizon spotting, but was only a support element for the battle line- a not
unreasonable view at the time.”48 Because naval aircraft at the time “were small,
fragile, capable of short-range flight, and unable to communicate effectively with
ships at extended distances,” there was a strong sense among senior civilian and
military leaders that the technology was not sufficiently advanced to warrant a rush
to constructing or elevating the status of the carriers.49 In the face of threats posed
by mavericks, such as Army Air Corps General William “Billy” Mitchell—who
aggressively seized on accomplishments during secret bombing exercises to make
the case for hiving off aviation from the Navy—reigning service “traditionalists”
were prepared at most only to hedge against bureaucratic defeat by lobbying to retain
control over the carriers. The shift from resistance to ambivalence among senior
service officers was further stoked by conclusions reached in 1919 by the General
Board, the standing committee of senior officers that advised the Secretary of the
Navy, that the carriers had become “an essential element of the fleet” and should
be pursued to the effect of “accompanying and operating with the fleet across the
globe.”50 Yet even with this high level endorsement, sea-based aviation was confined
to supporting the battle fleet, and fell under the supervision of skeptics within the
secretary’s office.
The administrative situation began to change, however, by the early 1920s
with assignment of a clear principal to oversee carrier development. In effect, the
organizational arrival of carrier aviation came with Congress’ mandated creation of
the Bureau of Aeronautics (BurAer) in July 1921; the first new bureau established
in the Navy over 60 years. Endorsed by the General Board, this organ was officially
authorized to supervise “all that related to designing, building, fitting out, and
repairing Navy and Maine Corps aircraft.” In addition, Congress confirmed the chief
of BurAer as a flag-rank billet and special advisor to the CNO, sending a clear signal
48 Watts and Murray (1996), p. 390.
49 Krepinevich (2000).
50 Ibid., See also discussion in Hone and Mandeles (1980), pp. 97-98.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 115
that leadership of naval aviation should appeal to ambitious senior naval officers and
would not impede promotion to the highest levels of the service.51
Complementing the formation of BurAer was a set of administrative reforms
that attracted the service’s “best and brightest” to naval aviation. Because flying
was considered hazardous duty, the Navy agreed to pay 50 percent above base
salaries for aviators who logged at least ten flights or four hours in the air per
month. According to BurAer chief, Admiral William Moffett, “flight pay was one
of the most important incentives the Navy had in attracting and retaining aviators
and reducing or eliminating it would exacerbate the already serious shortage of
flyers.”52 BurAer also steadily garnered authority to claim the top graduates of the
Naval Academy, and in 1930 established the position of aeronautical engineering
duty officer that opened professional career paths for technical specialists in naval
aviation. Furthermore, Congressional legislation stipulated operational command
of all flying activities (carriers, seaplanes, and naval air stations) as the exclusive
preserve of qualified pilots that, in practice, created a pool of guaranteed command
billets for naval aviation. Pilots serving on-board the carriers were naval officers
first and foremost; however, they were rotated back into the service reserve during
peacetime and incorporated into the mainstream promotional track. As proposed
by the President’s “blue-ribbon” Morrow Board in 1925, junior aviators were
guaranteed the opportunity to compensate for any missed sea-duty requirement
before being examined for promotion. Together, these measures effectively fused
individual incentives for advancement with growth in the status of the naval air arm
within the service.53
The guaranteed command billets for naval aviators also proved an effective lure
for senior surface-ship officers. In an effort to jump-start formation of an initial
senior cadre of naval aviators and to vest the flying units with early stature within the
service, the law that created BurAer stipulated the offering of an “observer course.”
This constituted a twelve-week training course for a select group of senior, and in
some cases retired, officers that was aimed at providing them an opportunity to
“learn some of the fundamentals of flight, do some flying, associate with aviators,
and get a better understanding of the needs of naval aviation in general.54 Captain
Joseph Reeves, for example, who was originally a battleship officer, chose to pursue
a career in naval aviation in part due to the promotional opportunities. Reeves was
51 BurAer was authorized to recommend recruitment, training, and promotion
procedures for Naval and Marine aviators, and to supply the Chief of Naval Operations with
technical expertise regarding “all aeronautic planning, operations, and administration.” Hone
and Mandeles (1987), p. 73. See also Trimble (1994), pp. 64-86.
52 Trimble (1994), p. 239. See also Watts and Murray (1996), pp. 395-396; Krepinevich
(2000); and Paolo E. Coletta and Bernarr B. Coletta, Admiral William A. Moffett and U.S.
Naval Aviation (Lewiston, UK: the Edwin Meller Press, 1997), pp. 209-210.
53 In effect, these measures introduced a situation whereby success in developing
carrier aviation would lead to an increase in the number of carriers that, in turn, would increase
the pool of guaranteed naval aviation command billets. See discussion in Donald Chisholm,
Waiting for Dead Men’s Shoes: Origins and Development of the U.S. Navy’s Officer Personnel
System, 1793-1941 (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2001), pp. 636-661.
54 Wildenberg (2003), p. 120.
Managing Defense Transformations116
appointed Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet in 1925, a position that
entitled him the rank of Commodore. Although not a pilot himself, Reeves completed
the special naval observer course that qualified him to pursue the aviation career path
without meeting the physical and flying standards demanded of pilots. Though often
derided as “Johnny-Come-lately,” these officers served as crucial administrative
“stopgaps,” occupying leadership positions until the first cohort of naval pilots
advanced in seniority and rank.55 This strategy paid special dividends when it came
to Reeves, who brought the same exacting standards used to create record-breaking
battleship gun crews to develop techniques for fast-launch and recovery and general
carrier tactics. His success contributed directly to the conversion of the position of
Commander, Aircraft Squadrons into a rear admiral’s billet in 1927.56 In general,
this administrative technique fostered early cross-fertilization of naval surface and
aviation communities, and ensured that the latter would not be ostracized or deprived
access to traditional pathways to senior ranks.57
In addition, formal authority to formulate and implement new concepts of
carrier aviation was clearly delineated within the Navy. As the primary principal,
BurAer retained exclusive mandates to promote and oversee the engineering
design, development, testing, and procurement of new aviation technologies. It also
controlled a separate budget for aircraft development, as well as shared responsibility
with the Bureau of Navigation for personnel issues related to the carriers. While the
latter introduced an element of bureaucratic tension over the relationships between
specialization and general duty and between duty and career paths for airmen—as
BurNav generally advocated that naval aviator ranks be restricted to enlisted pilots
whose proficiency was no more specialized than those serving on submarines or
destroyers—BurAer retained privileged authority to establish special boards to
frame the debate over personnel issues.58 In addition, BurAer reported directly to
the General Board, acting as the service’s link to the highest echelons of executive
and legislative leadership in the U.S. government and American industry on issues
pertaining to carrier aviation.59 This was facilitated by the appointment in 1926 of
an Assistant Secretary of Navy for Aeronautics that established a civilian ally within
55 Ibid., p. 121; and Thomas Wildenberg, Destined for Glory (Annapolis, MD: Naval
Institute Press, 1998), pp. 3-4.
56 Wildenberg (1998), pp. 48-49, and 87.
57 Rosen (1991), pp. 78-79.
58 According to a report issued by BurNav (which was dominated by members of the
“big gun” club) to the Johnson Board on aviation personnel issues: “The manipulative skill
required for flying is of no consequence in determining that the officer is fit to hold a higher
command in aviation or in general line duties, nor does the possession of the naval aviator
designation by a group of men carry the argument for its perpetuation by a medium of a corps.
If it did, similar groups should be formed for destroyers, submarines, or oother types…”
Chisholm (2001), p. 639.
59 While no bureau had absolute veto power over policy, each maintained a discrete
prerogative that was acknowledged and reinforced in decisions made by the General Board.
BurAer, in addition, had authority to recommend selection criteria for pilots to the Bureau of
Navigation. This gave BurAer a leg up in intra-bureau competition on issues related to the
carriers. Hone and Mandeles (1980), p. 95; and Hone and Mandeles (1987), p. 74.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 117
the service that worked in concert with BurAer chief to promote naval aviation.60
Though fully integrated into the Navy’s bureau and promotional structures, BurAer
ultimately bore responsibility for balancing exploration of carrier aviation with the
service’s core competencies and fighting effectiveness. This generated a pragmatic
incentive for wedding guidelines for carrier development closely to what was both
technically feasible and operationally effective. Consequently, the leadership of
BurAer was preoccupied with setting realistic goals for systematically exploring new
technologies, personnel policies, and operations to better fulfill the Navy’s primary
mission of fighting across the Pacific Ocean.61
At the agency level, it was left to the fleet command and the Naval War College
to follow BurAer’s lead, fleshing out general directives for change with concrete
operational and intellectual meaning. Within the fleet in the 1920s, the Commander,
Aircraft Squadrons acquired the rank of Commodore, and supervised two naval
aviation units that reported to commanders in the Battle Fleet and Scouting Fleet,
respectively. One of these units, Commander, Aircraft Squadron, Battle Fleet (later
Force), was delegated operational command of naval aviation, including all of the
carriers. Responsible for the combat performance of the carriers, this commander
had a direct stake in “calling for” and then effectively “incorporating new, improved
technology.” In 1927, this portfolio was elevated to a rear admiral’s billet. These
reforms institutionalized a strong incentive at this level to make progress on issues that
mattered most for the operational effectiveness of the carriers—such as minimizing
hangar space, optimizing the flight deck, slashing landing and launching intervals,
delivering sufficient ordnance, improving carrier effectiveness at night strikes, and
reducing vulnerabilities to diver bomber attack.62
Similarly, at the tactical level administrative control of aircraft squadrons and
deck operations was clearly established. The Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle
Fleet wielded direct control over all independent aviation units. Although formal
lines of reporting were slightly blurred by the reorganization of July 1928 that called
for squadron commanders to report directly to the carrier’s commanding officer, an
amendment was issued that preserved the Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle
Fleet’s de facto supervisory role. Although required to inform the commanding
officer of the carrier of the instructions issued to aviation units aboard the ship, the
Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet maintained sole control over the tactical
60 This office existed until 1932 (when it was eliminated due to budget cuts), and was
reestablished in 1941. A. Turnbull and C. Lord, History of United States Naval Aviation (New
Haven: Yale University Press, 1949), p. 312.
61 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 184; and Watts and Murray (1996),
pp. 394-396. Even an enthusiast of carrier aviation, such Admiral Moffett, was compelled
to reconcile his personal visions with the organization’s mandate. Accordingly, his real
contribution was not a revolutionary vision of carrier development but his skill at exploiting
BurAer’s mandate to harmonize progressive exploration of naval aviation technologies with
the Navy’s immediate operational needs for first improving the spotting for battleship gunfire,
then shielding the battle fleet from attrition, and finally delivering independent pulsating
attacks on the enemy’s naval fleet. See Trimble (1994); and Coletta and Coletta (1997).
62 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 158. The second fleet unit was Commander,
Aircraft Squadrons, Scouting Fleet.
Managing Defense Transformations118
employment of those units and over their daily training activities. The practical nature
of this control was demonstrated vividly in September 1928 when the Commander
of the Lexington, Frank Berrrien, attempted to re-direct training of the air squadron
from gunnery practice to a concentration on precision landings, rendezvousing, and
deck signals that would enhance the overall performance of air units aboard the ship.
Although this effort at usurping tactical authority was initially endorsed by the ship’s
air officer, who also wanted to enhance his role over running the units assigned to
the Lexington, the Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet (Admiral Reeves)
ultimately prevailed at preventing such intervention by rallying support from both
the CNO and the Lexington’s squadron commanders.63 Furthermore, on each carrier,
flight deck responsibilities were clearly delineated. Admiral Reeves, in particular,
devoted significant energy to delegating discrete responsibilities among small teams
of specialists. As recounted by Thomas Wildenberg:
Specific tasks, such as operating the arresting gear, releasing tail hooks, and fueling
aircraft, were allocated to each team, along with a set of colored shirts. The members of
each team wore the same color, which served to sort out who was doing what on the busy
flight deck: blue for airplane pushers, brown for crew chiefs, purple for fuelers, and so
on. Most important were the yellow-shirted directors, for they were responsible for seeing
that planes were safely moved about the dangerous deck.64
Similarly, the Naval War College was delegated exclusive and complementary
prerogatives to design war game procedures, generate scenarios for fleet exercises, and
conduct rigorous assessments of operational exercises. The faculty was authorized to
study the technical data provided by BurAer for the purposes of devising simulations
and structuring annual fleet problems, as well as to receive feedback from the fleet
to update and improve the parameters for war games.65 In practice, the clear division
of labor encouraged synergies between the innovative practices spearheaded by
leaders within respective bureau, fleet, and academic structures. As summed up by
one historical account:
Reeves’ (Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Force) success in increasing the numbers
of aircraft the Langley could launch at a time generated empirical data that fed back into
the rules governing subsequent war games at Newport. Moffett (head of BurAer) then
capitalized on Reeves’ early success to generate support for a five-year, 1,000-airplane
program that allowed BurAer to pursue specialized aircraft—fighters, spotters, dive
bombers, etc.—rather than multipurpose aircraft. Finally, by the time Lexington and
Saratoga went to sea for Fleet Problem IX (held off of Panama during 23-27 January
63 Wildenberg (2003), pp.180-185. This encroachment on the authority of Commander
Air Squadorns was taken seriously and remained an issue of contention between Admiral
Reeves and both officers aboard the Lexington. In fact, Reeves subsequently exacted
punishment on the Lexington’s air officer by filing an “unsatisfactory” fitness report for the
officer that effectively stunted his career within the service.
64 Ibid., p. 134.
65 Krepinevich (2000).
The U.S. Navy Transformed 119
1929), the fleet had extended the deck-park concept to include refueling and rearming on
the flight deck itself, and Saratoga boasted an air wing of 110 airplanes with 100 pilots.66
Yet it is too simplistic to assume that the carrier revolution followed directly
from the rationalization of these formal lines of authority. BurAer could have
either made the wrong choices or prematurely locked in new technical designs,
especially since it lacked in-house expertise to assess the operational effectiveness
of carrier developments.67 Although the fleet and Naval War College were formally
responsible for integrating new concepts with operational practice, none of the
specific innovations were prescribed or anticipated by BurAer.68 Moreover, there
were overlapping lines of authority for aircraft design within BurAer that generated a
spiraling demand for engineers and rampant opportunities for shirking. This created
an environment within BurAer that effectively “robbed (sub-units) of any incentive
to keep abreast of the newest and best in the (naval aviation) field.”69 Accordingly,
there were no formal guarantees that actors within BurAer, the fleet, or the Naval
War College would follow consistent developmental paths or sustain reciprocal
exchanges of data and analysis. How then was BurAer so successful at managing the
residual discretion to further deliberate but progressive development of the carrier
force?
Part of the answer rests with the complementary informal links established among
the three administrative structures. Some of these ties were partially mandated from
above, as evidenced by the CNO’s order that the Naval War College be kept abreast
of developments in fleet doctrine and the appointment of a respective liaison office.
For example, the CNO appointed Captain Harry Yarnell as liaison to the Naval
War College. Yarnell later served as captain of the aircraft carrier Saratoga and as
Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Force.70 Similarly, Captain Reeves served
as head of the Tactics Department at the Naval War College prior to his appointment
to the same post within the Fleet.71 Throughout the decade, the close relationship
between the fleet and the Naval War College was solidified by the reciprocal
exchange of war-gaming data. Information from fleet exercises, for example, was
used to update and improve the parameters for war games. At the same time, the
Naval War College submitted scenarios to structure fleet exercises.72
Intra-service ties were reinforced by complementary links forged between
BurAer and the Naval War College. Moffett, in particular, encouraged his staff at
BurAer to present lectures regularly at the Naval War College.73 This connection
was strengthened in 1922, when the head of the Tactics Department was summoned
before the General Board to evaluate naval aviation. This provided strong impetus
66 Watts and Murray (1996), p. 402. First two parentheses added.
67 Ibid., 394. Mistakes were indeed made along the way, as evidenced by Moffett’s
early support for airships.
68 Hone and Mandeles (1987), pp. 74-75.
69 Turnbull and Lord (1949), p. 191. Parentheses added.
70 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 30.
71 Wildenberg (1998), p. 93.
72 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), pp. 36-37.
73 Ibid., p. 32.
Managing Defense Transformations120
for the aviators at BurAer to work closely with faculty members and to apply the
evidence gleaned from Naval War College gaming analyses in support of their
claims to the General Board and other offices across the service.74
At the same time, responsibilities assigned to BurAer and the Commander,
Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet were complementary, fostering close cooperation
between the individuals who held these positions. The chief of BurAer supervised
procurement and technical issues, while the Commander, Aircraft Squadrons
managed training and operations. On occasion, this created rivalry among offices with
different mandates. As head of BurAer, for example, Moffett occasionally clashed
with Admiral Reeves over the cost-effectiveness of risky training exercises or the
fiscal soundness of creating additional fighter squadrons or rushing the purchase and
introduction of a single-seat fighter.75 In general, however, the rivalry spawned by
this division of labor mitigated information asymmetries and eased oversight, as it
brought contending views to the fore, as well as limited the numbers of subordinates
and missions supervised by each organ. The administrative control also was abetted
by the informal working relationships forged between the heads of these organs.
Though Moffett and Reeves were never close friends and were equally ambitious,
they nonetheless communicated directly with each other to coordinate respective
political and operational concerns. Reeves, for example, personally invited Moffett
to observe fleet exercises first hand on numerous occasions to bolster his advocacy
and persuasion power on Capitol Hill. Similarly, Moffett’s respect for Reeves’s
capacity to shape naval aviation doctrine was reflected by his endorsement of the
latter’s petition to extend his tour of duty as Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle
Force in 1928. Acknowledging the significance of both placing the supervision of
two carriers under the Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Force, and Reeves’
stature as “the only one to carry out this important work,” Moffett upheld the
division of authority and sent his endorsement to the CNO.76 These informal gestures
facilitated cooperation that transcended occasional professional differences, as well
as promoted mutual political protection without blurring respective jurisdictions.77
At the administrative level, BurAer strengthened oversight via the informal
practice of circulating personnel. Specifically, BurAer encouraged the rotation of
retired and reserve officers with aviation experience across both the bureau-fleet and
conceptual-operational divides. Though this practice was criticized for distracting
skilled officers from their flying responsibilities, it introduced an element of de
facto monitoring in the process. In addition, critical leadership positions went to
individuals who had acquired experience working within the different carrier
aviation units. Reeves, for instance, was appointed Commander, Aircraft Squadrons,
Battle Fleet, only after he completed a senior officer’s course on naval simulations
and served as head of the Tactical Department at the Naval War College. “Having
learned from Newport simulations that the number of aircraft a carrier could get into
74 Ibid., p. 35.
75 Wildenberg (2003), pp. 140, 166-171; Trimble (1994), pp. 167-199.
76 Wildenberg (2003), p. 171.
77 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), pp. 184-185. See also Trimble (1994), pp.
190, 232-233; and Pierce (2004), p. 123.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 121
the air was crucial, Reeves (in his capacity as fleet commander) worked tirelessly
to shorten aircraft launch and recovery times, and to increase the number of planes
operating off the Langley.”78
The link between personnel rotation and administrative control was manifest by
the career of Admiral John Towers, who served as an informal conduit between the
three organs en route to becoming head of BurAer in 1939. As one of the first naval
aviators, Towers rose up through fleet ranks to become commander of the Langley
where he worked closely with Reeves. From there he was transferred to BurAer’s
Plans Division and, in 1929 became assistant chief of BurAer, serving as Moffett’s
deputy. Two years later he returned to the fleet as chief of staff to the Commander,
Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Force, where he kept Moffett apprised of the fleet’s needs
and activities. Towers subsequently studied the future role of naval aviation at the
Naval War College, and became proficient at designing and evaluating war games.
He returned to the fleet in 1934 as chief of staff to the carrier commander, and from
there went on to assume command of the Saratoga. In 1938, Towers transferred back
to BurAer as assistant chief, and in 1939 was appointed head of the bureau where he
presided over the Navy’s shift to conducting carrier operations independent of the
battle line.79
A fourth feature that allowed BurAer to monitor indirectly the policy work of
sub-units derived from the bureaucratic competition that took place both inside and
outside of the Navy. For example, BurAer outfitted two naval air squadrons with
slightly different models of the Curtiss Hawk F6 dive-bomber, and encouraged
competition to assess the performance characteristics of the two planes against both
fixed and moving targets.80 Similarly, the fleet command exploited efforts by the
Marine Corps to evaluate dive-bombing techniques. During the interwar period,
the two services engaged in an iterative process of exploring and testing alternative
aircraft, bomb delivery equipment, and operational innovations that advanced
each service’s programmatic objectives. Competition at air shows and assessment
of Marine dive-bombing operations generated independent input that helped the
fleet command to settle on dive-bombing as an important mission, and to tailor
engineering specifications and techniques to naval operations. The Commander
of the U.S. Battle Fleet was so impressed with developments between the services
that during the first demonstration of dive-bombing by naval aviators in 1926 he
conceded that it would be virtually impossible to defend large surface ships against
such attacks. Furthermore, the stationing of Marine, Army, and Naval aviation units
at the same bases not only accentuated competition, but forged informal ties between
respective aviators that were conducive to sharing diverse combat experiences from
World War I and more limited Central American operations.81
Competition also extended to sub-units within the Fleet. Admiral Reeves, in
particular, was a big fan of instilling “the same intense spirit of competition among
78 Watts and Murray (1996), p. 401.
79 Clark Reynolds, Admiral John H. Towers (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press,
1991), pp. 199-290.
80 Wildenberg (1998), pp. 10-47.
81 Ibid.
Managing Defense Transformations122
aircraft squadrons that he had found invaluable during his days as a gunnery
officer.”82 Accordingly, he would frequently pit squadrons against each other to
generate new practical lessons on the limits of new dive-bombing techniques and
launching operations. Reeves also wholeheartedly embraced competition with Army
units at air shows as an outlet not only for spurring Naval pilots to develop new aerial
acrobatics techniques but “to put on a show” that demonstrated the accomplishments
of the aircraft squadrons in front of the public and entire Fleet.83
Managerial Norms
How appropriate were these procedural changes? Although carrier enthusiasts in
the bureau, fleet, and NWC managed to align incentives, oversight and coordination
between the three structures was far from complete. The impact of new material
incentives was restricted by the absence of shared understandings of the value and
purpose of carrier aviation as either an adjunct or rival to the Battle Fleet. This
was compounded by differences over the risk-taking appropriate for pacing the
introduction of new systems and tactics to “convince” skeptics within the service,
as well as by differences over the long-term repercussions of absorbing unproven
technologies and practices. In addition, the premium placed on loyalty within
the service, even among ranking carrier proponents, severely circumscribed the
percolation of “unwanted” information and discouraged “whistle-blowing.” Admiral
Reeves, for example, was notorious for demanding unwavering compliance among
naval flyers. On several occasions he went to great lengths to punish squadron
commanders who breeched the chain of command either by reporting concerns
about the safety of novel carrier landing techniques to civilian authorities, or by
challenging the focus of tactical training exercises.84
Such obstacles to risk-taking were compounded by the very opacity of the
selection process to flag rank officer. Because even “a single negative vote by any
admiral sitting on the board” could be sufficient to scuttle promotion of an otherwise
well-deserving officer, there was little margin for error when exploring new directions
for the carrier aviation. “Any officer ambitious enough to strive for the two stars of a
rear admiral needed to avoid antagonizing a superior, for one never knew who might
be sitting in future judgment of his promotion to the senior ranks of the Navy.”85 In
this context, a crucial element of managerial success rested with the adroit efforts by
carrier enthusiasts at framing new initiatives in terms consistent with professional
norms so as to defuse potential opposition, win over the battleship command, and
generate “common knowledge” about the carriers throughout the service.
Within the U.S. Navy there was traditional respect for commander autonomy,
and an accepted norm of indirect monitoring. As reflected in the Navy’s longstanding
theory of command, the prevailing managerial creed was that “the top officers should
tell their subordinates ‘what, when and where,’ then hold the subordinates responsible
82 Wildenberg (2003), p. 138.
83 Ibid., pp. 158-159.
84 Ibid., p. 144.
85 Ibid., p. 150.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 123
for the ‘how.’”86 This ethos was deeply ingrained as individual naval commanders,
prior to the development of radio, were left without specific instructions from shore-
based superiors for days, weeks, or even months. Accordingly, there was deep-seated
acceptance of decentralized authority and the presumption that officers at all ranks
would exercise discretion with due diligence.
At the Fleet level, this was manifest by carrier enthusiasts who exhibited a
strong disposition for taking the initiative to push the practical boundaries of
new technologies and operations. Reeves, for example, seized on this sentiment
repeatedly to bring others along at gaining appreciation for new possibilities for
carrier-based dive-bombing operations. The success of this administrative tactic was
borne out during Fleet Problem VII in 1927, when Reeves broke from the script
by re-deploying fighters from their long-range scouting and anti-submarine patrol
duties to conduct an aggressive bombing of the Black enemy fleet. As recounted by
Wildenberg:
Knowing that the problem was nearing an end, and unwilling to continue to take defensive
posture, Reeves requested and received permission to launch a strafing attack against the
enemy’s destroyers. This left the convoy without protection against air attack, which was
subsequently delivered by a large force of Black aircraft just after the exercise had been
called off.
Although opponents seized on the blunder to expose the limits of sea-based
aviation for protecting surface ships, ranking Fleet commanders on the scene
conspicuously refrained from criticizing the action. Instead, they were thoroughly
impressed by Reeves’ initiative at landing a powerful and unexpected first blow
from the air.87
In addition to repeatedly stealing the initiative to demonstrate the prowess of
naval aviation, there were concerted efforts made to speak to the Navy’s collectively
accepted managerial norms for coping with the uncertainty of novel technologies and
concepts. Naval officers shared from top to bottom respect for empirical evidence and
analysis acquired from experience, scientific testing, and war gaming.88 This dated
back to the late nineteenth century, when the shift from sail to steam power lead to the
merger of naval and engineering officers into a single line. “Amalgamation was tacit
recognition of the technological basis of contemporary naval power and the necessity
of engineering training for all naval officers,” thus cementing technical expertise as
a prerequisite for command appointments.89 This was reinforced by the creation of
the Naval Postgraduate School, and the service’s promotion of important exchanges
with engineering faculty at Columbia University, M.I.T., and other leading academic
institutions. As a result, much of the officer corps was trained in engineering and
86 Turner and Lord (1949), p. 191.
87 Wildenberg (2003), pp. 147-148.
88 On the U.S. Navy’s shared evidentiary standards and norms of experimentation, see
especially Murray and Watts (1996); William McBride, Technological Change and the United
States Navy 1865-1945 (Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2000); Wildenberg
(1998); and Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999).
89 McBride (2000), p. 32.
Managing Defense Transformations124
oriented towards accepting evidence obtained through rigorous experimentation.90
This deep-seated appreciation for technical analysis was embodied in subsequent
shifts first to the big gun dreadnought in the early twentieth century and then to the
carriers, as both were justified on the basis of the so-called N-square law that was
applied to evaluate attrition rates of traditional battle line engagements.91 Sensitivity
to this long-standing technical orientation within the service, and recognition of
the importance of cross-fertilization for easing tension and cultivating common
understanding among the Navy’s sub-communities, in effect, framed the approach
by senior officers—including Admirals Sims, Moffett and Reeves—to presenting,
orchestrating, and winning acceptance of carrier aviation.92
This technical orientation imbued the interwar U.S. Navy with a general openness
to explore new methods and technologies for improving operational effectiveness, as
long as the case for change could be supported by “appropriate” evidence gleaned
from extensive testing and operational experience. At the crux was a service-wide
acceptance of reciprocal exchanges and feedback between the rules and effects of
experimentation. Naval War College training simulations and fleet exercises, for
example, stressed close attention to technical detail and real conditions in operating
the carriers for assessing and conveying the prospects for naval aviation. As implored
by Admiral Sims, “In operating aircraft in chart maneuvers and game board exercises,
various rules are applied which must of necessity be in close agreement with actual
conditions if the true value of aircraft to the Fleet is to be appreciated.”93 By the same
token, there was a shared belief that intellectual horizons for tactical simulations and
doctrine could be soundly expanded, as long as evidence was thoroughly grounded
in real data and operational conditions. For instance, Sims’ successor as President
of the Naval War College, Admiral William Pratt, used data generated by rigorous
adherence to traditional measures of effectiveness for naval aviation simulations to
refine war-game rules and the parameters for assessing the performance of carrier-
based aircraft.94 Accordingly, simulations based on the findings of the Fleet problems
and the latest data provided by BurAer were important for developing widely accepted
novel solutions to key tactical issues—such as the effectiveness of ordnance delivery,
pulsating aerial attacks, aircraft launch and recovery, and communications warfare—
especially under the constraints imposed by the Washington Naval Treaty.95 In short,
90 Joseph Reeves, for example, first came to prominence as an engineering officer on
the Oregon during the Spanish-American War. Wildenberg (1998), p. 3.
91 Wildenberg (1998), p. 6. This law, formulated by the English engineer Frederick
Lancaster, stated that the value of a fighting force can be measured by multiplying the square of
its numerical strength by the fighting power of the individual units. This was used to calculate
attrition rates of battle line engagements. As one author notes, theorists at the Naval War
College subsequently attempted to make the technical case for the carriers by demonstrating
that the N-square law did not apply to carrier air strikes delivered in a pulse of combat power.
See Krepinevich (2000).
92 Wildenberg (2003), p. 133.
93 Quoted in Pierce (2004), p. 123.
94 Ibid., 125.
95 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 161. Treaty limits on numbers of ships
necessitated a reliance on simulations to assess future carrier designs. The result was that
The U.S. Navy Transformed 125
the rule impressed on junior officers on up the naval hierarchy was to present valid
evidence in making the case for improvements.96 Failure to produce reliable results
via realistic war-gaming, tests and exercises was simply unacceptable and constituted
legitimate grounds for denying commands and stunting promotion.97
Reeves was especially attuned to the importance of tapping into the service-wide
norm of “practicality” to stave off criticism and make the case for new operational
and tactical techniques for naval aviation. Upon assuming duty as Commander,
Aircraft Squadons, Battle Fleet, he moved quickly to dispel the image of naval
aviation as a “flying and drinking club” by issuing a prepared list of questions for
each squadron to address in performing for the Fleet. Reeves’ “Thousand and One
Questions” were regarded as the “holy” scripture by naval aviators, as they not
only guided them to “perfect the techniques, maneuvers, and tactics that formed the
basis of carrier doctrine,” but were crucial to communicating to officers in the Fleet
the burgeoning relevance of sea-based airpower to the service. In a lecture to his
charges in 1925 on the importance of going beyond reveling in the mere dangers of
aviation to addressing probing operational questions, Reeves minced few words on
the imperative of pitching future exploits in practical terms easily digestible to the
broader service community.
I do not know the answers to these questions and dozens like them any more than you do,
but until we can answer them, we will be of very little use to the fleet. That means that we
must become a school before we can become an air force. I do not know how long this
training period will last….. In any case, always remember that every “answer” must meet
the test of practicality; there will be no room for abstract theorizing in my command.98
This was coupled with keen attention to demonstrating the practical application
of naval aviation during Fleet exercises. Consequently, Reeves’ tenure as a
Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet was marked by compulsive efforts to
display the resourcefulness and skill of naval aviators at improving launching and
dive-bombing techniques during naval exercises and public exhibitions. For Reeves,
an integral component to sustaining sea-based aviation within the service rested
with publicly, tangibly, and repeatedly demonstrating its potential decisiveness to
the Navy’s concept of achieving military success.99
simulations, while not given the same weight as direct evidence, carried validity throughout
the naval hierarchy. See Trimble (1994), pp. 32-33, and McBride (2000), p. 165.
96 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 159. This stood in direct contrast to the
French Army immediately prior to the Second World War that placed more emphasis on the
received wisdom of World War I than available evidence from German operations in Spain,
Poland and Norway. See Cohen and Gooch (1991), chapter 8.
97 Unfortunately, this policy could have deleterious effects as well. Several junior
officers that were at the forefront of carrier innovation were passed over for promotion on
at least one occasion for focusing more on aviation than spending time at sea. Reynolds
(1991).
98 Wildenberg (2003), pp. 126-127.
99 Ibid., p. 209. See also Joseph M. Reeves, “Aviation in the Fleet,” U.S. Naval Institute
Proceedings 55:10 (October 1929), pp. 867-870.
Managing Defense Transformations126
The shared belief in the value of experimentation and simulation was critical for
wooing interest in carriers from the naval officers who engineered earlier dreadnought
innovations.100 The “big gun” club was especially biased towards evidence that
spoke to the mission of delivering long-range naval firepower against an opponent’s
battle line. This pro-battleship group was receptive to the findings produced by the
Fleet problems from 1925 onward that featured improvements to the bomb load
capacity of carrier-based aircraft, the accuracy of aerial bombing exercises, launch
and recovery of aircraft, and the effects of aerial ordnance.101 For example, by
initially couching the arming of reserve aerial spotters as augmentation of battleship
spotting doctrine, Reeves “effectively doubled the strike power available without
causing an intra-service squabble with the battleship officers.”102 Similarly, in the
1927 exercises, Reeves won over Fleet admirals by combining strong initiative with
careful attention to meeting the Fleet’s primary objective for offensive operations.
Though initially slated to patrol the fleet, Reeves made the case for reassigning air
squadrons to conduct bombing raids by demonstrating impressive launch and dive-
bombing techniques and pitching the initiative as consistent with the service’s search
for greater power projection capabilities. Notwithstanding operational delays and
difficulties with meeting the plan, Reeves’ success during the exercise effectively
“had given the admirals a weapon that enabled the fleet to project power far inland,
well beyond the limited range of its big guns.”103 For battle cruiser designers steeped
in the Navy’s scientific and technical culture, such as Hutch Cone, evidence marshaled
in this way made it easier to appreciate the value of exploring an independent role
for carrier aviation.104
Similarly, both Reeves and Moffett made conscious efforts to couch operational
and tactical modifications in terms of the Navy’s long-standing proclivity for searching
out “efficient” solutions to practical problems. For Reeves, this was manifest in his
staunch commitment to keeping air units together so that the service could maximize
the efficiency of training and use of whatever assets it was provided. For example,
in the face of mounting pressure to curb the financial and replacement costs of his
hard-driving training in 1926, Reeves solicited support from the CNO by defending
his actions as a quest to maximize the number of take-offs and landings from a single
carrier. This argument won over his superiors who were thoroughly impressed by
Reeves’ commitment to pushing the limits of training, testing, and developing naval
aviators and their material, and were loath to impose “unnecessary” restrictions on
such effective practices.105 The attention to couching aircraft operations as supporting
the service’s standard of efficiency also shaped Reeve’s approach to pressing the case
for extending the flight decks and increasing the complement of aircraft assigned to
100 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 197.
101 Ibid., 159-161. Projections developed by BurAer in conjunction with the aircraft
industry supplemented this valuable data.
102 Pierce (2004), p. 129.
103 Wildenberg (2003), pp. 145-147.
104 Trimble (1994), pp. 69-70; and McBride (2000), p. 99. Once convinced of the
importance of naval aviation, Cone lobbied for the formation of BurAer in a statement issued
to the General Board in 1919.
105 Wildenberg (2003), p. 140.
The U.S. Navy Transformed 127
the experimental Langley in 1927. For him, the only way for the Langley to “earn
her salt in the Navy” was to demonstrate that she could launch and recover more
than the 12-plane complement originally allocated. This idea met with significant
resistance from other carrier enthusiasts who firmly believed Reeves’ approach too
risky, fearing that it would take only one accident for the “carrier business to go out
the window.” Yet Reeves prevailed in doubling the size of armed aircraft attached to
the carrier largely by framing his proposal as an efficient response to recent changes
to battleship spotting doctrine that required the readiness of a second spotting aircraft
for each battleship. By convincing battleship commanders that the second armed
spotters could protect the spotting planes while flying in reserve, Reeves’ effectively
increased the striking power of the Langley and operational experience for carrier-
based aviators in a manner that neither posed a bureaucratic threat to the “big gun”
club nor required additional material outlays.106
Moffett too was deft at framing administrative initiatives aimed at integrating
naval aviators into the line consistent with the service’s long-standing commitment
to balancing equity of duty with broader naval efficiency. His argument in support
of creating BurAer as a separate entity, for example, was cast in terms of “popular
themes of economy and efficiency and the requirement to bring order out of present
‘chaotic conditions.’”107 Similarly, requests for extra-flight pay and for creating
temporary ranks for officers filling initial aviation billets drew on precedents of the
service’s solutions to personnel problems during and after the Civil War.108 This
skill was especially evident in Moffett’s presentation to the Morrow Board in 1925,
where he defended the need for new promotional opportunities, duty assignments,
and proficiency requirements against both Billy Mitchell’s proposal for creating an
independent air service and the campaign by BurNav to restrict the manning of flying
units to enlisted pilots and to favor general line duty over specialized aviation training
and knowledge. He worked closely with other carrier advocates to deliver a uniform
message about the inequalities confronting naval aviators—especially difficulties
at balancing sound technical proficiency with selections for general line duty and
serving under the direct command of non-flyers—in their efforts to integrate with the
line. By representing the problem as one of appreciating and rewarding specialized
service among airmen committed to improving the efficiency of naval operations,
Moffett and the other aviators channeled deliberations on the Morrow Board towards
favored solutions regarding representation within the service, command over flying
activities, and privileged access to general line duties for purposes of qualification
for commands.109
Common rules of evidence also were tremendously important for communicating
with and gaining acceptance from the Navy’s General Board. As the final arbiter
on how best to adapt aviation for naval purposes, General Board hearings offered
opportunities for entrepreneurs to persuade their seniors to undertake change. “They
gained that support by adhering to an important institutional and organizational rule-
106 Ibid., pp. 153-155.
107 Trimble (1994), p. 78.
108 Chisholm (2001), p. 646.
109 Ibid., pp. 641-646.
Managing Defense Transformations128
providing evidence. When admirals sitting as the General Board asked their aviator
colleagues for evidence of aviation’s performance and promise, the latter never
answered back that the demand for evidence was unfair.” Rather, it was accepted
by junior and senior officers alike that the shared evidentiary rule created a common
referent that made complex issues more accessible to senior officers, and strengthened
confidence in assessing otherwise novel concepts and practices that were beyond
the purview of the General Board’s expertise.110 In sum, successive achievements
demonstrated via traditional measures of effectiveness had the cumulative effect
of updating common knowledge and shoring up service-wide acceptance of the
carrier’s potential for evolving from a secondary spotting role to an independent
strike force.
Conclusion
Our analysis of U.S. carrier transformation supports the hypotheses presented in
chapter 2. We believe that this discussion should add confidence to claims about
the decisiveness of harmonizing procedural and normative elements of managerial
control to ensure successful transformation. Through successive administrative
reforms, those vested with authority to supervise development and exploration of
the carriers gradually but surely discouraged shirking and forged new common
understandings concerning the significance and prospective effectiveness of aircraft
carriers at all levels within the service. Their success proved decisive at not only
winning over traditionalists but inculcating trust and confidence in the exploration
of unproven technologies, strategies, operations, and forms. Far from being an
exception, the managerial strategy pursued within the U.S. Navy appears to be the rule
when military organizations opt for incremental, deliberate paths of transformation.
While other services may be more vigilant at aligning procedural with normative
dimensions of oversight, as demonstrated by the German Army in chapter 3, failure
to reduce agency costs by purposefully enlisting formal and/or normative measures
can significantly obstruct the course of military change. It is to these troubled and
failed trajectories of transformation that we turn our attention in chapters 5 and 6.
110 Hone, Friedman, and Mandeles (1999), p. 159; Hone and Mandeles (1980), pp. 97-
99; and Trimble (1994), pp. 38-39.
Chapter 5
The British and Armored Forces:
Squandering Early Innovation
The British Army during the closing years of World War I employed a new weapon,
the tank, to achieve dramatic breakthroughs across the barbed wire and trenches
that otherwise defined the attritional warfare. Though the British fielded their first
technologically-challenged tanks for infantry support, the Army’s pioneering use of
them en mass on the battlefields at Cambrai and Amiens illuminated the revolutionary
potential for large-scale, independent offensive armor operations. As described
by Harold Winton, the British Army’s innovative prowess was on full display by
war’s end with the new Tank Corps that “from a figment of the imagination, had
become a force of 20 battalions and 12 armored car companies,” and that due to its
dynamic performance at the tactical-level formed the crux of new visions for armor
operations.1 The enthusiasm spilled over into the initial interwar period, as the British
Army spearheaded significant technological, tactical, doctrinal, and organizational
advances. These early achievements were nourished by constructive debate over
mechanized versus armored warfare, and by decisions to create a permanent Tank
Brigade and expand the Royal Tank Corps. This was complemented by forward-
leaning experimentation in command, control, communications, and maneuverability
that by the early 1930s placed Britain at the vanguard of transformation to combined
arms warfare.
Yet by 1934, the British Army’s leadership of the armored revolution came to
an abrupt halt. Enthusiasm for the progressive use of the tank waned, with new
developments in doctrine featuring the mechanization of infantry and cavalry units
rather than independent armor operations. The transition from corps- and brigade-
level experimentation to division-level innovations at offensive tank warfare on the
Continent was outpaced by diffused approaches to fielding a new “Mobile Division”
for mechanizing the Army suited to policing the empire. Though the first to conduct
systematic experimentation of new tank designs and doctrine and the only army fully
outfitted with track and mechanized transport, the British Army virtually abandoned
hot pursuit of armored force, eventually taking a back-seat to German tactical and
operational exploration with combined arms during the latter half of the decade.
By the beginning of World War II, the British Army had undergone extensive
mechanization but effectively little transformation, with the deployment of a few
modern tanks grafted onto existing armored cavalry and infantry units that served
ad hoc and secondary roles. Even with superior numbers, as lamented by senior
1 Harold Winton, To Change an Army, (University Press of Kansas; Lawrence, KA;
1988), p. 15.
Managing Defense Transformation130
officers, the British armored formations were so tactically inferior that they could
not meet the German Panzer units on the battlefield prior to 1942.2
What went wrong with British armor transformation during the interwar period?
Why, after introducing promising new tank designs and visions, did the British Army
fail at institutionalizing armored warfare? Why did the British Army not only lose
its lead in exploring novel formations, but fall woefully behind peer competitors
in Germany, and to a lesser extent the Soviet Union, in exploiting them? Why,
in contrast to the experience of the U.S. Navy at the time, was the British Army
unable to sustain the momentum of early technological, doctrinal, and organizational
reforms to gradually but surely realize the potential for this new form of warfare?
Answers to these questions are not obvious. The British Army’s halting success
with transformation is especially problematic for mainstream explanations of
military change. Though technologically, fiscally, and politically constrained, the
British Army, like its foreign and inter-service rivals, confronted feasible options
that augured well for perpetuating, albeit evolutionary, progress towards armored
transformation. Furthermore, the British Army achieved both more and less than
predicted by extant organizational functional and normative arguments. On the one
hand, successive service reforms limited the influence of reactionary officers, as well
as enhanced the authority and career trajectories of tank enthusiasts who favored
modernization and exploration of novel armored formations. Similarly, prominent
outside advocates of offensive tank and mechanized warfare enjoyed constant contact
with the Army’s leading generals, as well as privileged access to senior politicians
and civilian officials in the War Office to exert important influence over internal
service matters. These developments notwithstanding, the British Army failed to
sustain dynamic armored innovations, leaving ardent proponents, such as J.F.C.
Fuller and B.H. Liddell Hart, with only sporadic influence over armored innovation.
On the other hand, the British military’s early technological, organizational, and
doctrinal successes with expanding the frontiers of tank and mechanized warfare (as
well as poison gas and strategic bombing) belie claims of strategic or organizational
cultural aversions to innovation. Army generals had neither settled on a definitive
way of mobile tank warfare, nor resisted experimenting with novel independent or
offensive formations for a continental war. Uncertainty and ambivalence, rather than
dogmatic adherence to outdated infantry and cavalry tactics or steadfast resistance
to armored force reflected the prevailing disposition among Britain’s leading Army
officers during the interwar period.
Though hamstrung, the British Army nonetheless proved to be its own worst
enemy at managing armored transformation. Coming out of World War I, tank
enthusiasts enjoyed political support and clearly delineated command authority to
oversee the exploration of armored and mechanized warfare. Yet, as we argue here,
these organizational advantages were squandered by a series of transformation-
stifling procedural and normative factors. In particular, the Army lacked effective
mechanisms to coordinate action among otherwise shielded tank units within the
broader service structure, as well as to overcome traditional incentives for promotion
and regimental specialization. Most important, diehard tank enthusiasts both within
2 Ibid., p. 156.
The British and Armored Forces 131
and outside of the service had a penchant for chastising their rivals for subscribing
to traditional practices, promoting massed, autonomous tank operations without
offering empirical evidence to support their claims or refute counter-arguments.
Together these factors significantly intensified the agency costs of diffusing radical
change that derailed the British Army’s effective exploitation of mechanized warfare,
notwithstanding strategic imperatives, burgeoning enthusiasm among empowered
entrepreneurs, and initial advances in operational and tactical doctrine.
This chapter examines the administrative challenges to managing the
transformation of British armored formations. The first section elucidates problems
that the Royal Army’s initial accomplishments and subsequent abandonment of
armored warfare pose for extant “outside-in” and “inside-out” explanations of
military innovation. Specific attention is devoted to identifying the inconsistencies
of this pattern with independent material-functional and cognitive-cultural
explanations for organizational change. The second part traces insights from the
modified principal-agent framework. Here we demonstrate how the British Army
failed to take full advantage of the organizational division of authority to sustain
initial armored innovations. We highlight how the inability to restructure incentives
and tighten coordination up and down the service hierarchy, as well as failure to
promote common knowledge by tapping into accepted norms for decisionmaking
and experimentation, gradually but surely exacerbated the agency costs of managing
the armored revolution.
Constrained but Not Doomed to Failure
The British Army exited World War I embracing novel ways to employ the tank.
The tank corps received “Royal” status by 1923, and the Army supported the design
and development of three tank programs, and was at the forefront of executing
experimentation with armored and mechanized formations throughout the remainder
of the decade. Shortly thereafter, however, the Royal Army reversed course,
burying ambitious concepts for deep armored penetration within its massive, all-
Army program for the mechanization of infantry, artillery, and cavalry formations.
The senior leadership re-directed procurement, training, and experimentation, as
well as exhibited residual interest in offensive armored operations and doctrine.
Consequently, by the outset of World War II, the Army “had no tank in production,
its artillery was antiquated, its anti-tank gun obsolete, and its vehicular support
inadequate,” as well as was ill-prepared intellectually to cope with the changing face
of the battlefield.3
On the surface, the failure of the British Army to institutionalize novel ways of
armored warfare seems over-determined, the product of multiple impediments to
military change beyond the service’s control. The Army, for example, was under the
tight reins of the Treasury and was placed in a fiscal vice by the War Office’s 1919
commitment to the “ten-year rule.” The latter, reaffirmed in 1925, carried a severe
3 Williamson Murray, “Armored Warfare: The British, French, and German
Experience,” in Williamson Murray and Allan R. Millett, eds., Military Innovation in the
Interwar Period (New York: Cambridge University Press, 1996), p. 11.
Managing Defense Transformation132
budgetary constraint, as it constituted a pledge to refrain from fielding a robust
expeditionary force throughout the period.4 Declining resource allocations limited
procurement orders and left dedicated experimental units shorthanded, as well as
compounded technological and industrial barriers to redressing reliability, mobility,
firepower, logistical, defense, and wireless communications problems beyond the
modest operational capabilities and training associated with the first generation
of tanks. The situation arguably worsened by the early 1930s, as the economic
depression in Britain retarded tank research and development (R&D), as well as
prompted a freeze on the acquisition of new equipment and reliance on obsolete and
mass produced hardware for the Army. Accordingly, by the outset of World War II,
the Royal Army was saddled with technically inferior tanks vis-à-vis the Germans
that required 6 to 9 months to produce in any significant numbers.5 The pressure was
exacerbated by the strategic necessity to protect simultaneously the home front (via
air defense), as well as Britain’s far-flung imperial and continental commitments.
Against the backdrop of these complementary fiscal-technological constraints, this
strategic “trilemma” militated against a decisive shift in doctrine, organization, and
procurement practices throughout the interwar period.6
Upon closer inspection, these exogenous factors constrained more than prevented
successful transformation. Though immature and lacking a demonstrative effect on
the offense-defense balance of wars fought between 1919 and 1939, tank technology
nonetheless was widely accepted as evolving and offering promising avenues for
exploitation during the interwar period.7 Indeed, early conceptions of armored
warfare—including Fuller’s “Plan 1919” that called for innovative combined arms
use of an all-tank army—were predicated on improvements in reliability, speed,
firepower, and protection from anti-tank guns that failed to materialize in newer
tank models, such as the “Medium-D.” Yet, the Army continued to introduce several
innovative tank designs, as well as coded transmissions, radios, and combustion
engines. As early as 1927, the Chief of the Imperial General Staff (CIGS), Gen. Sir
George Milne, pronounced that new advances with the gasoline engine presaged
the eventual formation of armored warfare. Despite the technological challenges,
other senior British officers, such as Maj. Gen. John Burnett-Stuart—who was well-
known for his judicious and comprehensive analysis—boasted that the tank had been
developed sufficiently by the end of the 1920s that it could “cut itself adrift from the
4 Winton (1988), p. 78.
5 John Stone, “The British Army and the Tank,” in Theo Farrell and Terry Terriff,
eds. The Sources of Military Change (Lynne Rienner Publishers, Inc., Boulder, CO; 2002),
p. 189; Robert Larson, The British Army and the Theory of Armored Warfare (Newark, DE:
University of Delaware Press, 1984), p. 124, 180; and Brian Bond, British Military Policy
Between the Two World Wars (New York, NY: Clarendon Press-Oxford, 1980), pp. 145-147.
6 Winton (1988), p. 203.
7 On the paucity and confounding battlefield evidence of the offensive versus defense
impact of tank designs during the interwar period, see discussion in Keir A. Lieber, War and
the Engineers: The Primacy of Politics over Technology (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
2005), pp. 101-103.
The British and Armored Forces 133
infantry battle, and go into business on its own as a principal, not merely assistant.”8
Furthermore, British tank achievements not only stoked interest within the service
for greater tactical experimentation, but provided the basis for the technological,
logistical, and production advances with combined mass, mobility, and firepower
undertaken by the Germans and Soviets.
Tight budgets also did not preclude significant discretionary spending on new
tank designs or experimentation. From the end of The Great War to 1936, the British
spent heavily on the development of different medium and light tank designs. Yet the
Army opted to spread its limited R&D resources thinly on development of multiple
medium tank prototypes, including six versions of the “sixteen tonner.” It then decided
by the mid-1930s to alter course, placing production priority on lighter tanks and
armored vehicles.9 Fiscal stringency neither prevented successive reorganizations
that elevated the stature of the tank, including the formation of the Experimental
Armored Force (EAF) in 1928 and the Tank Brigade in 1934, nor prohibited annual
maneuvers, such as experiments in 1931 involving the watershed use of radios for
mobile tank operations that occurred at the most austere moment faced by the Army
during the interwar period.10 Furthermore, Army officers proved adroit on occasion
at averting painful spending tradeoffs at the expense of advancing armored warfare.
In recognition of both the promise of an armored brigade and the fiscal constraints
imposed on the Army, Milne simultaneously proposed to focus experimentation in
1929 on mechanized infantry units while securing from the Treasury the necessary
budgetary authority to place future orders for heavy and light tanks to outfit the
permanent armored brigade. Impressed by Milne’s entrepreneurship, Winston
Churchill, then Chancellor to the Exchequer, reassured the Army by promising “that
this part of your (Milne’s) program will be given absolute priority within whatever
total is fixed when Estimates come to be considered.”11
In addition, Britain’s strategic predicament did not prescribe a specific role for
the tank or armored formations. Critics of armored warfare pointed explicitly to
the inconsistencies of such developments with meeting the narrow requirements
for waging imperial and continental warfare, respectively. Yet, the proponents
based their case on alternative interpretations of Britain’s strategic priorities. For
some tank enthusiasts, such as Liddell Hart, the premium placed on Imperial
control necessitated expanding the armored component of the Army’s role on the
Continent to compensate for limitations to the traditional strict reliance on the Navy.
Alternatively, Fuller underscored the rising prominence of continental warfare, and
the attendant strategic demands on augmenting the mobility and firepower of the
8 Quoted in Harold R. Winton, “Tanks, Votes, and Budgets,” in Harold R. Winton and
David R. Mets, eds., The Challenge of Change (Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 2000),
p. 84.
9 J.P. Harris, Men, Ideas, and Tanks (Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1995),
pp. 238-239, 278; and Larson (1984), pp. 190-192.
10 Bond (1980), p. 187; and John J. Mearshimer, Liddell Hart and the Weight of History
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1988), pp. 76-78.
11 Winton (2000), p. 85. Parenthesis added.
Managing Defense Transformation134
tank to conduct highly advanced combined arms operations.12 In short, Britain’s
strategic priorities were perceived as both reinforcing and invalidating emphasis
on armored warfare, rendering the Army ill-prepared to wage either imperial or
continental warfare by the outset of World War II. As summed up by Winton, one of
the curious anomalies among strategic thinkers of the time was that “the desire of the
reformers for armored warfare was at loggerheads with their strategic preference for
limited liability, while the preference military conservatives had for mechanization
over armored warfare was directly at odds with their realization of the necessity for
a firm continental commitment.”13
By the same token, new wave intra-organizational explanations for military
change are deficient at capturing the halting pattern of British armored innovation.
On the one hand, there were clear obstructions to promotional pathways for tank
officers. Leadership of the Royal Tank Corps, for example, was initially denied to tank
enthusiasts. Because senior positions were typically renewed for three-year periods,
tank innovators were virtually frozen out of the top positions in the Corps during the
early years. Furthermore, junior officers that had been in the Corps from inception in
1923 were repeatedly displaced by the promotion of officers from other branches of
the service.14 On the other hand, by the 1930s, the RTC was composed of a diverse
group of officers—such as Col. Gen. George Lindsay, Lt. Col. Charles Broad, Maj.
Percy Hobart, and Maj. Frederick Pile—who not only distinguished themselves
as significant champions of technological, doctrinal and operational innovations
with tank and armored formations but went on to hold senior positions within the
service.15 Fuller too had an opportunity to rise up the ranks and to bring his concepts
for armored doctrine into force, as he was offered the position of commander of the
Experimental Mechanized Force (EMF) in 1926. That he did not hold the post was
due less to a formal promotional barrier than to his own volition, as he turned it down
largely out of concerns for autonomy and personal staff support.16
Similarly, cognitive-cultural arguments appear convincing on the surface. The
British Army, for example, has been traditionally depicted as a victim of its own
visceral conservative approach to colonial warfare and reactionary response military
change. As noted by Brian Bond, “The Army’s whole organization, recruiting system,
training, equipment, and—not the least—tradition were strongly oriented towards
imperial defense.”17 Moreover, Army officers appeared to be indoctrinated by the
Caldwell system that stipulated that soldiers had to be prepared to serve at home
and abroad, rotating freely between deployed units. The result was the matching on
a one-to-one basis of brigades and divisions designated for homeland and colonial
defense that was accepted virtually as a holy writ for experimentation, training, and
12 David French, The British Way in Warfare 1688-2000 (London: Unwin Hyman,
1990), pp. 175-201; and Winton (2000), p. 90.
13 Winton (2000), p. 100.
14 Bond (1980), pp. 51-52; and Patrick Wright, Tank: The Progress of a Monstrous War
Machine, (New York, NY: Penguin Putnam Inc.,2000), pp. 142-143.
15 Bond (1980), pp. 130-131.
16 Larson (1984), pp. 73-74; and Winton (2000), pp. 82-83.
17 Bond (1980), p. 188.
The British and Armored Forces 135
organization within the service throughout the interwar period.18 Together, these
factors inculcated a bias towards embracing a strategy of “limited liability” on the
continent and policing the empire via small mechanized units that blinded the service
both to exploiting the full promise of armored warfare—that appeared to offer
little value for defending India—and to appreciating the effectiveness of armored
formations in the German blitzkrieg strategy for defeating Poland in 1939.19
This prejudice was seemingly buttressed by a lingering disgust with The Great War
across British society, and a related proclivity within the Army to default to a prewar
tactical aversion to searching for technological panaceas. A common understanding
was that “the ultimate Allied victory, however costly, had vindicated completely the
strategy of attrition and that this doctrine should be strictly maintained in the army’s
postwar training and planning for future war.”20 As Bidwell and Graham assert, the
prospective emotional attachment within the Army to “celebrating the technical
knock-out” potential offered by new systems, including the tank and tactical airpower,
was drowned out by the groundswell of mourning over the immense losses of the
war.21 The anxiety and fear of reliving the war also contributed to a yearning for a
reversion to prewar service rituals and routines. According to Liddell-Hart, “‘Back
to 1914’ was a common military catchphrase of the post-war period, and came to be
applied unthinkingly even in the reconstruction of tactics and tactical organization.”22
At Camberly and the Staff College, for example, this translated into a bias towards
studying new methods for “winning the last war,” and downgrading emphasis on
mechanization and new tactics, much to the chagrin of many students.23 Though the
War Office occasionally formed ad hoc senior officer committees to study particular
prewar issues, these efforts generated few practical recommendations for armored or
mechanized warfare prior to 1930.24
Yet, traditional cognitive-cultural arguments too fall short as independent
explanations for the British abandonment of armored transformation. Assertions
of an ossified British strategic culture do not comport, for example, with the
determination of the Royal Air Force to “cook the books” and reject “lessons
learned” in its embrace of novel technologies and doctrines for strategic bombing.25
More specifically, the issue of radical change, and especially progressive concepts
of armored warfare, hardly fell on deaf ears within the Army. Rather than paralyzed
by an emotional attachment to defending the empire while adhering to “limited
liability” on the Continent, the Army was consumed by “keeping its options open,”
18 Murray (1996), p. 22; and Winton (1988), p. 229.
19 Bond (1980), p. 188. See discussion in Mearshimer (1988), pp. 21-22; and French,
(1990), p. 289.
20 Larson (1984), p. 63.
21 Shelford Bidwell and Dominick Graham, Firepower: British Army Weapons and
Theories of War, 1904-1945 (Boston, MA: George Allen & Unwin, 1982), pp. 132; 169.
22 Sir Basil Henry Liddell-Hart, The Tanks, Vol. 1 (New York, NY: Praeger Publishers,
1959), pp. 199-200.
23 Bond (1980), p. 37.
24 Larson (1984), pp. 26-27.
25 See especially discussion in Williamson Murray, “Strategic Bombing: The British,
American, and German Experiences,” in Murray and Millett (1996), pp. 116-122.
Managing Defense Transformation136
resisting preparation for a single strategic mission.26 The service also engaged in self-
reflection, as the General Staff commissioned several forward-leaning reports. The
Kirke Committee, for example, proved especially open to reexamining lessons from
The Great War, producing a report in 1932 that touted combined arms operations
and detailed the need for novel training and experimental methods for employing
tanks for offensive warfare.27 Similarly, both the first postwar tank manual published
in 1918 and the 1929 hallmark primer for armored warfare underscored the
progressive contributions of tanks and armored formations. That the practical effects
of these documents were marred by revisions and restricted circulation, speak less
to the dearth of novel ideas than to the political impediments to implementation.28
Also, as noted above, the absence of a cogent continental mission—that fostered
the residual primacy of an imperial focus and stunted the Army’s full embrace of
armored warfare—did not prevent the service from embarking on key innovations,
as evidenced by the sustained expenditure of scarce resources on anti-aircraft guns
for homeland defense or experimentation with armored warfare.29 The latter, in
particular, generated from 1925 new insights that lead directly to the formation of an
armored experimental force, as well as turned heads in demonstrating the potential
for small armored formations to incapacitate much larger infantry formations.30
Finally, the Army was far from monolithic in its orientation towards future
combat, with members of the senior officer corps holding diverse views on the utility
of tanks and armored formations. Though there were certainly senior officers who
resisted mechanization (let alone armored warfare) as substitutes for the cavalry,
they in no way monopolized the intellectual landscape. Winton and Bond note,
for example, that visions for armored warfare during the interwar period were far
from polarized, and fell into as many as six main groups—revolutionary, reforming,
progressive, conservative, reactionary, and indifferent. A small group, led by Fuller,
Hobart, Pike, and Broad, who by the 1930s exerted strong influence over doctrine,
envisioned the “overwhelming superiority of the tank over any other mechanical
invention or scientific discovery.” The others, except for those who were indifferent
or true reactionaries, held strong views on the prospects for reforming the Army’s
tactical doctrine, enhancing the role of combined arms and mechanizing infantry
units. Though these officers differed over the role of tanks versus mechanized infantry
in mobile force units, they were not biased against future pursuit of armored units.
Moreover, several prominent officers, such as Burnett-Stuart, changed their views
from lukewarm to ardent support for sweeping tactical revisions.31 Other officers,
such as Milne, who were initially skeptical of the primacy of armored formation,
26 Winton (1988), p. 203.
27 Bidwell and Graham (1982), pp. 139-145, 172; and David French, Raising Churchill’s
Army (New York, NY: Oxford University Press, 2000), p. 31.
28 Larson (1984), pp. 151-152; Harris (1995), pp. 180-181, 223; and Bidwell and
Graham (1982), p. 174.
29 Winton (1988), p. 203.
30 Ibid., pp. 84-87.
31 Ibid., pp. 27-30. See also Bond (1980), pp. 130-132.
The British and Armored Forces 137
nonetheless championed successive innovations in experimentation, training,
procurement, and standing up new tank units.32
Institutionalized Separation Without Control
The British Army’s halting experience with armored transformation during the
interwar period makes sense when viewed through the prism of the modified
principal-agent framework. On the one hand, command authority was clearly
delineated throughout the period. This provided an institutional base for introducing
new tank technologies and conducting novel experimentation. On the other hand,
deficient formal and informal coordinating mechanisms and reporting requirements
diminished the capacity of newly empowered commanders to supervise combined
arms doctrine and operations. Rampant power-sharing and the diffused administrative
structure of the Army Council and General Staff blurred operational authority, and
institutionalized consensual and risk-averse decisionmaking among senior military
and civilian leaders within the War Office. The confusion was compounded by the
British Army’s regimental system of decentralized but isolated units, adherence to
the Cardwell system of creating parallel units at home and abroad, separating the
tank corps from the regular divisional structure (eliminating opportunities for joint
training and experimentation), absence of formal ties to mechanized infantry, and
fragmentation of design and development of armored technologies. Furthermore,
promotion within the service was determined largely by seniority, regimental
peculiarities, and versatility at serving at home and within colonial ranks rather than
by specialization. At the same time, the champions of armored warfare neglected
long-standing managerial norms of top-down command, low error tolerance, and
regimental specialization that complicated the task of building support for operational
and tactical flexibility needed from across the service. By failing to marshal
experimental evidence and lessons from history in a compelling manner, Royal armor
enthusiasts simply failed to establish analytical benchmarks or generate common
knowledge needed to build trust concerning the promise of armored warfare across
service ranks. Consequently, they were unable to overcome procedural inefficiencies
or to navigate the uncertainty associated with sustaining this new form of warfare
until confronted with new realities on World War II battlefields.
Confusion Amid Procedural Clarity
At the highest level, the British Army was governed by the Army Council (AC)
that was formed in 1904 to ensure civilian control via diffuse administration of the
military. The AC was formally charged with overseeing all aspects of the Army,
with specific authority delegated to the senior membership. For example, the
Secretary of State for War, who served as chairman, was generally responsible for
all military issues, while the Financial Secretary supervised Army contracting, the
32 Larson (1984), pp. 146-147.
Managing Defense Transformation138
Parliamentary Under-Secretary of State was responsible for Territorial Army issues
(other training), and the Permanent Undersecretary served as the bridge between the
civilian leadership and military branches of the service.33 Within the AC structure,
the latter were subordinated to the War Office that was composed of the CIGS and
the General Staff, the Quartermaster-general, the Master-general of ordnance, and
the Adjutant-general.34 The War Office, in turn, directly supervised Army forces,
doctrine, procurement, and training.35
The efficiency of these clear lines of authority, however, was obfuscated by
several countervailing factors within the AC. In practice, the AC convened only two
to six times a year, with the lion’s share of the administrative burden falling ad
hoc on each member. Because military and civilian members of the AC retained
autonomy over respective issue areas, decisions that transcended departments
required consensus-building among the AC leadership.36 This effectively empowered
civilian offices that were simultaneously subordinate to other government offices,
such as the Treasury Office, with veto authority within the AC over the minutiae
of military policy. As described by Sir Gifford Martel, the damage to coherent and
professional defense policymaking caused by such extensive civilian intrusion was
“beyond description.”37
Planning and organization also was hindered by the absence of institutional links
between offices. For example, strategic planning was conducted by the Directorate
of Military Operations of the General Staff that reported through the CIGS to the
Committee of Imperial Defense.38 Yet there was a separate office, the Deputy Director
of Staff Duties, within the General Staff that was charged with overseeing wartime
army organization. At the same time, there was a third office outside of the General
Staff, subordinated to the Adjutant-General’s office and appended to the AC that
supervised peacetime operations. Similarly, despite its formal stature as the highest
ranking military commander of the Army, the CIGS served “at best as only the first
among equals.”39 The highly autonomous role of AC members and the imperative
for decisionmaking consensus curtailed the operational authority of the CIGS so that
field commanders were expected to report directly to the Secretary of State for War
(the chairman of the Army Council).40
The diffusion and confusion at the highest levels of command authority directly
affected oversight of armor development. On the one hand, in the immediate postwar
33 Bond (1980), pp. 42-43.
34 Ibid., pp. 398-399.
35 Ibid., pp. 41-42.
36 Winton (1988), pp. 74-75, 227. Even a War Office member so removed from
doctrinal and tactical planning, such as the Quarter-master, was able to postpone the formation
of the first experimental tank unit simply because he deemed that billeting facilities were
insufficient.
37 Bond (1980), pp. 39-43.
38 John Gooch, The Prospect of War: Studies in British Defense Policy 1847-1942,
(London: Frank Cass & Co. Ltd., 1981), p. 146.
39 Bidwell, and Graham (1982), p. 167; and Winton (1988), p. 227.
40 Ibid., pg. 167-168. Army Council members were legally prevented from approaching
any member of the government other than the Secretary of State for War.
The British and Armored Forces 139
period, the General Staff began to integrate the tank closely into the mainstream
Army command structure. A new branch, SD7, was created as part of the General
Staff section of the War Office (Staff Duties branch) with responsibly for tank
development. On the other hand, the new Director General of the Tank Corps was
appointed strictly as an advisor to the General Staff, and not a full commander of
a separate Army branch. This effectively divorced responsibility for doctrinal and
procurement issues from the leadership of tank units.41 Moreover, the Tank Corps was
initially placed outside of the regular divisional structure that eliminated opportunities
for joint training and interaction with other branches.42 This configuration limited
contact between the Tank Corps and the AC that rendered the latter vulnerable to
significant manpower cuts and ultimately dispersal by the early 1920s.43 Similarly,
with the formation of the “Royal” Tank Corps in 1923, tank battalions were not
attached one-to-one to respective infantry divisions.44 The administrative separation
was revisited with formation of the EMF in 1927 as part of the 7th Infantry Garrison,
with the commander charged with overseeing the operation of groups other than
the EMF.45 Though the armor support units were attached to the EMF, they were
responsible for their own training and were subordinate to the overall commander
only in the final exercises. In addition, the EMF was subordinated to the 3rd Division
and Southern Command – with the latter under the command of Gen. Montgomery-
Massingberg, a conservative opponent of the tank.46
The formal separation of tank entrepreneurs reduced their influence at promoting
innovation within the larger operating core. Fuller, at the height of his influence (on
armor theory) was only a “military assistant” to CIGS Milne.47 Though his personal
association with Milne elevated a nominally secretarial position, he could not
monitor agents in tank development, directly assist their promotions, or personally
manage experimentation.48 Even when entrepreneurs secured commands, divided
responsibilities and insufficient staff support reduced the capacity to monitor their
own sections. The lack of staff support institutionalized strict top-down management,
forcing them to devote scarce resources to manage coordination between tank
units.49
41 Harris (1995), p. 180.
42 French (2000), p. 41.
43 Larson (1984), p. 120. The Tank Corps was reduced from 20 to 4 battalions.
44 Wright (2000), pp. 142-143.
45 Bond, (1980), pp. 140-143, and Larson (1984), p. 133.
46 Murray (1996), p.24; and Larson (1984), p. 133. In 1926, the EMF was renamed
“Experimental Armored Force.” It was disbanded in 1928.
47 Larson, (1984), p. 125.
48 Jay Luvaas, The Education of the British Army: British Military Thought, 1815-1940
(Chicago; University of Chicago Press, 1964), pp. 361-362; and Bidwell and Graham (1982),
pp. 168-169. Fuller realized the weakness of British tactics and predicted that blitzkrieg
warfare would alter the outcome in France and North Africa in the early years of the war. His
recommendations for defense in depth and combining tank and anti-tank units in an armored
force were exhibited by France and Germany’s Afrika Korps.
49 French (2000), p. 164.
Managing Defense Transformation140
Ironically, the ad hoc division of labor both elevated and stymied armored
transformation. In 1932, Hobart was presented with command of the new Tank
Brigade, and doubled as the Inspector of the RTC. This empowered him to coordinate
experiments in his role as Inspector with his possession of a field command, similar
to the arrangement that Oswald Lutz and Heinz Guderian enjoyed in the German
Army. Hobart immediately tried to secure (unsuccessfully) a charter for the new
unit that specified an official operational doctrine that could not be amended by a
new CIGS.50 Adding to the potential of the force, the War Office issued a statement
that encouraged pursuit as an independent offensive, mobile force.51 Hobart used
his official position and relationship with Col. George Lindsay (commander of the
experimental 7th Infantry Brigade) for collaborating on designing an experiment to
combine their two units under Lindsay’s command.52 This was the only occasion for
significant informal contact between tank enthusiasts during the interwar period that
aided the experimentation and monitoring process, culminating in the merger of the
7th Infantry and Tank Brigades into the Mobile Force.53
On the other hand, the ensuing administrative arrangements were problematic.
Oversight was poorly integrated, as there were neither tight interfaces between the
Tank Brigade and 7th Infantry, nor joint training in advance of the 1934 exercises.54
Even when the force did come together, the two brigades maintained separate staffs
that significantly curbed the oversight and political clout of both commanders.
Accordingly, when the new CIGS, Montgomery-Massingberd, codified a general
mechanization plan that did not expand the Tank Brigade, commanders were poorly
positioned to secure backing from the AC that was otherwise predisposed to protect
the size and resources of traditional arms via mechanization of the infantry and
cavalry. Therefore, upon completion of the Mobile Force exercise, RTC experts were
dispersed and any tactics that had been “discovered” in the course of experimentation
were sacrificed in favor of cavalry-friendly missions outfitted by separate light tank
command.55 In 1935, former RTC officers requested that the director of military
training reinstate their oversight as real tank experts, but the appeal was rejected.56
The Army’s shift from armor innovation to general mechanization undermined
the effectiveness of the full integration of the Tank Brigade and mechanized cavalry
division into the Mobile Division in 1937. The reconnaissance-minded cavalry had
become almost completely mechanized, as the two mechanized cavalry brigades
contained six light tank regiments that diluted the two medium tank regiments of the
50 Bond (1980), pp. 163-164.
51 Larson (1984), p. 163.
52 Ibid., p. 166.
53 Harris (1995), pp. 248-249.
54 Bond (1980), p. 166; and Harris (1995), p. 250.
55 Wright (2000), p. 186. The cavalry, ironically, was the prime recipient of new tanks
as mechanization consisted mostly of conversion to light tanks. The new cavalry light tank
units maintained separate authority over officer lists that further inhibited integrated oversight
of tank operations. Larson (1984), pp. 173-175.
56 Winton (1988), p. 186.
The British and Armored Forces 141
Tank Brigade.57 In gradual pursuit of mechanization, Montgomery-Massingberd and
the General Staff ironically created a supporting unit for reconnaissance that was
“little more than a conglomeration of assorted units.”58 The lack of opportunity for
joint experimentation and training and the ill-defined continental mission effectively
atomized and disoriented the two mechanized infantry regiments, the cavalry units,
and the Tank Brigade.59
The period from 1934 to 1938 constituted “one long attempt to move from the
brigade level to the division level of armored formations.”60 It was a tortured journey
through bureaucratic indecision that resulted in the codification of supporting cavalry
operations and structure at the expense of the promise of fielding an offensive
armored force.61 On the eve of World War II, the British equivalent of the German
Panzer division had a 7:2 light-to-mixed tank battalion ratio that prevented sufficient
firepower, and a 9:2 tank-to-infantry battalion ratio that limited its ability to hold
territory.62 Similarly, the formation of the new Royal Armored Corps (out of the merger
of the RTC with mechanized cavalry) was marred by the administrative separation
of respective regiments, badges and identifications. Officers from the RTC and
mechanized cavalry regiments retained separate officer lists that further divided the
two units. While the new light tank cavalry units were formally subordinate to RTC,
training remained a separate affair that limited advancement of both sections.63
By the same token, institutional disorder in the design process, coupled with
the failure to enlarge industrial capacity, stymied tank developments.64 The British
weapons design and development process was divided between several offices,
making it very difficult for principals to monitor the process from start to finish.
Instead of empowering a single branch to oversee the tank development process, the
War Office maintained general control, while the Directors of Military Operations
and Intelligence were authorized to generate requirements for future warfare
and monitor procurement by foreign adversaries and the Director of Staff Duties
was delegated authority to specify weapons requirements. Management of the
procurement process was then parceled out to two different Army Council offices:
the Master General of Ordnance (MGO) and the Quarter-master General (QMG)
57 French (2000), pp. 41-42. There were only two infantry battalions compared with
nine tank battalions. See Bond (1980), p. 189.
58 Winton (1988), p. 204. See also Harris (1995), p. 257.
59 Winton (1988), p. 204.
60 Ibid., p. 234.
61 Larson (1984), p. 179.
62 Ibid., p. 213.
63 Ibid., pp. 175-176. The lack of armored divisions was not the sole result of the
government’s colonial emphasis or strategic views. The Army’s ratio of armored to infantry
divisions actually decreased as the government moved further towards a continental
commitment. By 1938, it was one-to-four and later became one-to-seven at the outset of the
war.
64 Lt. Gen. Sir Giffard Le Q. Martel, Our Armed Forces (London: Faber and Faber
Limited, 1945), pp. 49, 52, 55-56, and 98; and Harris (1995), p. 241.
Managing Defense Transformation142
that excluded the General Staff.65 There was almost no horizontal or vertical linkage
through which the weapons doctrine and specifications designers could supervise
production, rendering long-term oversight extremely difficult. This encouraged
shirking down the line, as the MGO offices in charge of tank R&D often refused to
provide prototypes that were otherwise required by the CIGS for the development
related doctrinal and policy changes.66 This negative feedback loop stifled new tank
designs at a moment when technologies related to firepower, mobility, engine design
for medium and heavy tanks experienced dynamic change. 67
The problem was compounded by the reliance on a single company—Vicker-
Armstrong—for British tank designs. This deprived the service of alternative
sources of information to compensate for the internal problems of oversight. The
damage took its toll early, as the company scrapped impressive R&D advances on
the Medium D tank in 1919 in favor of the production of a Medium tank that proved
to be too heavy.68 The Army simply lacked authority to guide development or the
benefit of choosing among competitive prototypes, thus rendering the Vickers-
Medium the service’s standard until 1937, despite obvious technical deficiencies
and growing demand for large numbers of diversified systems to fulfill different
missions. In light of the fiscal constraints, the Army could not afford to coax other
companies to enter into the design and development process without promises of
production before 1936.69 Even after that point the Army’s cadre of tank design and
production experts was too small and weak, and was bereft of engineers to monitor
systematically private competition.70
In addition to orphaned units, there were strong material disincentives to pursuing
a career with armored warfare within the British Army. Uncertainty about the status
of the tank discouraged many officers and led them to transfer back to their original
branches. One particularly strong formal disincentive for expanding armor doctrine
rested with the Cardwell system that was designed to facilitate the operation of the
colonial military mission, since officers and soldiers had to be able to serve both at
home and to rotate between the two. To ease such training, the home army was formally
structured and outfitted as a near mirror image of the abroad army. This effectively
doubled the burden for creating new armored units, as it necessitated matching
brigades or divisions abroad in theaters of war that would render them completely
useless.71 Furthermore, forward military commands did not always embrace the
structural changes favored by the home leadership. In this regard, the Indian Army
presented a key problem, as it was part of the Caldwell system but fell outside the
65 French (2000), p. 83. The QMG developed supply and transport vehicles, and the
MGO developed artillery and other weaponry.
66 Larson (1984), p. 192.
67 M. M. Postan, British War Production, (London: Longmans, Green, & Co., 1952),
pp. 185-189.
68 Bond (1980), pp. 132-133.
69 Harris (1995), p. 274; and Larson (1984), p. 121.
70 Bond (1980), pp. 177-178. It took a service maverick in the procurement department,
such as Lt. Gen. Sir Gifford Martel, to jumpstart exploration of foreign designs and procurement
of the U.S. Christie tank as a medium cruiser prototype.
71 Murray (1996), p. 22; and Winton (1988), pp. 229-230.
The British and Armored Forces 143
regular Army chain of command. Moreover, it was funded and administered by an
Indian government that was generally predisposed to interpret efforts to amend the
imperial force structure as signals of waning British commitment.72 The formation
of the Tank Brigade in 1932 (later part of the Mobile Division) was possible only
by matching and maintaining the tank companies at home with an equal number of
armored-car companies and mechanized cavalry units abroad.73 The Cardwell system
also disrupted the armor training system by regularly rotating officers out of units
to garrison imperial posts (and replacing them with the returning soldier/officer).74
Accordingly, differences between continental and colonial warfare rendered officers
trained in armored warfare less useful abroad, as well as rotated officers with little
training with mechanization and armor into home commands.75
Second, the British army placed a premium on seniority. It remained overstaffed
and constrained by the Cardwell system, unable to retire officers past their prime.76
Reductions in pay and rank were introduced after WWI, but did not encourage
widespread retirement.77 Rather, throughout the late 1920s and early 1930s, senior
officers were allowed to move laterally, enabling them to hold onto their positions
for over 20 years.78 David French describes the senior ranks as a “self-perpetuating
gerontocracy,” detrimental to heightened attention to mobile warfare.79 With the
merger of the RTC and the mechanized cavalry into the Royal Armored Corps (RAC)
by the late 1930s, officers from each unit were placed in the unfavorable position of
competing directly for promotion against more senior cavalry officers.80
Favoritism too was inherent to the formal promotional process. Promotions
from lieutenant-colonel to lieutenant-general were decided by a Selection Board
composed of the CIGS and a select group of senior officers. Tank entrepreneurs had
to forge personal relationships with these men, many of whom were indifferent to
innovation. Adding to the confusion, a separate Staff Selection Board determined
staff appointments through the General Staff level that resulted in “the ludicrous
situation in which some officers had been promoted but immediately placed on half
72 Bond (1980), pp. 99; and 115; and Harris (1995), p. 258. Percy Hobart, Director of
Military Training, was consistently blocked by the Cardwell system and India’s insistence that
its force structure remain unchanged. Even CIGS Montgomery-Massingberd faced difficulties
with India in implementing his mechanization program.
73 Winton (1988), pp. 229-231.
74 French (2000), p. 171.
75 Winton (1988), p. 230; and Bond (1980), p, 114. As Secretary of State for War Hore-
Belisha tried to bring about major army reorganization in the latter 1930s, CIGS Deverell,
who had served in India and staunchly opposed any changes in the Indian force structure,
blocked him.
76 Bond (1980), pp. 45, and 134.
77 Luvaas (1964), pp. 383-384. The reduction in salary motivated Liddell-Hart to
pursue his career in journalism.
78 Bond (1980), pp. 49-50.
79 French (2000), p. 163. Military members of the AC and field commanders were on
average much older than their peers had been at the start of World War I.
80 Larson, (1984), p. 176.
Managing Defense Transformation144
pay until an appointment fell vacant for them.”81 Aside from a tendency to force
“square pegs into round holes,” the Army leadership had a general distaste for
practical experience or specialization when it came to promotion criteria.82
The disincentives were especially strong for the armor community, as the
regimental system combined with seniority to compound promotion problems.
Regimental officers controlled all promotions up to the rank of sergeant major
that militated against the formation of a single list of Army candidates for specific
branches.83 Traditional regimental commanders also discouraged the attempt to leave
the regiment for career advancement, deeming it an act of desertion.84 Furthermore,
J.F.C. Fuller repeatedly seemed to be in the wrong official position at the wrong time
to affect directly developments in armored warfare. In 1926 when the War Office
first began assembling elements of an armored unit at Camberly, Fuller had been
sent to India.85 He later commanded an infantry brigade and was promoted, based on
standard infantry management, to major general; a position he held until retirement
in 1933.86 When Fuller turned down command of the EMF, Brigadier R.J. Collins, an
infantryman with no experience or interests in tanks or armor, was appointed.87
The promotional ceiling was manifest in the professional experiences of
prominent tank entrepreneurs. Initially, few officers gained official positions that
seemed well suited to implement innovation. For example, Pile was assistant
director of mechanization in the War Office, Lindsay was Inspector of the RTC, and
Broad planned war-organization under the Director of Staff Duties.88 By the 1930s,
however, career opportunities dimmed, leading these officers to return to mainstream
units. In general, incentives for careers with armor continued to decline in the 1930s,
as personnel that served in the Tank Brigade experienced high turnover rates and
rotated disproportionately back to other branches.89 The “failure” of the Mobile
Force in the 1934 exercise (of which the TB was a part) accelerated the dispersal
of RTC experts from heavy armor units.90 Hobart, for example, informally replaced
Lindsey as the lead intellectual of the RTC but was subsequently passed over for
81 David French and Brian Holden Reid, The British General Staff, (London: Frank
Cass Publishers, 2002), pp. 159-163. Little reform occurred before Hore-Belisha became
SSW in the late 1930s.
82 Bond (1980), p. 55.
83 French (2000), p. 123; and Bond (1980), pp. 60-61. Only 10 percent of the candidates
could be promoted via the Staff Colleges, outside of the regimental system of command.
84 Murray (1996), p. 24.
85 Luvaas (1964), pp. 357-358.
86 Ibid., pp. 357-358.
87 Harris (1995), p. 217. Collins was overly cautious to the point of inhibiting the
mobile potential of the experimental unit. His comments on EMF experiments and exercises
revealed that he was completely unconcerned about the prospects for mechanization or mobile
armor warfare. Larson (1984), p. 141.
88 Bond (1980), p. 155; and Larson (1984), pp. 80-81.
89 Larson (1984), p, 189; and Bond (1984), pp. 48-49.
90 Wright (2000), p. 186. Lindsay, for example, was held in poor regard as a result of
his participation in the Mobile Force exercise, and was transferred to marginal assignments
before being assigned to Calcutta until his retirement. He fared the worst, experiencing
The British and Armored Forces 145
command of the Mobile Division at home.91 He was then transferred to command
the 2nd Mobile Division in Egypt, losing his position in the War Office as Director of
Military Training in what he perceived to be an effort to curb his influence.92
By contrast, ardent critics of armored force enjoyed steep promotional trajectories.
For example, successive cavalry officers with no experience with tank units were
appointed as Commander, Mobile Division in 1937.93 Similarly, Montgomery-
Massingberd rose up the ranks while actively supporting the continued strength of
the cavalry, and fought to place restrictions on armor units to protect traditional
arms. Even when the EMF/EAF experiments had demonstrated the inability of the
cavalry to work well with armored units, he used his authority as chairman of the
Cavalry Committee to block attempts by the Chancellor of the Exchequer and the
Secretary of State for War at mandating a reduction in the size of cavalry.94 In 1928,
Montgomery Massingberd was appointed GOC-in-C, Southern Command (the top
commander of that field branch), where he set out to dismantle the EAF.95 Similarly,
upon succeeding Milne as CIGS in 1933, he made a concerted effort to promote
mechanization over armored warfare.96
Managerial Norms
The procedural and material disincentives for sustaining novel armored practices
were reinforced by the norms of operation within the British Army. Specifically, the
service’s tradition of imposing strict top-down command and control and preserving
cohesive regimental units, coupled with insistence on bludgeoning change by
tank entrepreneurs, militated against the establishment of common understanding
regarding prospects for armored warfare. Complacency with the administrative
status quo, as well as widespread neglect of rigorous empirical study of historical
events and experimentation worked against transformation by making it difficult for
the service leadership to reach consensus on the meaning or expected value of an
armored force or to accept more than incremental adjustment to mechanization.
At the heart of the problem was a normative attachment to top-down oversight.
British commanders valued above all the vigilance of subordinate units at implementing
administrative and operational plans. This command style was codified in the Field
Service Regulations, and though a few officers such Burnett-Stuart lamented the
embarrassment and a ruined Army reputation as a direct result of his participation with armor
innovation. Larson (1984), p. 80; and Harris (1995), p. 251.
91 Harris (1995), p. 304.
92 Larson (1984), p. 216. However, Hobart lost the 2nd MD command after running
into personal differences with his Egyptian principals. General Sir John Burnett-Stuart also
was a strong tank proponent that advanced as far as General Officer Commanding, Southern
Command; but his promotion had little to do with his influence on tank doctrine. Although he
was a prime candidate for CIGS toward the end of his career, he was passed over precisely
because of his association with reformist elements. Winton (1988), pp. 234-235.
93 Larson (1984), pp. 207-208; and Harris (1995), p. 288.
94 Bond (1980), p. 144.
95 Ibid., p. 147.
96 Ibid., pp. 162-163.
Managing Defense Transformation146
inflexibility, they were few and far between.97 The official position on the 1927 EMF
exercises reflected this control method and obfuscated alternative interpretations of
the experiment. The service leadership was so critical of the failure to adhere strictly
to the “rules” of combat and communication channels that it dismissed the practical
outcomes of the exercises.98
Similarly, the British Army neither embraced operational training nor ensured the
formulation of a coherent, well-defined tactical doctrine. On the one hand, British
field officers were required to communicate unexpected developments before taking
action.99 On the other hand, as late as 1937 there was no standardized training, and
individual commanders were encouraged to “flout War Office directives wholesale”
by clutching to independent interpretations of mass, offensive mobile warfare.100
This was reinforced by the regimental system that fragmented training, and relegated
autonomy to each regiment to advance its own approach to training.101 The General
Staff assumed that the freedom to improvise was one of the most important and unique
aspects of the British military that permitted commanders to explore with confidence
unique solutions to the practical challenges that they faced. Ironically, it was the
autocratic command and control system that did not afford individual “freedom,” as
the absence of sound training and coherent doctrinal base deprived commanders of
the competence to advance battlefield innovation.102 This contradiction placed tank
commanders in the difficult position of structuring highly personalized and ad hoc
experiments.103
The lack of standardized experimentation imbued Army commanders with low
error tolerance and a preoccupation with demonstrating positive results. It was
generally accepted that if an experiment proved extremely promising for armor,
then the realism of the experiment would likely be called into question.104 Prevailing
service assumptions concerning experimentation placed premiums on continuity and
strict adherence to guidelines that, in turn, put prospective innovators in the difficult
position of advocating uncertain and novel breaks with tradition in subjective,
qualitative terms.105
The failure to embrace this service milieu proved detrimental to the cause of
sustaining armored transformation. Rather than presenting measured arguments
that framed the tank as an innovative complement to mechanization, the proponents
often insisted on radical change. According to Bond, “operating as these men did
like yeast within a somewhat stodgy officer corps, it is hardly surprising if some of
them displayed a narrow and almost fanatical concern with professional matters.”106
97 French (2000), pp. 19-20.
98 Larson (1984), pp. 141-142.
99 French (2000), pp. 21-23.
100 Ibid., p. 21.
101 Bond (1980), pp. 58-60, 62.
102 French (2000), pp. 45-46.
103 Harris (1995), p. 245.
104 Bond (1980), pp. 157-158.
105 John Stone, The Tank Debate (Amsterdam: Harwood Academic Publishers, 2000),
pp. 29-30.
106 Bond (1980), p. 57.
The British and Armored Forces 147
They did not seek common cause with infantry or artillery units, and hyped almost
exclusively the benefits that innovative tank doctrine portended for other branches. At
the end of The Great War, for example, it was often recommended that the tank serve
as the primary weapon thereby relegating other arms as auxiliary units.107 Fuller,
too, fell into this trap. Although one of the first to elucidate major new concepts of
tank doctrine, his touting of the tank as a foolproof weapon did much to undermine
his credibility within the service.108 He had little patience for conflicting viewpoints
and openly criticized his superiors to the point of being perceived as insubordinate
by many of the senior leadership.109 Fuller also simply ignored details and empirical
evidence that challenged his claims. This style eventually tarnished the RTC as
emblematic of the dogma of tank radicals.110 In the same vein, Hobart’s disdain for
artillery and mechanization alienated much of the high command, including future
CIGS Alan Brooke.111
These problems were especially glaring, given the service-wide suspicion of
“outside” intervention. One of Liddell Hart’s greatest handicaps as a champion of
armored warfare was that he was widely regarded as a journalist who leveraged his
influence with senior officers to circumvent the chain of command. The creation of
the EMF, for example, was largely attributed to his ability to exploit his position to
shame publicly the military leadership for its foot-dragging.112 However, playing the
role of an antagonistic outsider cost him internal connections to the War Office and
the earlier sympathy of the senior command, including the chairman of the AC by
the late 1930s.113
Tank “innovators” also relied heavily on arguments marred by internal
contradictions. The proponents stridently touted the decisiveness of the tank on
the battlefield, even in the face of the unequivocal ease with which most forms of
artillery could destroy a tank. This disconnect undermined their credibility, and failed
to create incentives for operational testing to address the anti-tank problem.114 The
debate over the composition of the EMF also reflected the inability to sell innovation
to the service core. By advocating tank “purity” for this early experiment, Lindsay
107 Larson (1984), pp. 56-57.
108 Ibid., pp. 74-75.
109 Bond (1980), p. 138.
110 Harris (1995), pp. 202-203.
111 Bidwell and Graham (1982), pp. 179, 214-215; and Larson (1984), p. 17. Hobart
often argued about the role of the tank as if its mission were mutually exclusive, ignoring the
fact that different situations might require different roles.
112 Mearsheimer (1988), p. 73.
113 Larson (1984), p. 137; and Luvaas (1964), pp. 385-386. Liddell-Hart experienced
a brief resurgence of influence in the latter 1930s when the new Secretary of State for War,
Hore-Belisha, took him into his confidence as his chief military advisor for purging the Army
Council. Not only did Liddell-Hart earn the enmity of the senior Army leadership, but Hore-
Belisha received so much criticism as a mouthpiece for Liddell-Hart that he comically began
to deny that he had ever even met the tank enthusiast. Luuvas (1964), pp. 140-413; Bond
(1980), pp. 255-256; and Larson (1984), pp. 205-206.
114 Bidwell and Graham (1982), p. 177.
Managing Defense Transformation148
effectively reduced the participation of infantry and other arms in the EMF that, in
turn, politicized the debate among the other branches.115
Problems were compounded by a disdain for empirical analysis. The expositions
of tank entrepreneurs produced an interwar debate that was, as Bidwell and Graham
describe, “literary instead of empirical.”116 Though their ideas did not lack merit,
as a group the armor advocates did not actively search out empirical credibility.117
The otherwise constructive debates on armor covered in military journals during
the 1920s were conspicuously devoid of empirical evidence, with winners of essay
contests often holding completely contradictory opinions.118 Often debate raged
within the RTC over the proper organization and tactics for armor that inspired
dissent among entrepreneurs who otherwise shared similar objectives.119
Part of the problem stemmed from the limited number of experiments during the
interwar period that left entrepreneurs with only a few, unrealistic tactical exercises
upon which to muster evidentiary support to promote innovation. The first large-
scale maneuver held in 1925, for example, was marred by the decision of a field
commander to rely on an offensive tank force that outpaced its artillery and cavalry
support. The failure of the attack was officially attributed to technological deficiencies
that, in turn, were exploited to relegate the tank to a supporting role.120 Subsequent
exercises related to armor were small, ad hoc tests of specific issues. Three series
of test exercises on mechanization formed the mainstay of the 1929 training season;
but each exercises was isolated from the other, with the focus placed on streamlining
the use of light tank brigades to support infantry brigades and armored cars with
horses.121 Despite technological advances, the tank failed to realize its potential, as
official operational instructions for armored units limited their field of play, dictating
raids and cavalry support as their primary missions.122
The inconsistency of the experimentation scheme obfuscated lessons for
implementation. Although the RTC participated in the 1930 exercise, it was composed
of an ad hoc group of three battalions that were inserted into 1st and 2nd Division
exercises. Because the tanks were employed in unimaginative roles, few new ideas
could be discovered or validated.123 The problem was subsequently exacerbated
during the 1934 trials of the newly formed Mobile Force that was comprised of
the 7th Infantry Brigade and the Tank Brigade. In an effort to test the logistical
organization and temper overconfidence within the Tank Brigade and to bolster
the morale of infantry units, Burnett-Stuart intentionally structured the exercises to
limit the flexibility of tank columns at conducting offensive raids. Accordingly, the
armored units were overtaxed and easily defeated by the infantry forces. Although
this offered opportunity for in-depth examination of the tactical and logistical roles
115 Harris (1995), p. 213.
116 Bidwell and Graham (1982), p. 178.
117 Ibid., pp. 177-178.
118 Larson (1984), p. 111.
119 Winton (1988), p. 177.
120 Larson (1984), p. 123.
121 Ibid., pp. 152-154.
122 Stone (2000), p. 193.
123 Larson (1984), pp. 152-154.
The British and Armored Forces 149
of the tank force, it was conducted with little regard for the prevailing analytical
assumptions held by the service leadership or media expectations of the exercise.
Accordingly, Burnett-Stuart “was unable to offset the notion that an experimental
formation consisting of two of the army’s most modern units had been bested by
a conventional infantry division with some attached motorized support.”124 In
conjunction with the pervasive low error tolerance, this effectively doomed the early
formation of the Mobile Force.125
Deficiencies in combined arms doctrine also stemmed from the simple failure
of the Army to conduct realistic experiments. Only twice between the wars did the
Army hold corps-level trials. By 1939-1940, the officers in charge of the major
formations had no experience commanding them in peacetime, nor had they played
a significant role in the preceding maneuvers. 126 The two large-scale maneuvers, in
1925 and 1935, were held so far apart that any lessons derived from the first were
obsolete by the time of the second due to technological changes in mechanization
and mobility.127
The strict adherence to top-down command and control also discouraged realistic
improvisation. Orders were extremely complicated and agents were overwhelmed
by attempts of principals to control every aspect of operations; thus providing
junior commanders with few opportunities to improvise with the tank.128 Umpires
also were expected to enforce detailed written orders that were aimed at facilitating
operational oversight of the commanders. This introduced an element of artificiality
that both prevented tactical innovation when appropriate, and discredited innovation
when it actually occurred. The lack of realism became so problematic during the
1934 Mobile Force exercise that Burnett-Stuart lamented that he could not expect
any of the units under his command to take the field in real combat.129
Finally, armor enthusiasts were confounded by the failure to generate systematic
lessons from previous campaigns. The British Army began the process of creating
new tactical manuals in the early 1920s before absorbing the tactical lessons of the
war or reviewing assumptions concerning the primacy of standard infantry tactics.130
The most important internal Army documents were the Field Service Regulations
(FSR) and the supporting arms manuals that were intended to guide the execution of
operations and unify assessments of tactical employment across the service. However,
because the regulations were very abstract and general, they provided little direction
for responding to specific scenarios and emerging technologies.131 In 1935, the
revised FSR authorized the Mobile Division to exploit breakthroughs in entrenched
positions and flank the rear to either side. Yet, this was not a fully offensive role,
124 Winton (1988), p. 182.
125 Ibid., p. 224.
126 French (2000), p. 169.
127 Larson (1984), p. 221.
128 French (2000), pp. 161-162.
129 Bond (1984), pp. 180-181.
130 Bidwell and Graham (1982), p. 146.
131 Ibid., pp. 170-171; Winton (1988), p. 31. Until 1928, the FSR’s tactical doctrine
was premised on the final campaign of World War I, despite the technological developments
during that period.
Managing Defense Transformation150
as the FSR simultaneously designated the infantry as the only arm to achieve the
breakthrough, and was virtually silent on the role of ground-air cooperation.132
The five major journals that the British Army sponsored were a rich source of
ideas on pertinent mechanization and the role of the Army.133 The debates conducted
in these pages provided further evidence that conservative views were neither
paramount nor an unstoppable force that precluded armor innovation. Journals were
accessible for reading or submission, and often held essay contests won by armor
enthusiasts. Yet, the military leadership in the War Office neither encouraged nor
exploited the value of these ideas.134 By the 1930s, scholarly writing on armor theory
virtually disappeared, due largely to the lack of equipment and experimentation
available to generate opportunities for new insights.135
By the same token, stereotypes colored British officers’ thinking about the German
military, leading them to discredit relevant developments. Ironically, they believed
that the Germans were incapable of improvisation and innovation. In practice, the
British failed to imagine that foreign military doctrines might differ significantly from
their own, and thus discounted the utility of carefully monitoring German activities.
The Staff College discouraged study of foreign army tactics and development until
1936.136 Furthermore, Milne’s attempts to lend more weight to regular assessments
of German military strength were ultimately contradicted by the findings of reports
commissioned by the Foreign Office.137 There also is evidence that the General Staff
at times did not take German activities seriously enough to affect their own ideas.
In the stages leading up to the formation of the Mobile Division, for example, the
General Staff was alerted to German experiments with combined arms formations for
deep penetrations but dismissed their significance for developing appropriate counter
measures.138 Similarly, the British Army and Military Intelligence downgraded the
significance of Germany’s invasion of Poland, assuming that the former’s victory
was based on good fortune, surprise, and the latter’s mistakes.139 They effectively
likened German Panzer divisions to their own Mobile Division, and were content
to develop counter-measures premised on outdated assumptions gleaned from the
experimental Mobile Force’s defeat in 1934.140
Similar normative blinders impaired the constructive possibilities for inter-service
competition with the RAF. Although there was a flirtation with including RAF units
in the 1927 EMF exercises, neither service envisioned that much could be gleaned
from close ground-air cooperation. The opposition of the Navy and Army to the
independence of the RAF immediately following The Great War motivated the latter
to insist on the prominence of the strategic bombing mission.141 Any joint-service
132 French (2000), pp. 33-34.
133 Larson (1984), pp. 21-22.
134 Winton (1988), p. 227.
135 Larson (1984), p. 148.
136 Ibid., pp. 45-46.
137 Bond (1980), pp. 93-94.
138 Harris (1995), p. 262.
139 French (2000), pp. 159-160.
140 Larson (1984), p. 226.
141 Bond (1980), p. 22.
The British and Armored Forces 151
operation or combined arms formation that did not enhance its independent role was
strongly resisted. This view tainted RAF analysis of WWI operations, inculcating
a fixation on the number of aircraft lost in ground support operations, as opposed
to the amount of damage inflicted upon German troops, as the primary metric for
assessing prospects for close air support. The bias in favor of strategic bombing also
led the RAF to discount intelligence regarding German experimentation with close
air support.142 When the Spanish Civil War later began to provide clear evidence
of the role an air force might play in close air support of armored ground forces,
the RAF and new Chief of Air Staff Newall continued to deny that it made any
difference and maintained the primacy of strategic bombing.143 Accordingly, by the
outset of WWII there were neither planes adapted nor pilots trained for conducting
close ground support.144
Conclusion
This chapter highlights the transformation-stifling effects of poorly aligned
procedural and normative dimensions to service oversight. It supports the hypothesis
for foot-dragging in chapter 2, as the British Army failed to sustain innovative
armor initiatives coming out of The Great War. Though technologically, fiscally,
and strategically constrained, tank enthusiasts within the Army were critically
handicapped by the inability to capitalize on early organizational reforms to clarify
responsibility among new units and institutionalize material incentives for armored
force. At the same time, a combination of hubris and neglect of accepted service
evidentiary standards militated against building trust and common knowledge across
the service concerning the prospective value of armored warfare to compensate
for these procedural shortfalls. In short, they proved unsuccessful at securing the
necessary organizational traction for tank warfare by the outset of World War II. In
contrast to U.S. carrier entrepreneurs who succeeded by instrumentally accessing
managerial norms and gradually streamlining procedural oversight, the proponents
of the armored force within the British Army stumbled by not seizing upon latent
but available organizational opportunities to strengthen their case. Yet, as we discuss
in the next chapter, this failure to grasp the prospects for military change contrasts
starkly with other cases in which mutually reinforcing procedural and normative
constraints can provoke outright service resistance to transformation.
142 Bond (1980), p. 202.
143 Ibid., pg. 322-323.
144 French (2000), p. 35; and Harris (1995), p. 295. Despite CIGS Gort’s complaints, he
lacked authority to implement practice with the RAF on the eve of World War II.
This page intentionally left blank
Chapter 6
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam:
Shirking Transformation
The U.S. military experience in Vietnam remains a source of frustration and debate
among historians and military professionals. Despite the enormous expenditure of
resources in a relatively small geographical area, the U.S. could not establish a viable
non-Communist South Vietnam. The U.S. became deeply divided over the conduct
of the war, and eventually the war effort became politically unsustainable.
The proposed sources for this failure vary. They run the gamut from the
unwillingness of civilian leadership to give the military sufficient autonomy to wage
unconventional warfare, to the failure of military leaders to envision or implement a
new way of war to fight effectively against the Communist insurgents.1 This chapter
does not address the question of why the U.S. was unable to accomplish all of its
goals. Instead, it examines why the U.S. fought the war the way it did, and why this
represents a failure to manage transformation. Specifically, it addresses the resistance
of the U.S. Army to nurturing and sustaining counterinsurgency operations in the
Vietnam conflict. Counter-insurgency is defined here by an emphasis on bolstering
population security, and building a viable and credible government structure.
Operations aimed at strengthening population security require separating insurgents
from the general population, both to ensure the safety of the citizens and to deprive
the insurgents of resources. Without access to sophisticated logistics and secure
bases, in the conventional military sense, insurgents must rely primarily, though not
exclusively, on local sources of supply.2
The central puzzle of this chapter turns on the overt resistance of the U.S. Army
to reinvent its approach to fighting insurgents in Vietnam. How was the service,
1 See Leslie Gelb and Richard Betts, The Irony of Vietnam: The System Worked
(Washington D.C.: Brooking Institution, 1979); Harry Summers, Jr., On Strategy: A Critical
Analysis of the Vietnam War (New York: Dell Books, 1982); Eliot Cohen, Supreme Command:
Soldiers, Statesmen and Leadership in Wartime (New York: Free Press, 2002); Andrew F.
Krepinevich, Jr., The Army and Vietnam (Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press,
1986); and H.R. McMaster, Dereliction of Duty: Lyndon Johnson, Robert McNamara, the
Joint Chiefs of Staff, and the Lies that Led to Vietnam (New York: HarperCollins, 1997).
2 For discussion of counterinsurgency theory and its intellectual roots, see Austin
Long, On “Other War”: Lessons from Five Decades of RAND Counterinsurgency Research,
(Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 2006); Douglas Blaufarb, The Counterinsurgency Era (New
York: The Free Press, 1977); D. Michael Shafer, Deadly Paradigms: The Failure of U.S.
Counterinsurgency Policy (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1988); and Jefferson
Marquis, “The Other Warriors: American Social Science and Nation Building in Vietnam,”
Diplomatic History, 24:1 (Winter 2000).
Managing Defense Transformation154
which was under intense political pressure from President John F. Kennedy to
institutionalize costly revisions to its core conventional approach to warfare, so
effective at staving off the transformation to counter-insurgency warfare in Vietnam?
The answer, we posit, rests with the severe agency costs confronted by entrepreneurs
within the service. In particular, prevailing material incentives and managerial norms
combined not only to discourage transformation but also to motivate subversion of
extra-service directives for counterinsurgency.
This chapter proceeds in three parts. The first part reviews some of the basic
shortcomings with the extant literature. The second part describes the formal structure
for managing U.S. military activity in Vietnam. This discussion highlights how the
procedural arrangements obscured the actions of agents throughout the Army, and
discouraged compliance with counter-insurgency directives and initiatives. The
third part reviews how prevailing managerial norms within the U.S. Army not only
reinforced material disincentives for unconventional warfare, but blinded service
proponents of counter-insurgency from forging “common knowledge” about the
opportunity for change. Together these material and normative factors intensified
intra-service agency problems of managing change that enabled Army officers not
only to shirk executive directives for counter-insurgency, but to actively sabotage
them.
Lingering Questions
The U.S. Army’s failure with counterinsurgency in Vietnam is particularly
problematic for traditional theories of military change. Those who suggest that
civilian intervention is crucial for promoting doctrinal change are confounded
by the strong initial advocacy of counterinsurgency by civilians in the United
States government, up to and including President Kennedy.3 Deborah Avant, for
example, seeks to explain the puzzle by applying a civilian-military principal-agent
framework that focuses on the role of political institutions. She argues that the
divided government system of the United States constrained the ability of civilian
principals to influence military agents, as the military could play-off the executive
and legislative branches against one another. By contrast, the British parliamentary
system prevents this “divide and rule” strategy by the military. These institutional
differences had long-run effects on both the U.S. and British armies’ organizational
culture, further amplifying principal-agent problems.4
Avant’s argument, however, is incomplete. Although acknowledging the
importance of civil-military relations, her argument focuses exclusively on civil-
military relations without exploring systematically principal-agent relations within
the U.S. Army. Second, she elevated the significance of formal institutional barriers
3 On the importance of civilian intervention for innovation, see Barry Posen, The
Sources of Military Doctrine: France, Britain and Germany Between the World Wars
(Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press, 1984). For a summary of Kennedy’s advocacy of
counterinsurgency, see Deborah Avant, Political Institutions and Military Change: Lessons
from Peripheral Wars (Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press, 1994), pp. 55-60.
4 Avant (1994), pp. 6-18 summarizes this argument.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 155
between civilian and military organizations. Lost in this analysis, however, is how
service material incentives and norms within the formal service structure stifled the
flow of information and expertise across the service hierarchy. Accordingly, she
is unable to account for how Army principals delegated with authority to oversee
counterinsurgency innovations were denied access to multiple streams of information
from sources both within and outside of the service.5
Alternative explanations attribute the failure of U.S. Army transformation to a
combination of cognitive biases and bureaucratic inertia.6 While these explanations
seem to accord with much of the evidence, they tend to understate the contradictory
evidence. For example, many Army officers who fought in Vietnam claim they felt
that the resistance to population security was misguided, a sentiment that General
Creighton Abrams sought to remedy upon assuming command of U.S. forces in
Vietnam.7 However, if many in the Army, including the senior commander after 1969,
felt that there was a serious problem with the U.S. Army’s approach to Vietnam, then
something more than inertia and bias must have been at work. Moreover, in practice,
the U.S. Army proved adept at innovating before and during Vietnam. The most
notable innovation involved the introduction of air-mobility. As one of the fathers of
air-mobility, John Tolson, observed:
The air-mobility concept was not a product of Vietnam expediency. It would probably not
be practical to make a record of every decision that formed a part of the airmobile concept.
It certainly had its roots in both the airborne techniques of World War II and the early
doctrine for organic aviation for ground forces for that era. However, from a practical
viewpoint, the embryonic decision can be said to be the Army’s move to form twelve
helicopter battalions on 21 August 1952.8
Like many costly innovations, air-mobility was not warmly received by the Army,
which regarded it as a budgetary drain.9 Eventually, however, it was accepted as a
way to resolve disputes with the Air Force over the provision of close air support and
5 As one reviewer of Avant notes, she presents no evidence that executive-legislative
arrangements had any impact on the principals’ ability to affect agents in Vietnam. See
Barry Posen review in Political Science Quarterly, v.110, n.2 (Summer 1995). Avant herself
concedes that “…both Kennedy and Johnson enjoyed general support in Congress for their
activities on behalf of unconventional warfare. Congress seems to have had little active role in
the story.” Avant (1994), p. 73. She subsequently argues that Congress did in effect passively
constrain the range of actions the executive could take in regard to military agents.
6 See especially Robert Komer, Bureaucracy Does Its Thing: Institutional Constraints
on U.S.-GVN Performance in Vietnam (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1972) and Krepinevich
(1986),
7 See Douglas Kinnard, The War Managers (Hanover, NH: University of Vermont,
1977) and Lewis Sorley, A Better War: The Unexamined Victories and Final Tragedy of
America’s Last Years in Vietnam (New York: Harcourt-Brace, 1999).
8 John J. Tolson, Airmobility in Vietnam 1961-1971 (Washington, D.C.: Army Center
for Military History, 1973), p. 5.
9 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 116-119.
Managing Defense Transformation156
to pacify counterinsurgency advocates as well as Secretary of Defense McNamara,
who had become a staunch proponent of air-mobility.10
It is worth emphasizing that air-mobility, though touted by the Army as a
technological panacea for counterinsurgency, was never originally intended for such
purposes. Tolson again notes:
A briefing of particular significance took place in the late afternoon of 12 December
1960... At that time the focus in the Army was on the nuclear battlefield. Organic aviation
was viewed by the Army as the best means of maintaining combat operations in an area
characterized by great depth and frontage with the dispersion of many small self-contained
units. The major threat was viewed as a sophisticated enemy attacking with masses of
armor on the plains of Europe. Counter-guerrilla warfare at that time was viewed as a
secondary mission. Nevertheless, the early planners in air-mobility perceived that one
of the automatic fallouts in organizing the Army for greater air-mobility would be much
greater capabilities in the lower spectrums of warfare.11
The Army merely assumed that anything that would help them fight in Europe
would help them elsewhere.
There also were additional material incentives associated with air-mobility that
were not in place for counter-insurgency. The formation of airmobile units ensured
that combat command billets would be available for servicemen interested in air-
mobility. By contrast, there were no equivalent combat command billets available for
counterinsurgency advocates. The only possible command billets for those advocates
were in the Special Forces, whose very name indicates that they were considered
different. Air-mobility, with its perceived utility in a major European war, was more
directly tied to mainstream service structures, as airmobile units could be formed
into divisions and managed similar to other Army units.12
The fact that air-mobility was a technological solution improved its stature
with the Army. Air-mobility required the purchase of new equipment that carried
a significant monetary value. Conversely, counterinsurgency involved mostly a
doctrinal innovation that offered few procurement benefits. Accordingly, some
innovations, such as air-mobility, appeared to be more promising and easier to
manage than others, such as counterinsurgency.
Many other innovations, both technical and doctrinal, took place in Vietnam as
well. The close integration of indirect fire with airpower to support ground forces was
advanced considerably in Vietnam. For example, B-52 bombers, originally intended
to deliver strategic nuclear weapons, were used in support of ground troops in South
Vietnam.13 Similarly, relations between Air Force, Marine, and Navy aviation,
10 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 115-125, and Tolson (1973), p. 11.
11 Tolson (1973), p. 12.
12 Tolson, for example, was a major general at the time he was commander of the
1st Cavalry Division. Special Forces large units, by contrast, are “groups,” which are the
equivalent of a brigade and generally led by a colonel. Tolson (1973).
13 See Robert Scales, Firepower in Limited War (Washington, DC: National Defense
University Press, 1990).
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 157
though contentious, eventually improved and were institutionalized to better deliver
close air support for Army troops.14
Yet, even as the U.S. Army embraced air-mobility in Vietnam, it actively sabotaged
the plans of both civilian and some military principals to sustain counterinsurgency
operations via population security. Rather than merely shirking change, the Army
sought to mislead deliberately by creating the appearance of accepting the mission
of counterinsurgency. It created manuals and training courses for counterinsurgency,
and claimed to be highly interested. Thus, in practice, the Army’s commitment was
tantamount to a smokescreen.
One step the Army took to generate this smokescreen was to create staff positions
with little actual authority. Both the Army and JCS established staff sections for
counterinsurgency that were hollow. Under pressure from both high level principals
and from critical internal reports, the Army created a pamphlet and film to demonstrate
its commitment to counterinsurgency. The Army leadership then considered the
problem solved.15
The experience of Gen. William Rosson, one of the Army’s few experts in
counterinsurgency, is illustrative of this organizational feint. As head of the Special
Warfare Directorate, Rosson should have enjoyed significant influence over Army
doctrine and training for counterinsurgency. Instead, Army Chief of Staff Decker
instructed Rosson that he would not have his own staff, and that he should focus
on the Army’s special assets, such as the Special Forces. Furthermore, Lt. Gen.
Barksdale Hamlett and Decker himself would oversee special warfare requirements
for field units.16
The Army also allegedly altered its training and instruction curricula to reflect
the growing acceptance of counterinsurgency. In reality, much of the Army’s
“innovation” simply entailed re-designating routine service functions, such as
patrolling, as “counter-guerilla” training. This allowed the Army to generate statistics
and data to demonstrate an apparent commitment to counterinsurgency.17
Andrew Krepinevich notes several examples of this phenomenon. One key
example is the education at the Command and General Staff College (C&GSC) at
Fort Leavenworth. According to Dr. Ivan Birrer, a long-time official at C&GSC,
“All we had to do... was certify that each officer had X number of hours of
counterinsurgency... we were too far from Washington for anyone to really come
down and bother us...”18 Any mention of “irregular” or “guerilla” forces involved in
an exercise or training counted as counterinsurgency training.
14 Willard Webb, “The Single Manager for Air in Vietnam,” Joint Forces Quarterly
(Winter 1993-1994).
15 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 42-45.
16 Ibid., p. 43.
17 Ibid., pp. 46-55.
18 Ibid., p. 51.
Managing Defense Transformation158
Intra-Service Agency Costs to Transformation
The Procedural Dimension
The command structure of U.S. forces in Vietnam was especially problematic for
institutionalizing transformation. Initially the U.S. effort in Vietnam was restricted
to an advisory role, supervised by a Military Assistance Advisory Group (MAAG).
In 1962, the commitment to Vietnam was increased with the formation of Military
Assistance Command, Vietnam (MACV). MACV supervised all U.S. military
activities in Vietnam, while the MAAG continued in its advisory role. This dual
structure was expected to be temporary and “adequate for handling operations until
the emergency passed and the Military Assistance Advisory Group could resume
its normal functioning.”19 The commander of MACV would wear two hats as both
senior advisor to the Army of the Republic of Vietnam (ARVN) and commander of
all Army components of MACV
This command structure indeed proved to be temporary, but not in the manner
expected. The emergency did not pass but rather intensified. This led to the full
absorption of the MAAG by MACV in 1964.20 MACV was then the sole U.S.
military command in Vietnam, though a welter of civilian agencies continued to
operate, as well.
On 13 November 1961, Secretary of Defense McNamara requested a proposal
from the Joint Chiefs of Staff (JCS) on the “command structure for South Vietnam
under which a senior U.S. military commander would assume responsibility for
all activities including intelligence operations, related to the counterinsurgency
effort.”21 McNamara stated: “It is understood that such a commander would report
directly to the JCS and thence to me for all operational purposes.”22 The response
of the JCS was to dictate how U.S. forces in Vietnam would be commanded for the
next decade.
In a memorandum dated 22 November 1961, the JCS described three possible
command structures for Vietnam. The first was a unified command under the JCS.
The second was a joint task force under the JCS. The final option involved creating a
subordinate unified command under the Commander in Chief, Pacific (CINCPAC).23
19 Lieutenant General Carroll H. Dunn, Base Development in South Vietnam 1965-
1970 (Washington, DC: Center for Military History, 1972), p. 13. Document available online
at www.army.mil/cmh-pg/books/Vietnam/basedev/.
20 Ibid., p. 14.
21 Memorandum from SecDef McNamara to Chairman JCS Lemnitzer, November
13, 1961. Washington National Records Center, RG 330, McNamara Files: FRC 71 A 3470,
Southeast Asia 1961. Available at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_i_1961/
x.html.
22 Ibid.
23 Memorandum from JCS to SecDef McNamara, November 22, 1961. National Defense
University, Taylor Papers, T-185-69. Top Secret. Attached to a brief covering memorandum
of November 28 from Lemnitzer’s staff assistant, Richard R. Day, to Taylor, indicating that
Lemnitzer had asked that the memorandum be sent to Taylor for his information. Available
online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_i_1961/z.html
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 159
The JCS recommended the third option, despite the fact that it contradicted
McNamara’s “understanding” that the commander would report directly to the JCS
and then to himself.
The JCS rationale for the decision was that:
Current guidance as to the nature of the mission and the magnitude of U.S. forces to be
assigned to the new command does not warrant the establishment of a theater of operations
type command directly under the JCS staff. South Vietnam cannot be isolated militarily
from the rest of Southeast Asia, which is in CINCPAC’s area of responsibility. All U.S.
and SEATO contingency plans for South Vietnam are inextricably tied, both operationally
and geographically, to CINCPAC strategic plans. All resources in the Pacific Area are
allocated to CINCPAC.24
Essentially the JCS advocated a “business as usual” arrangement, with CINCPAC
creating a command arrangement for South Vietnam similar to those established
in Japan, Korea, Thailand and Taiwan. This was supported by the CINC, Admiral
Harry D. Felt, who firmly believed that only Pacific Command (PACOM) could
deal with the broad picture of Asia, of which Vietnam was seen as only a part.25 This
would have consequences, as Felt sought to retain contingency planning at the level
of PACOM, limiting the staff and planning capability of MACV.26 MACV would
thus be merely an arrangement for a temporary and incremental increase in U.S.
activity in South Vietnam.
Maxwell Taylor, Kennedy’s military savant, wrote a letter to the President on
November 27 that critiqued the command arrangement in Vietnam. Specifically, he
stated that:
As long as that program is essentially an intensification of past actions, it would be at a
minimum inconsistent to set up a command structure such as the Berlin or Korean model
which suggests that we are clearing the boards for a show-down until that is indeed the
case...For the time being I would stay with the normal model until our program changes
or the model proves inadequate.27
Taylor’s observation proved strangely prophetic. The “normal model” remained
in place as U.S. commitment deepened, including the commitment of over half a
million combat troops, with each step viewed as a merely “an intensification of past
actions.”
It is worth noting, however, that the idea of using combat troops on any significant
scale was unthinkable in late 1961. In a letter to MAAG Chief Lionel McGarr, JCS
24 Ibid., SEATO was the Southeast Asian Treaty Organization, which sought to be an
Asian NATO.
25 Dunn (1972), p. 13.
26 Ibid., p. 13.
27 Memorandum From the President’s Military Representative (Taylor) to the
President, November 27, 1961. National Defense University, Taylor Papers, T-185-69. Secret.
An attached note indicates that copies were sent to Rusk, McNamara, U. Alexis Johnson,
Lemnitzer, Bundy, and Rostow. Available online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/
vol_i_1961/z.html.
Managing Defense Transformation160
Chairman Lemnitzer indicated that without combat troops, significant changes were
undesirable. He stated that:
With the decision not to introduce combat troops into Vietnam we have had serious doubts
about the desirability of a fundamental change in the U.S. organization there. In view of
information we had regarding thinking at higher levels in U.S. govt., the JCS response to
a request for recommendations for a new U.S. command structure in Vietnam is qualified
by the words ‘if it is decided to change the command structure in Vietnam.’ Nevertheless
although final decision has not yet been made by the President it now appears that a
change in U.S. organization will be made. The primary object of the change is to impress
Diem that we are entering a new era in U.S.-Vietnamese relationships in which the U.S.
will be giving him increased support and be expecting him to pay increased heed to our
advice and suggestions. Generally speaking, the new terms of reference will provide for a
U.S. military assistance command, rather than an advisory group, and will insure that the
senior U.S. military representative in Vietnam has the controlling voice, both on the U.S.
side and with Vietnam officials, on military matters.28
The JCS did not advocate radical changes to the command structure in 1961.
Yet, it was not prepared to reassess subsequently the modest changes that were
proposed.
At the same time, the JCS and Secretary McNamara did not want their new
man in Saigon to be subordinate to an ambassador. The Ambassador would be the
nominal senior representative of the United States in Vietnam. Accordingly, the
Ambassador and the Commander, U.S. Military Assistance Command, Vietnam
(COMUSMACV) were delegated separate but coequal spheres of influence. This
was done despite the strenuous objections of then Ambassador Frank Nolting. Thus,
from the very beginning of MACV, the war would be directed by two different
groups, the military and the civilians.29
The basic command structure of MACV that was established in February
1962 was one in which COMUSMACV reported directly to CINCPAC. Below
COMUSMACV were the commanders of the 7th Air Force (7 AF), Naval Forces
Vietnam (NAVFORV), the III Marine Amphibious Force (III MAF), the Chief of
MAAG (until 1964, when the MAAG was merged with MACV), the United States
Army, Vietnam (USARV) and the U.S. Army field forces. The field forces were
subdivided into I Field Force, II Field force, and the 5th Special Forces Group.
The distinction between USARV and the field forces, however, violated existing
doctrine.30 Traditionally, the Army component of a unified command, like the Navy or
Air Force component, would control all Army operations in the command. However,
28 Telegram From the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff (Lemnitzer) to the Chief of
the Military Assistance Advisory Group in Vietnam (McGarr), December 21, 1963. National
Defense University, Lemnitzer Papers, L-21071. Top Secret; Priority. Available online at
www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_i_1961/z.html
29 For a full presentation of this debate on relations between COMUSMACV and
the ambassador, see Foreign Relations of the U.S. 1961-1963, Volume II, Vietnam 1962,
documents 1-53. Available online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_ii_1961-
63/index.html.
30 Dunn (1972), p. 16.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 161
COMUSMACV William Westmoreland did not want to add an additional bureaucratic
layer between himself and “his” troops. Therefore, USARV was only responsible for
logistics and administration, while Westmoreland retained direct control of combat
operations.31 This illustrates both that the military was willing to amend accepted
doctrine when it suited the purposes of commanders, and that Westmoreland did not
fully trust in his subordinates. As with air-mobility, this organizational “innovation”
reveals that the Army did not oppose all forms of change.
The formation of MACV introduced an important bureaucratic barrier between
the lowest level agents and the highest level principals. The agents in the field
in the years 1962-1965 were the advisers to the ARVN, and many of them were
critical of the progress of the war.32 Many of the senior advisers submitted critical
reports on the conduct of the war in 1962 that were ignored in COMUSMACV’s
report on the first year of MACV operations.33 MACV also tried to limit the ability
of advisers to provide alternative information to the press. Personnel headed to
Vietnam were instructed “to accentuate the positive and eliminate the negative.”34
Very little criticism reached the high level principals, including Secretary of Defense
McNamara.
The most egregious example of this suppression occurred after an operation by
the ARVN at the hamlet of Bac in January 1963. There, the Vietnamese communist
insurgents inflicted heavy losses on an ARVN force with vast materiel superiority.35
The adviser to the ARVN unit, Lt. Col. John Paul Vann, wrote detailed after-action
reports that were highly critical of the ARVN performance. He was supported in this
assessment by his superior, Col. Dan Porter, as well as by Brig. Gen. Robert York.36
COMUSMACV Harkins ignored all of these conclusions, reporting the Battle of Ap
Bac, as it became known, as an unambiguous victory for the ARVN. His conclusions
were accepted by a high-level military mission sent the same month to evaluate the
conduct of the war.37 This suppression of dissent from below would continue during
the next phase of the war, when Americans began to directly engage in combat.
There were additional organizational weaknesses associated with MACV. The
Seventh Fleet’s operations and the bombing of the North fell under CINCPAC, while
bombing in the South was directed by COMUSMACV. COMUSMACV, however,
lacked operational control over carrier-based air support, and had to request support
31 Dunn (1972), p. 16.
32 See Neil Sheehan, A Bright Shining Lie: John Paul Vann and America in Vietnam
(New York: Vintage Books, 1988) for the detailed story of one adviser. Krepinevich (1986),
pp. 80-84 provides an overview of the experience of advisers under MACV.
33 Krepinevich (1986), p. 81.
34 Deputy Chief of Staff for Planning and Operations to U.S. Continental Army
Command, “Special Orientation of U.S. Army Personnel Being Assigned to Vietnam,” May
16, 1963, quoted in Krepinevich (1986), p. 81.
35 For a detailed summary, see Sheehan (1988), pg. 203-265. For a more official
version, see General Donn Starry, Mounted Combat in Vietnam (Washington, DC: Center for
Military History, 1978), pp. 25-28.
36 Sheehan (1988), pp. 280-283.
37 Ibid, pp. 298-304.
Managing Defense Transformation162
from CINCPAC.38 Similarly, B-52 strikes remained under the control of the Strategic
Air Command (SAC), though targeting was completed by COMUSMACV.39 Though
the division among tactical airpower substantially improved during the latter stages
of the war, for many of the critical years it remained seriously flawed.
Intelligence also remained divided. The CIA and MACV generated intelligence
reports that were often contradictory. During the Tet Offensive in 1968, for example,
the CIA, which gathered human intelligence and captured documents, produced
an analysis of events in 1967 that predicted a general offensive in January 1968.40
MACV, which focused on signals intelligence and the large units of the enemy,
seriously underestimated the strength of the Communist insurgents. MACV instead
focused on the Central Highlands and Khe Sanh, where the large units of the People’s
Army of Viet Nam (PAVN) were producing high volumes of signals intelligence.41
Similarly, reporting agencies to the President worked at cross-purposes. The Chairman of
the Joint Chiefs of Staff, the Secretary of Defense, the Ambassador to Vietnam, and others all
reported to the executive at one time or another. One subordinate of particular importance was
the Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency and Special Activities (SACSA). This position
was created in direct response to pressure by the President on the Army. Initially, the JCS
designated Marine Major General Victor Krulak as SACSA, an able officer with a good
personal relationship with Kennedy. Krulak, however, was no expert on counterinsurgency,
and consequently unable to monitor effectively his subordinates.42
An expert in counterinsurgency could have filled the position of SACSA. One
possible candidate was the head of the Special Warfare Center at Fort Bragg, Brig.
Gen. William Yarborough. Yarborough was a Special Forces officer with a strong
background in counterinsurgency. Furthermore, there were others, such as Brig.
Gen. William Rosson and Col. William Peers who possessed relevant training and
expertise.43 Yet none of these men was sufficiently mainstream to rate such a post.
Instead, the President, whose knowledge of counterinsurgency was rudimentary
at best, chose Krulak because he respected him personally, not for his counter-
insurgency qualifications.
38 See John B. Nichols and Barrett Tilman, On Yankee Station: The Naval Air War over
Vietnam (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 2001). This would undergo some modification
after 1968, with the introduction of a single manager for air in I Corps. See Willard Webb,
“The Single Manager for Air in Vietnam,” Joint Forces Quarterly, 3 (Winter 1993-1994).
39 This pattern would have disastrous effects even late in the war, particularly during
the Linebacker II bombing of North Vietnam in 1972. See Marshall Michel, The Eleven Days
of Christmas: America’s Last Vietnam Battle (San Francisco, CA: Encounter Books, 2002).
40 James Wirtz, The Tet Offensive: Intelligence Failure in War (Ithaca, NY: Cornell
University Press, 1991), pp. 171-173. See also Harold Ford, CIA and the Vietnam Policymakers:
Three Episodes 1962-1968 (Washington, DC: Center for the Study of Intelligence, 1998); and
George Allen, None So Blind: A Personal Account of the Intelligence Failure in Vietnam
(Chicago: Ivan R. Dee, 2001).
41 See Wirtz (1991), pp. 196-198.
42 Sheehan (1988), pp. 293-298. Krulak had met Kennedy during combat in World War
II.
43 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 30-31, 36. Rosson was made head of Special Operations,
but never had the influence of Krulak.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 163
Lacking the knowledge and experience with counter-insurgency, Krulak was
willing to listen uncritically to the reports produced by Harkins. Moreover, when
lower-level agents like John Paul Vann attempted to provide information critical of
Harkins’ strategy, Krulak went out of his way to quash them. In the case of Vann, it
appears that Krulak acted to prevent him from briefing the JCS after returning from
his tour as an adviser in Vietnam.44
In Krulak’s defense, he did eventually acknowledge that counterinsurgency
operations were poorly prosecuted in Vietnam.45 This change of heart, however,
came years after Kennedy and well after the Army had circumvented early attempts
to manage the innovation. In fact, Krulak’s reports on Vietnam essentially gave
the Army concept a seal of approval while Kennedy was alive. In these reports,
he uncritically accepted the data provided by MACV and endorsed the strategy
pursued.
Material (Dis)incentives
In addition to these structural impediments, there were virtually no material
incentives to encourage servicemen to invest their careers in counterinsurgency.
Examples abound of the ostracism of agents who explored counterinsurgency within
the broader Army community. No expert was selected to fill the command billet
responsible for overseeing a counterinsurgency operation. Harkins, Westmoreland,
and Abrams were all “generalists,” with backgrounds in conventional infantry and
armor operations. Counterinsurgency experts such as Yarborough, Rosson, and
others were considered too far removed from the mainstream to be assigned to a
four-star post.46
It was widely perceived that there was a bias against counterinsurgency for
promotion. As Peter Dawkins argues, even after the Army Chief of Staff, Gen.
Harold Johnson, realized the importance of counterinsurgency, he had a difficult
time convincing the officer corps of its viability for promotion. In a poll of over 500
former advisers, Dawkins found that about half believed advisory duty had damaged
their chance for promotion. This was in spite of the fact that Gen. Johnson ordered
promotion boards to consider advisory duty in Vietnam as equivalent to a combat
command, the gold standard for promotion in the U.S. Army. As a result of this bias,
Gen. Johnson could not convince many highly capable officers to take senior adviser
positions, despite repeated personal pleas and the offer of special benefits. That a
personal letter from the Army Chief of Staff could not convince capable personnel
to serve as advisers was indicative of the prevailing view of advising and related
counterinsurgency ideas held within the Army.47
44 Sheehan (1988), pp. 337-342. Vann’s personal problems may have contributed to
Krulak’s decision.
45 Sheehan (1988), pp. 629-630.
46 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 64-65.
47 Peter Dawkins, “The United States Army and the ‘Other War’ in Vietnam,” (Ph.
D. dissertation, Princeton University, 1979), cited in Stephen Rosen, Winning the Next War
(Cornell University Press; Ithaca, NY; 1991), pp. 103-105.
Managing Defense Transformation164
In addition, the rapid rotation of officers enhanced the desirability of shirking
innovation. If an officer would not have to deal with the consequences of his actions,
he had little incentive to refrain from the use of massive firepower indiscriminately,
for example. He could pass the results on to his successor. His successor could then
call for even more firepower, knowing that he would soon be rotated out of the
situation. An officer just had to get his “ticket punched” in a combat command billet
for promotion.48
Even those counterinsurgency experts who did reach general officer rank did so
more in spite of than because of their views. Generals Rosson and Yarborough, the
experts who did reach general rank, had promotion potential derived from combat
experience gained in World War II and Korea. Counterinsurgency advocates in the
future could not count on this advantage if they became specialists.
Experts often disagreed on methods of waging a counter-insurgency that diluted
their influence and ability to create broad constituencies. Rosson, for example, was
critical of Special Forces’ CIDG program, discussed below, despite its efficacy. He
also remained suspicious of the Special Forces.49 Yarborough, on the other hand,
was a Special Forces officer and head of the Special Warfare Center. Air-mobility
advocates, by contrast, were united in their search for an alternative force posture
and doctrine.
By the same token, there were strong incentives to ignore alternative information
generated outside of the service. The Army, though the largest element of U.S. ground
forces in Vietnam, was not the only field force. The Marines were the first combat
forces committed, and had the most experience with what were termed “small wars.”
Indeed, they had published a manual on the subject. Almost as soon as the Marines
landed, they began to implement their version of counterinsurgency innovations.
Transformation’s Orphans: CAPs, Army Special Forces and Others
After establishing base security at Da Nang, the Marines began attempts to provide
security to the remaining population of their area of responsibility, which was all
of I Corps (the five northern most provinces of South Vietnam). With over 100,000
civilians within mortar range of the Da Nang airfield, one Marine commander
observed that a friendly attitude from the population could only help the Marines’
mission.50
The command arrangement of MACV initially gave the Marines reasonable
latitude to fight the war as they saw fit. The Commander of III MAF was authorized to
explore novel fighting methods. This led to the creation of Combined Action Platoons
(CAPs) aimed at providing security and development assistance to the people of I
48 Jeffrey Record, The Wrong War: Why We Lost in Vietnam (Naval Institute Press;
Annapolis, MD; 1998) pp. 97-99.
49 Krepinevich (1986), p. 71.
50 Maj. Gen. J. M. Platt, “Military Civic Action,” Marine Corps Gazette, (September,
1970) p. 24, quoted in Peter Brush, “The War’s ‘Constructive Component,” available online
at www.chss.montclair.edu/english/furr/pbvietnam0297.html.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 165
Corps.51 Each CAP consisted of a Marine rifle squad stationed in a village along
with the local self-defense militia, known as the Popular Forces or PFs. The Marines
conducted patrols from the village and protected the population from the insurgents.
They also provided medical and development assistance to the villagers.52
CAPs proved remarkably effective in light of the relatively small number of
Marines committed to the program. They suffered lower casualty rates than search
and destroy missions.53 Furthermore, they were able to eliminate VC infrastructure,
curtailing the ability to extract resources from villages. This was particularly
important in terms of rice, as CAP and regular Marine units made a strong effort
to protect the harvest, depriving the enemy of vital resources and earning the trust
of the people.54 Typically, CAP villages were rated as much more secure than
non-CAP villages.55 The main problem with CAPs, however, apart from the small
number of Marines committed, was the lack of coordination in the program. While
not completely ad hoc, the CAP villages were not integrated.56
Despite the accomplishments of CAPS, the Army ignored them as a source of
alternative information. COMUSMACV Westmoreland did not accept pacification
as a legitimate part of his mission, at least not in the manner the CAPs performed it.57
He continued to believe in the Army Concept of counterinsurgency.
Another Army argument was that there was not enough manpower to station a
cadre in every village.58 This is belied by the fact that at its maximum in January
1970, CAPs utilized less than 2,300 total personnel.59 With almost 475,000 personnel
in Vietnam on December 31, 1969, this was less than one half of one percent. A
report commissioned in 1967 by the DOD indicated that a CAPs approach to every
51 The best treatments of CAP by Marine officers who served with them in Vietnam
are F.J. West, The Village, 2nd edition (New York: Simon and Schuster, 2003); and William
Corson, The Betrayal (New York: W.W. Norton, 1968), pp. 174-198. See Brooks Brewington,
“Combined Action Platoons: A Strategy for Peace Enforcement,” (Marine Corps Command
and Staff College, 1996) for some additional history on the evolution of CAP from a single
village.
52 See Jack Shulimson and Charles M. Johnson, U.S. Marines in Vietnam: The Landing
and Buildup 1965, (Washington, D.C.: History and Museums Division, Headquarters, USMC,
1978), Chapter 9, “Pacification” for a good overview of the early years of CAPs and other
Marine civic action programs. A detailed treatment is Michael Peterson, The Combined Action
Platoons (New York: Praeger, 1989).
53 Krepinevich (1986), p. 174; Brush.
54 These harvest protection operations were known as GOLDEN FLEECE operations.
See Krepinevich (1986), p. 174, and Shulimson and Johnson, pp. 138-141.
55 Krepinevich (1986), p. 174.
56 Krepinevich (1986), p. 173.
57 Shulimson and Johnson (1978), pp. 599-603.
58 Krepinevich (1986), p. 175, and Shulimson and Johnson, pp. 618-621. The civilians
in CORDS such as Komer also felt that CAPs was too manpower intensive.
59 Graham A. Cosmas and Lt. Col. Terrence R Murray, U.S. Marines in Vietnam:
Vietnamization and Redeployment 1970-1971 (History and Museums Division, Headquarters,
USMC; Washington, D.C.; 1986), p. 139. These included 42 officers, 2050 enlisted, 2 naval
officers and 126 hospital corpsmen.
Managing Defense Transformation166
village could have been accomplished with about 167,000 troops.60 Moreover, each
Marine used for CAPs generated about 1.4 combat effective PF militiamen in 1968.
The CAP program actually generated manpower, which was always the most limited
resource for the U.S. 61
In addition, the Army ignored the fact that simultaneous stationing of a CAPs
unit in every village was not necessary. Indeed, security could be provided to one
area, and then spread outwards in keeping with the traditional “oil spot” principle
of counterinsurgency. But Westmoreland and his subordinates denigrated the CAP
program and, in some cases, the Marines in general. In an attempt to adapt the CAP
concept to the Army warfighting method, MACV created Mobile Training Teams
(MTTs). The MTTs consisted of four Army officers that provided village security
for one month and then moved on. Four men and one month was wholly insufficient
to achieve the goals the Marines sought in CAPs. Westmoreland’s influence ensured
that CAPs remained small.62 Moreover, as the war dragged on, more and more Army
units moved into I Corps, undermining Marine autonomy. Marine historian Jack
Shulimson summarized the Marines’ dilemma:
By the end of 1966, the two Marine divisions of III MAF were fighting two separate
wars. In the north, the 3d Marine Division fought a more or less conventional campaign
while the 1st Marine Division took over the counter-guerrilla operations in the populous
south. Although by December 1966, III MAF numbered nearly 70,000 troops, one Marine
general summed up the year’s frustrations, “ . . . too much real estate—do not have enough
troops.63
The Marines also sought to develop alternative measures of effectiveness for
counterinsurgency. These metrics took the form of a matrix look at various inputs such
as security in villages, provision of services, etc. The Central Intelligence Agency
subsequently used this matrix as the basis for the Hamlet Evaluation System (HES).
HES consisted of 18 indicators grouped into six major categories. Each indicator
was scored for each hamlet (a small subset of a village) on a scale of 1 to 5 (or A to
E), and each category was then given a “confidence rating” by the assessor based
on how accurate he believed the scores to be.64 Though imperfect, these metrics
were much more appropriate for measuring and evaluating counterinsurgency. The
Army was always suspicious of HES, and after “failing” to predict the Tet Offensive,
although beyond the scope of HES, the Army denigrated it further.
60 Krepinevich (1986), p. 172.
61 Shulimson andd Johnson (1978), pp. 628-629.
62 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 175-177.
63 Jack Shulimson, “The Marine War: III MAF in Vietnam 1965-1971,” paper presented
at Texas Tech Vietnam Center symposium, 1996, p. 3. The quote is from Brigadier General
Lowell E. English. English was the assistant division commander for the 3rd Marine Division,
and, as West notes in The Village, had rejected the option of removing one of the first CAP
units from its village following an attack by a main-force insurgent unit. See West, p. 131.
64 Robert Komer, Organization and Management of the” New Model” Pacification
Program—1966-1969 (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1970), pp. 198-203. Corson found HES to
be misleading, primarily because its inputs were either poorly gathered or falsified. He did not
object to the system per se or its criteria. See Corson, pp. 231-242.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 167
Army champions of counter-insurgency also failed to use competition among
sub-units to bolster oversight. In the case of counterinsurgency, the Army had a
subunit that was well prepared for exploration of fighting the new “wars of national
liberation” proclaimed by the Soviet premier Khrushchev. Unfortunately, this subunit
was orphaned within the Army structure.
The Army Special Forces were an outgrowth of elite units formed during
World War II. Deactivated at the end of the war, the Special Forces were reformed
at Fort Bragg in 1952. Special Forces began limited operations in Indochina in
1957, helping form the Vietnamese Special Forces.65 In 1961, President Kennedy
pledged additional support for the Republic of Vietnam in its war against communist
insurgents. As part of this effort, the 5th Special Forces Group was formed at Fort
Bragg in September 1961. This unit would eventually be responsible for all special
operations in Vietnam. Kennedy began to take a keen interest in the Special Forces
at this time.66
Kennedy was convinced that insurgency would be the threat of the future, and saw
Special Forces as a way to counter it. He authorized the distinctive green-beret for the
Special Forces, as well as an increase in the size of the force. Yet, Kennedy realized
that without Army support his efforts would founder. Despite intense pressure on
both the military and civilians in the Department of Defense, he could not convince
the Army of the importance of counterinsurgency or the Special Forces.67
The Army viewed Special Forces as an adjunct to big unit warfare, useful for
harassing the enemy, but nonetheless limited. Special Forces were to carry out
unconventional warfare, which was defined in the U.S. Army dictionary in 1964 as:
The three inter-related fields of guerrilla warfare, evasion and escape, and subversion
against hostile states. Unconventional warfare operations... are conducted within enemy
or enemy-controlled territory by predominantly indigenous personnel, usually supported
and directed in varying degrees by an external source.68
The Special Forces themselves were not so dogmatic in their beliefs about
their mission. Under CIA auspices, the Special Forces began a program to provide
population security to the tribes of the Central Highlands. Known as the Civilian
Irregular Defense Group (CIDG) program, it began with one village and quickly
expanded. At the heart of the CIDG program was a team of U.S. and Vietnamese
Special Forces who would arm and train villagers. They would then remain at a
camp along with a strike force of villagers. The other villagers would return home
and become defenders. The villages were lightly fortified and were supplied by the
CIA outside of normal channels.69
By July of 1962, the CIA requested additional Special Forces to expand the
program. Five U.S. Special Forces A teams (12 men each) were sent in, some without
65 Francis J. Kelly, U.S. Army Special Force in Vietnam 1961-1971, (Washington, DC:
Center for Military History, 1972), pp. 3-4.
66 Kelly (1972), p. 5.
67 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 27-33.
68 Quoted in Kelly (1972), p. 9.
69 Kelly (1972), pp. 25-27.
Managing Defense Transformation168
Vietnamese counterparts. By August 1962, 200 villages were in the program, which
was a major success. The entire province was considered secure by the end of 1962,
and efforts were being planned to expand the program to other minority groups.70
During this period, the Army began to reassert control over the Special Forces in
Vietnam. When MACV was formed in February 1962, a special warfare branch was
included in the staff section. An agreement between the CIA and MACV in May led
to joint coordination, but this lasted briefly as the Army sought to draw its personnel
fully under the control of MACV. The expansion in the number of Special Forces
in July was the last straw, and the Army claimed full jurisdiction over the Special
Force.71
This led to Operation SWITCHBACK, which called for the transfer of the
Special Forces to MACV. By July 1963, MACV wanted the Special Forces to
conduct unconventional warfare operations of an essentially offensive nature.72 This
led to a collapse of the CIDG program as a tool of pacification.73 In the words of
General Francis Kelly:
By the end of 1964 the Montagnard program was no longer an area development project
in the original sense of the term. There was a shift in emphasis from expanding village
defense systems to the primary use of area development camps or centers (CIDG camps)
as bases for offensive strike force operations. 74
Operation SWITCHBACK saw a rapid expansion of Special Forces activity but
a reduction in quality of product. According to Kelly:
The expansion of the CIDG program from 1 November 1962 to 1 July 1963, the end
of Operation SWITCHBACK, was fairly rapid. Approximately forty CIDG camps
were opened and eight closed. The rapidity of this expansion did not permit the kind
of development that took place at Buon Enao, where a great deal of time was taken to
prepare the area and the people for military activity in the CIDG program. This time the
emphasis was on speed. The usual approach was to establish security first, undertake civic
action later, and work through province and district chiefs instead of tribal leaders. In
general these projects were not as successful as the Buon Enao experiment... It was also
during this period that emphasis shifted from the establishment of mutually supporting
village defense systems to carrying out offensive strike force operations in order to open
up and then secure an area. 75
The CIDG program as a potential counterinsurgency innovation was essentially
eliminated following Operation SWITCHBACK. It continued to function until 1970,
but as a source of unconventional warfare troops, friendly guerillas who could harass
70 Ibid., p. 28.
71 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 70-71; and Kelly (1972), p. 27-29.
72 Kelly (1972), pp. 30-32.
73 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 71-74.
74 Kelly (1972), pp. 33-34. See also Krepinevich (1986), p. 219, 229-232 for more on
the deleterious effects of Operations SWITCHBACK.
75 Kelly (1972), p. 37.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 169
the enemy as a supplement to the MACV war of attrition. Like CAPs, the CIDG
program had failed as a source of alternative information.
In addition to service and subunit competition, some high-level military principals
sought to use ad hoc organizations to promote counterinsurgency. Army Chief of
Staff Harold Johnson, as noted earlier, was a proponent of counterinsurgency who
sought to make advisory positions more attractive. He created an ad hoc group to
review the situation in Vietnam and U.S. approaches to it. This organization, known
as the Special Study Group, was commissioned in July 1965 under the Office of
the Deputy Chief of Staff for Military Operations (ODCSOPS). It was made up of
well-regarded younger officers (lieutenant colonels and majors) who were generally
supporters of counterinsurgency. General Johnson charged the group with devising a
plan to pacify Vietnam for the long term even if it took 50 years.76 In less than a year,
this organization produced a 900 page study of the situation in Vietnam and a plan
for confronting it that centered on population security. This report, titled “A Program
for the Pacification and Long-Term Development of South Vietnam,” was known by
the acronym PROVN and was the best articulation of what Army transformation for
counterinsurgency should have looked like.
Yet these conclusions did not sit well within the Army, nor were they widely
circulated. The report was classified Top Secret with only a very limited “need to
know” distribution list. Westmoreland and others successfully argued it should be
considered a “concept piece” rather than a plan of action. CINCPAC Admiral Sharp
also opposed the PROVN study, as it recommended creating a unified joint command
which, as noted previously, was what many civilians had felt was appropriate for
Vietnam from the beginning. However, that would effectively remove him from
the Vietnam chain of command. Deputy Chief of Staff for Military Operations Lt.
Gen. Vernon Mock, refused to sign the study and downplayed its significance to his
superior, Vice Chief of Staff General Creighton Abrams.77 Ultimately, PROVN would
have little impact on the conduct of the war. When Abrams replaced Westmoreland
in 1968, he sought to implement much of the PROVN study, but was as frustrated in
those efforts as Gen. Johnson was two years earlier.78
76 See William Gibbons, The U.S. Government and the Vietnam War: Executive and
Legislative Roles and Relationships (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1995), pp. 4,
201-202.
77 The above account of PROVN is drawn from Gibbon (1995), pp. 201-212, and Lewis
Sorley, “To Change a War: General Harold K. Johnson and the PROVN Study,” Parameters,
28:1 (Spring 1998). The PROVN Study itself is available in two volumes from the Defense
Technical Information Center.
78 Lewis Sorley, A Better War: The Unexamined Victories and Final Tragedy of
America’s Last Years in Vietnam (New York: Harcourt-Brace, 1999) argues that Abrams
succeeded in using PROVN to adjust U.S. conduct of the war. However, many sources
(including primary sources used by Sorley) contradict his upbeat assessment. See Lewis
Sorley, ed., Vietnam Chronicles: The Abrams Tapes 1968-1972 (Lubbock, TX: Texas Tech
University Press, 2004), pp. 116-117, 212-213, and 285-286; Cincinnatus [Cecil Currey], Self-
Destruction: The Disintegration and Decay of the United States Army During the Vietnam
Era, (New York: W.W. Norton, 1981), p. 125 and Brian M. Jenkins, The Unchangeable War
(Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1972).
Managing Defense Transformation170
The Lack of a Common Understanding of Counterinsurgency
The culture of the U.S. Army that operated in Vietnam was a reflection of its
foundational experience in the American Civil War and its subsequent professionalism.
This self-referential culture was reinforced by subsequent conflicts, particularly
World War II, the Korean War, and the Cold War. Each of these conflicts molded the
Army’s perception of its strategic needs and goals as well as how it measured and
evaluated progress towards those goals. This combination of influences produced an
organizational culture focused on mass and quantification. In Vietnam this resulted
in the mismanagement of innovation advocated from the President down the chain
of command to combat troops in the field.
Following the Civil War, the U.S. Army began to develop a strong professional
identity and a professional education system. The core of Army professional education
was the School of Application for Infantry and Cavalry at Fort Leavenworth,
founded by Gen. William T. Sherman in 1881. The School, which would eventually
become the Command and General Staff College (CGSC), was the center of Army
professional identity and education.79
The norms inculcated in the Army by CGSC elevated prominence of the “total
war” model of the American Civil War. Graduates were expected to be able to
rapidly take command of or work on the staffs of divisions that did not exist in
peacetime. War would involve absorbing large numbers of civilians and managing
the conversion of vast amounts of capital to military uses. In short, U.S. Army norms
became oriented towards total war between great power armies, at a time when it did
not face plausible great power rivals and the only military operations it conducted
were against the Plains Indians.80
The Army’s attendant managerial norms featured large units, particularly the
division. In the late 1890s, the Army, despite numbering far less than 100,000
men, adopted a permanent division structure as the basis for organization.81 Each
division consisted of a massive combined arms unit capable of effectively engaging
enemy conventional formations. Yet, this focus on the division left a normative
void regarding conflicts waged at much lower levels of violence, such as counter-
insurgency.
U.S. managerial norms were modified by several experiences following the Civil
War. The experience in World War II, in particular, imbued the service with an affinity
for mating technological innovation to a massive industrial base to produce an army
79 See Mark R. Grandstaff, “Preserving the ‘Habits and Usages of War’: William
Tecumseh Sherman, Professional Reform, and the U.S. Army Officer Corps, 1865-1881,
Revisited,” The Journal of Military History, 62:3 (July 1998), and Timothy K. Nenninger, The
Leavenworth Schools and the Old Army: Education, Professionalism, and the Officer Corps
of the United States Army 1881-1918 (Westport, CT: Greenwood Press, 1978).
80 See Lance Janda, “Shutting the Gates of Mercy: The American Origin of Total War
1860-1880,” Journal of Military History, v.59, n.1 (January 1995). Yet even in the operations
against the Plains Indians, the Army exported the methods of total war, foreshadowing the
Vietnam experience nearly a century later.
81 John B. Wilson, Maneuver and Firepower: The Evolution of Divisions and Separate
Brigades (Washington, D.C.: U.S. Army Center for Military History, 1998).
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 171
that fought successfully on two fronts. This had two effects on the U.S. Army. The
first was to inculcate a spirit of invincibility. That the victory had come against two
overextended empires, one a small island nation, the other already exhausted from
fighting the largest nation-state on earth, was ignored. The early failures in World
War II, such as the debacle at Kasserine Pass, were also conveniently forgotten. This
attitude also infected the civilian leadership that was charged with evaluating the
effectiveness of Army doctrine, strategy, and tactics.82 The staff officers of World
War II, such as the first COMUSMACV, had not learned the lessons of Patton and
Eisenhower from their experimentation with theories of armored warfare in the
interwar period, that operational innovation and organizational adaptation were
as at least as important as technological and materiel innovation. As Neil Sheehan
argues:
The junior officers of World War II, now the generals of the 1960s, had become so
accustomed to winning from the later years of that war that they could no longer imagine
they could lose...They assumed that they would prevail in Vietnam simply because of who
they were.83
This attitude was revealed time and again in statements by military and civilian
officials. The belief in inevitable American success is a constant theme in the ex post
facto statements and memoirs of the leaders of the time.84
This hubris also fostered a bias against negative assessments, as noted earlier in the
example from the Battle of Ap Bac. Even the terminology of reporting was oriented
toward positive results. Officers gave “progress reports,” and COMUSMACV
Harkins gave a weekly “Headway Report” to the JCS.85 This “can-do” mentality
prevented serious discussion of U.S. strategy, as well as reinforcing the bureaucratic
barrier between principals and agents.
Second, the U.S. Army’s World War II experience produced an unshakeable
confidence in technology and materiel that reinforced a faith in firepower that dated
back to the Civil War. Andrew Krepinevich refers to this as “The Army Concept” of
war-fighting that placed a premium on engaging the enemy’s order of battle with the
maximum possible firepower and a minimum of U.S. casualties.86 William DePuy,
COMUSMACV Westmoreland’s chief of operations, summed up U.S. methods:
“We are going to stomp them to death.” Tellingly, he added “I don’t know any
other way.”87 Following his promotion to commander of the 1st Infantry Division,
82 See James P. Harrison, The Endless War (New York: Columbia University Press,
1989), pp. 257-260.
83 Sheehan (1988), p. 287.
84 For example, Robert McNamara, In Retrospect (New York: Times Books, 1995), pp.
209-213. An excellent brief summary of American arrogance and statements of disbelief is
Jeffrey Record, The Wrong War (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 1998) pp. 47-54.
85 Sheehan (1988), p. 287.
86 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 5-7.
87 Quoted in Sheehan (1988), pp. 501 and 568. DePuy would go on to become the first
head of the Army’s Training and Doctrine Command, which was created after Vietnam. His
views can thus be considered to be broadly representative of the Army as an institution.
Managing Defense Transformation172
Depuy elaborated on this strategy to Daniel Ellsberg: “The solution in Vietnam is
more bombs, more shells, more napalm... till the other side cracks and gives up.”88
Westmoreland himself stated: “We’ll just go on bleeding them to the point of national
disaster for generations.”89
This concept of fighting marked an explicit return to an affinity for attrition
warfare, like that waged by the German Army at Verdun in 1916, though without the
recognizable fronts. The German objective there, according to Chief of the General
Staff Erich von Falkenhayn, was “to keep open a bleeding wound in the side of
the French Army” to “bleed France white”. It was evidence of the bankruptcy of
operational thinking that characterized the Great War. So too, the attrition option
in Vietnam, made more attractive by U.S. technological and industrial resources,
revealed a bankruptcy in operational thinking that characterized U.S. Army leadership
at the time. The amount of ordnance expended was prodigious: 300,000 tons in 1965,
increasing thereafter to a peak of almost 3 million in 1968, not counting defoliants.90
In spite of this expenditure of firepower, the Vietnamese insurgents and their North
Vietnamese allies never wavered. The Army did not want to institutionalize counter-
insurgency strategies and innovations, as they ran counter to the Army’s preferred
method. As summed up by Army Chief of Staff General George Decker, the Army’s
attitude was “any good soldier can handle guerillas.”91
In addition, there was an ingrained fear and loathing of limited war. The Army
felt that if it had been given a free hand, it could have concluded the Korean War
with an outright victory rather than stalemate.92 This variant of the stab-in-the-back
theory used by Ludendorf and some others in the German Army to explain its failure
in World War I and thus escape culpability for that failure became ingrained in the
U.S. Army’s culture during the 1950s. “No more Koreas” was a rallying cry for the
disaffected officer corps.93
Following Eisenhower’s election and the adoption of the strategy of Massive
Retaliation, the Army was marginalized as a service.94 It was reduced to little more
than a police force for whatever would be left after a nuclear war. Its budget was
reduced as the new shield of the free world was created in the form of the Strategic
Air Command. In order to restore and maintain organizational prestige and budgets,
88 Quoted in Sheehan (1988), p. 619.
89 Quoted in Harrison (1989), p. 256.
90 Harrison (1989), p. 256.
91 Quoted in Krepinevich (1986), p. 37.
92 Krepinevich (1986), p. 16.
93 Regardless of the limited nature of the war, the Army suffered from weaknesses
inherent in its concept of war, though it did a better job of correcting these flaws in the
essentially mid-intensity conventional war in Korea than it would do in the true guerilla war
in Vietnam. See Eliot Cohen and John Gooch, Military Misfortune (New York: Free Press,
1990) pp. 192-195 and Eric Hammel, Chosin (Novato, CA: Presidio Press, 1990) for some
of the failures of the U.S. Army in Korea, particularly when contrasted with the Marines’
experience.
94 Andrew Bacevich, The Pentomic Era, (Washington, DC: National Defense
University Press, 1986) provides an excellent overview of this period.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 173
the Army would have to discover ways to remain relevant in a nuclear-armed
international security environment.
The first potential method was to modernize and equip the Army to survive and
operate on a nuclear battlefield. Air-mobility was certainly part of this strategy.
The second was to denigrate the Eisenhower Administration’s strategy of Massive
Retaliation. Several prominent generals wrote books after leaving the service
castigating the administration for its adoption of Massive Retaliation.95 The most
important of these was Maxwell Taylor’s The Uncertain Trumpet.96 Taylor’s
alternative to Massive Retaliation called for the ability to make a “flexible response.”
John Kennedy, a great admirer of Taylor, seized upon “Flexible Response” as his
strategy. Yet Kennedy sought to extend Flexible Response down to low-intensity
operations, while the Army thought Flexible Response meant high to mid-intensity
conflict, centering on Europe.
This strategic focus on Europe also weakened the status of counter-insurgency
innovations in the U.S. Army. The Eurocentric strategic viewpoint amplified the
popularity of total war. The Army felt comfortable conducting large scale conventional
operations in Europe, having already defeated the Axis powers there. During Korea,
the Army’s focus remained on building up its capabilities for Europe.97 That the
likelihood of major war in Europe after 1962 was small was irrelevant to the Army.
Army planners focused on the contingency they felt was of greatest importance.
Robert Komer, who would later be responsible for civilian pacification as head of
the Civil Operations and Revolutionary Development Support (CORDS) office,
offered a succinct assessment of Army strategic beliefs in 1963. In a memo entitled
“Critique of Army Force Posture,” he stated: “...the Army is still preparing more for
the worst case [war in Europe] than the most likely case [counterinsurgency].”98 This
focus would not change significantly for the remainder of the Cold War, despite the
commitment of hundreds of thousands of combat troops to Vietnam.
Other prevailing service norms reinforced the affinity for total war and
compounded the agency costs of introducing an effective counter-insurgency
strategy in Vietnam. One in particular was the service taboo against violating chain
of command. For example, members of the military mission to Vietnam following
95 See Bacevich for Army reactions to the “New Look.” For an overview of Massive
Retaliation and Eisenhower’s “New Look”, see John Lewis Gaddes, Strategies of Containment
(London: Oxford University Press, 1982), pp. 127-197.
96 Maxwell Taylor, The Uncertain Trumpet (New York: Harper, 1960). Strategists at
the RAND Corporation and in academia had already begun to question Massive Retaliation
before Taylor’s book, as had some in the Eisenhower Administration. For an overview of
the evolution of thinking on nuclear strategy in this period, see David Alan Rosenberg, “The
Origins of Overkill: Nuclear Weapons and American Strategy 1945-1960,” International
Security, 7:4 (Spring 1983); Marc Trachtenberg, “A ‘Wasting Asset’: American Strategy and
the Shifting Nuclear Balance, 1949-1954, International Security, 13:3 (Winter 1988); Gregg
Herken, Counsels of War, 2nd edition (New York: Oxford University Press, 1987); and Fred
Kaplan, The Wizards of Armageddon (New York: Simon and Schuster, 1983).
97 See David T. Fautua, “The ‘Long Pull’ Army: NSC 68, the Korean War and the
Creation of the Cold War U.S. Army,” Journal of Military History 61:1 (January 1997).
98 Quoted in Krepinevich (1986), p. 123.
Managing Defense Transformation174
the Battle of Ap Bac spoke to both Col. Dan Porter and Brig. Gen. Robert York. Yet
neither Porter nor York sought to proselytize to any of the mission members, which
included Krulak, the JCS special assistant for counter-insurgency and special affairs.
In the words of Neil Sheehan:
York had the strength and weakness of Porter. He was an individualist with an inquiring
mind, and his character was beyond reproach. He was also a man molded by his institution
who put faith in its mores. He was not the sort to violate the chain of command by starting
to preach out of turn to these senior officers. He had provided Harkins, who was responsible
as the commanding general, with his confidential analysis of the battle and his warning of
what it portended... For York to have made copies and distributed them on his own would
have been going behind Harkins’s back. York did not behave that way.99
This service bias against end-runs was not absolute. In practice, the advocates of
air-mobility violated the chain of command by taking their case directly to Secretary
of Defense McNamara.100 McNamara then created a board, primarily of those
receptive to and knowledgeable about airmobility, to study the issue.101 Though
this maneuvering irked the Army high command, they nonetheless complied. The
advocates of counter-insurgency, however, were unable to revisit this experience, as
they lacked a large constituency within the service.
The tale of the two Howze boards illustrates the important difference in support
for service end-runs for air-mobility and counter-insurgency within the service. Gen.
Hamilton Howze chaired two boards in 1961-1962, one on Special Warfare and one
on Army Air-mobility. The Special Warfare report was critical of Army practice and
called for “a very considerable reorientation of its outlook and effort...”102 The actual
impact of this board’s report was minimal. By contrast, the second board Howze
chaired led to the acquisition of helicopters and formation of airmobile units by the
Army. This support provided the necessary administrative cover for circumventing
the chain of command to advance air-mobility operations.
Managerial Norms and Measures of Validation
In addition, the U.S. Army’s managerial norms placed a high value on quantitative
evidentiary standards. In particular, there was a special bias in favor of operations
research, systems analysis, modeling, and simulation.103 During World War II,
systems analysis had proved its utility for the development of logistics, radar and
strategic bombing.104 With the onset of the Cold War, the massive size and expense
99 Sheehan (1988), p. 300.
100 Krepinevich (1986), pp. 119-121.
101 See Tolson (1973), pp. 19-25 for a detailed discussion of the board (the Howze
Board) and some of the machinations that led McNamara to create it.
102 Krepinevich (1986), p. 45.
103 For simplicity’s sake, all of these techniques, which involve reliance on mathematical
calculation, will be referred to as “systems analysis.”
104 E.S. Quade’s “Introduction”, pp. 2-3 in E.S. Quade and W.I. Boucher, eds., Systems
Analysis and Policy Planning (New York: American Elsevier, 1968).
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 175
of the peacetime defense burden required systems analysis to maximize cost/benefit
ratios, or, more crudely “bang for the buck.” The increased technological complexity
of war also augured for systems analysis.105 Secretary of Defense McNamara,
a former head of Ford Motor Company, reinforced this norm by introducing the
Planning-Programming-Budgeting System (PPBS) that called for continuous review
and analysis of all defense expenditures.106 He also created an Office of Systems
Analysis in the Pentagon.107
Yet the penchant for systems analysis was intrinsically limited and flawed. The
U.S. Army fixated on quantifiable evidence at the expense of ignoring or downplaying
alternative information. Innovation was replaced by equation. As summed up by
E.S. Quade, then director of RAND’s Mathematics Department:
...many factors fundamental to national defense problems are not subject to rigorous,
quantitative analysis. They may, therefore, be neglected, deliberately set aside, or
improperly weighed in the analysis itself or in the decision based on such analysis. The
danger also exists that an analysis will appear so scientific and quantitative on the surface
that it may be assigned a validity not justified by the many subjective judgments it involves.
In other words, we may be so mesmerized by the beauty and precision of the numbers
that we overlook the simplifications made to achieve this precision, neglect analysis of
the qualitative factors, and overemphasize the importance of idealized calculations in the
decision process.108
Managing counterinsurgency innovations, which rely on such “unquantifiable”
measures as winning “hearts and minds”, was not in keeping with the Army’s
proclivity to be “mesmerized” by numbers. Nor was it easy for principals, including
McNamara, to manage counterinsurgency innovations when they were equally
“mesmerized.” This, for example, contrasted with air-mobility that could be readily
quantified. Each airmobile operation constituted a separate “search and destroy”
operation that generated easily measured results more conducive to systems analysis
to fit the overall Army concept of total war.
Even after the war was over, Lt. Gen. Julian Ewell produced a monograph
detailing many of the applications of systems analysis in Vietnam. Ewell’s comments
on search and destroy, written in 1974, are worth reproducing:
When one first observes the fighting in Vietnam, there is a tendency to assume that the
current tactics are about right and that previous tactics were rather uninspired if not wrong.
The first conclusion is probably correct, the second is probably wrong. For example, one
hears much criticism of the Search and Destroy Operations, which were extensively used
in 1967 and before. However, if one looks at the situation then existing and what was
actually done, the tactics were pretty well chosen and did the job. Any reasonably effective
105 Ibid., pp. 5-7.
106 Quade (1968), p. 7.
107 See Alain Enthoven and K. Wayne Smith, How Much is Enough? Shaping the
Defense Program 1961-1969 (New York: Harper & Row, 1971). Enthoven was the first head
of the Office of Systems Analysis, which would evolve into the current Office of Program
Analysis and Evaluation.
108 E.S. Quade (1968), “By Way of Summary,” p. 427, in Quade and Boucher (1968).
Managing Defense Transformation176
commander, after observing the enemy operate a while, can cope with him reasonably
well.109
Elsewhere, Ewell comments:
More often than not, units in Vietnam emphasized pacification by stressing civic action
efforts. In our opinion, this was a mistake as long as the enemy retained even a modest
military capability. In the 9th Division, we always stressed the military effort.110
In Vietnam, this produced measures of evaluation that were inappropriate to
the management of counter-insurgency operations. One of the most famous —or
infamous —benchmarks of agent activity in Vietnam was the “body count.” This
measure focused on the number of fatalities resulting from U.S. military action. It
was the central measure of success for the strategy of attrition used by Harkins and
Westmoreland and was used to evaluate all agents. Body counts, however, were
inappropriate for measuring exploration of an innovation that relied on providing
security to the citizens of a country. The American adviser Lt. Col. John Paul Vann, for
example, considered the body counts counterproductive, as they generated incentives
to inflate numbers by including non-combatants and the civilian constituencies who
were the very targets of related security operations.111 As one soldier wrote:
our mission was not to win territory or seize positions, but simply to kill... Victory was a
high body count... This lead to such practices as counting civilians as Viet Cong. ‘If it’s
dead and Vietnamese, it’s VC’ was a rule of thumb in the bush.112
Given that the security and support of the civilians was crucial to a true
counterinsurgency strategy, it is readily apparent why this measure was
inappropriate.
Body counts also were subject to inflation that made them unreliable indicators.
Body counts became a quota to be fulfilled for promotion. As Andrew Krepinevich
commented, “If the commander before you had killed X number of VC, you had
best kill X+1.”113 This created intense pressures to inflate body counts. Krepinevich
concludes, “General Westmoreland’s efforts to ensure compliance with the ROE
[Rules of Engagement] proved unsatisfactory in the face of the strong incentives that
his strategy provided for commanders to generate a high body count.”114 Similarly,
Jeffrey Record contends that “amassing kills became the standard of career success
for U.S. commanders, and therefore an often irresistible temptation to abuse in both
the infliction and reporting of enemy casualties.”115
109 Julian Ewell and Ira Hunt, Sharpening the Combat Edge: The Use of Analysis to
Reinforce Military Judgment (Washington, DC: Center for Military History, 1974), p. 78.
110 Ewell and Hunt (1974), p. 160
111 Sheehan (1988), p. 287.
112 Phillip Caputo, A Rumor of War, (New York: Henry Holt, 1977), p. xv..
113 Krepinevich (1986), p. 202.
114 Ibid, p. 199.
115 Record (1998), p. 84.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 177
Other measures of agent activity were equally inappropriate. Some these included
combat sorties flown, bomb tonnage dropped, ammunition expended, and ratio of
U.S. deaths to enemy deaths.116 Each of these measured effort expended, not the
efficacy of that effort. As noted earlier, an almost tenfold increase in the tonnage of
ordnance expended in three years did not result in victory.
“Battalion Days in the Field” also proved to be deleterious indicators for the
success of counter-insurgency operations. This focused on evaluating the effectiveness
of commanders based on the amount of time spent in combat operations. However,
the effort devoted to population security was not counted as time in the field.117
This would negatively impact agents who sought to implement counterinsurgency
innovations. One Marine brigadier general observed that Marine units had much
lower ratings in this category because “battalions engaged in pacification operations
were not counted as battalions in the field.”118 This limited Marine attempts to
implement and manage counterinsurgency innovations.
Similarly, Army Special Forces had trouble adapting to the Army’s managerial
norms. The basic unit of the Special Forces was the A-Team—or Operational
Detachment Alpha—which was a unit of about twelve men. The unit was generally
led by a captain, who in the regular Army would command a company ten times that
size. The regular Army, accustomed to this managerial order, constantly belittled
Special Forces’ officers. According to Kelly:
The personnel actions which bothered the Special Forces members most were the
complete and continual disregard by departmental personnel officials of the comparative
combat responsibilities of Special Forces people. Because the table of equipment for
a Special Forces group specified the position of a Special Forces lieutenant colonel as
the commander of a Special Forces company, no amount of correspondence ever really
convinced the personnel managers at Department of the Army that this position was really
the equivalent of that of a battalion commander in terms of combat responsibility.119
By the same token, there was a normative prejudice against drawing lessons
from foreign experiences with counter-insurgency. This was especially the case
for analysis of the French war in Indochina that lasted from 1946 to 1954. On the
one hand, much was written about it during and after the conflict.120 The U.S. had
underwritten much of the cost of the war, and had sent observers both during and
after the war as part of the Geneva Accords that ended the French phase of the
116 Sheehan (1988), pp. 287-288, Krepinevich (1986) pp. 196-205
117 Sheehan (1988), p. 636.
118 Brig. Gen. Frederick J. Karch, quoted in Jack Shulimson and Maj. Charles M
Johnson, U.S. Marines in Vietnam: The Landing and Buildup 1965, (Washington, D.C.:
History and Museums Division, Headquarters, USMC, 1978), pp. 115-116.
119 Kelly (1972), p. 164.
120 See, inter alia, Bernard Fall, Street Without Joy (Harrisburg, PA: Stackpole Books,
1957) and Hell in a Very Small Place (Philadelphia, PA: De Capo Press, 1967) as well as Ellen
J. Hammer, The Struggle for Indochina (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1954) for
contemporary or near-contemporary accounts. Graham Greene, The Quiet American (New
York: Viking Press, 1955) presents a fictional account but its popularity shows that the French
war in Indochina was common knowledge in the U.S.
Managing Defense Transformation178
conflict.121 Virtually the whole world watched the progress of the siege of Dien Bien
Phu that sealed the end of the French effort.
On the other hand, information on the French experience was hardly utilized by
the U.S. Army. Senior officers saw little similarity in the French war and the U.S.
war, despite the fact that it was against the same enemy, on the same terrain, fought
with the same tactics. The attitude of service principals and agents alike was “We
are not the French.” The French were regarded as decadent colonialists who needed
the U.S. to bail them out of two wars. There was nothing to be learned from them.122
According to David Hackworth, this inured the Army to the French experience. This
was evidenced by the fact that the Pentagon library was filled with translated after-
action reports of French experiences that were never checked out.123 Though these
reports were “candid, comprehensive, and sometimes blunt,” they were not absorbed.
As Don Starry notes, “in the United States, because of restrictive military security
regulations and a general lack of interest in the French operation in Indochina, there
was no body of military knowledge of Vietnam.” 124
The French experience offered principals alternative information on a variety
of topics. MACV’s firepower and attrition approach had been attempted by the
French. It had been successful only when the Viet Minh had chosen to fight large-
scale battles, as in the Vinh Yen and Red River Delta battles of 1951. Yet, the Viet
Minh learned from those exposures to massive air and artillery strikes, and reverted
to classic insurgency tactics. They continued to bleed the French army, and the
French public began to grow increasingly weary and divided over the war. It was
often called “the dirty war,” and, as casualties mounted, debate over it raged in the
National Assembly.125 This experience would be felt in the U.S. in the late 1960s, as
attrition failed to eliminate the Viet Cong and the number of U.S. dead increased.
Similarly, the French experience at Dien Bien Phu was a harbinger for the
challenges faced by American troops at Khe Sahn a decade and a half later.126 The
most obvious difference is that the U.S. did not lose the position at Khe Sanh, as the
French did at Dien Bien Phu. The use of incredible amounts of airpower, averaging
over 300 tactical and almost 50 B-52 sorties a day, stubborn Marine defense, and
eventual relief by other U.S. forces prevented the fall of Khe Sanh.127 That said,
121 At least one observer was a general officer, John O’Daniel. See Harrison (1989), p.
123; as well as a fictional account of a U.S. observer during this period in Eugene Burdick and
William Lederer, The Ugly American, (New York: W.W. Norton, 1958).
122 Sheehan (1988), pp. 42-43 illustrates John Paul Vann’s beliefs on this subject, which
are probably representative of the U.S. officers in Vietnam.
123 See Record (1998), p. 47.
124 Starry (1978), p. 4. Starry would subsequently be Depuy’s deputy at Training and
Doctrine Command before becoming its commander.
125 Stanley Karnow, Vietnam: A History (New York: Viking Press, 1984), p. 188.
126 See Fall, Hell in a Small Place, as well as Karnow (1984), pp. 188-198. A lengthy
account of the lead up to Dien Bien Phu as well as the battle itself is Martin Windrow, The Last
Valley: Dien Bien Phu and the French Defeat in Vietnam (Cambridge, MA: De Capo Press,
2004).
127 Nalty, pp. 200-201. U.S. forces lost 3 airplanes and one helicopter, while dropping
over 100,000 tons of ordnance on the enemy and 12,000 tons of supplies to friendly forces.
U.S. Counterinsurgency in Vietnam 179
Khe Sanh and Dien Bien Phu were similar in that the locations had little intrinsic
strategic significance. Indeed, Khe Sanh was actually abandoned soon after the
siege.128 Moreover, even though the Vietnamese had not intended to repeat the
Dien Bien Phu operation at Khe Sanh, neither the French nor the U.S. properly
understood the enemy’s objectives.129 A French lessons learned study of the defeat
at Dien Bien Phu concluded that the commander of French forces in Vietnam had
ignored intelligence that did not fit his prejudices.130 The same could be said of
COMUSMACV Westmoreland, who ignored the French experience.
Army officials also failed to absorb the lessons from the British success in the
Malaysian Emergency from 1948-1960. By 1950, a serious Communist insurgency,
almost exclusively composed of ethnic Chinese, was active against the British and
local governments. The British response was to develop a coordinated political
and military plan to defeat the insurgents. Known as the Briggs Plan, after the
general who formulated it, the British built up the police, formed militia to protect
the villages, and created a political apparatus. The groundwork for an independent
Malaysia was laid, while intelligence was strengthened and coordinated. British
military forces spent considerable amounts of time in the countryside, patrolling and
ambushing the guerillas. This plan included unity of command for all forces, civilian
and military.131
The British were extremely cautious in their reliance on greater firepower as a
solution to the insurgency. Bombing was kept away from population centers as much
as possible, and helicopters were used more for resupply and medical evacuation
than for conducting mobile operations.132 Furthermore, the British created “New
Life” villages where the ethnic Chinese could be securely resettled and given the
title to land that they could then farm. It proved successful, as did other incentive
programs to convince insurgents to defect.133
The U.S. Army was not ignorant of the British experience. One of the most noted
of the British writers on the insurgency, General Robert Thompson, consulted with
More detail on the use of firepower at Khe Sanh is available in Robert Scales, Firepower in
Limited War, (Washington, D.C.: National Defense University Press, 1990).
128 Karnow (1984), p. 542.
129 Khe Sahn was almost certainly intended as a feint, drawing U.S. attention away
from the population centers to the South in preparation for the Tet Offensive. Nalty, pp. 182-
184 and 208. It is worth noting that Nalty presents COMUSMACV Westmoreland (who wrote
the foreword to the book) and his actions in the most favorable light possible, and yet even
Nalty concedes that Khe Sanh was most likely a diversion. Wirtz, The Tet Offensive, also
presents evidence that supports the diversion hypothesis.
130 Karnow (1984), p. 194.
131 For a general overview of the Malaysian Emergency, see Robert G. K. Thompson,
Defeating Communist Insurgency: Experiences from Malaya and Vietnam, (London: Chatto
and Windus, 1966) and Richard Clutterbuck, The Long Long War (New York: Praeger,
1966).
132 Jay Gordon Simpson, “Not By Bombs Alone: Lessons from Malaya,” Joint Forces
Quarterly (Summer 1999), pp. 93-97.
133 Ibid., pp. 92-94. See also Robert Komer, The Malayan Emergency in Retrospect:
Organization of a Successful Counterinsurgency Effort (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1972).
Managing Defense Transformation180
President Kennedy in 1963 and observed much of what the U.S. did in Vietnam. He
was aghast at the U.S. war effort, which he considered to be a completely incorrect
approach. He told Kennedy in 1963 that the war would be won “by brains and feet,”
not firepower.134 Thompson also worked with Roger Hilsman of the State Department
to develop a workable plan similar to the British model in Malaysia.
Ultimately, however, this analysis did not resonate with the U.S. Army. It was
assumed that the British experience could not be directly applied to Vietnam,
where government authority had to remain in the hands of the South Vietnamese.
Accordingly, MAAG chief McGarr modified his plan for resettlement in 1961.
When it was finally approved by Diem, the plan did not focus on creating stability
by resettling squatters. Rather, it was aimed at uprooting long-established villages
and moving the populations to new, “secure” sites. The emphasis was on clearing the
decks for firepower, not removing the source of insurgent support.
Conclusion
The U.S. Army’s failure to transform for counterinsurgency is the most extreme
example of failed principal-agent relations in this volume. Rather than merely
shirking principals’ desires, agents in the Army in some cases actively sabotaged
efforts to meet those desires. This pattern of sabotage, beginning with the critical
JCS decision to create a command arrangement in Vietnam that was contrary to
Secretary of Defense McNamara’s wishes, would prevent any serious attempt at
transformation. What is most striking is that the Army thwarted not only civilian
principals like McNamara but also military principals like Generals Johnson and
Abrams, who were not only vested with formal authority but were also respected in
the Army. In addition to sabotaging principals’ aims, the Army squelched alternative
sources of information from other services, from within the Army, and from the
experience of foreign militaries.
134 Memorandum of Conversation, Kennedy Library, National Security Files, Vietnam
Country Series, 4/63-5/63. Available online at: http://mcadams.posc.mu.edu/viet3.htm.
Chapter 7
Conclusion
This book underscores the basic paradox of managing military transformation:
fundamentally “new ways of war” must survive and thrive within organizational
structures and traditions designed to foster continuity. Advances in military technology
and operations cannot be fully explored and absorbed without corresponding
organizational change and flexibility within the armed forces establishment.
However, the functional purpose and enduring ideas of warfare embedded in these
organizations are oriented towards reducing uncertainty and improving the fulfillment
of traditional tasks. If not managed appropriately, the tension between exploring new
technological possibilities and exploiting established methods and procedures can
impede otherwise concerted efforts to effect military transformation.
Though the obstacles to institutionalizing military transformation are formidable,
as this book illustrates, they are not insurmountable. History is replete with examples
of radical, modest, failed, and even subverted military change, revealing that armed
services are neither intrinsically flexible nor hardwired to resist major changes in
technology, operations, or organization. Military organizations not only differ in
how they view and respond to strategic and technological opportunities, but vary
in effectiveness at brokering internal change. The most successful are characterized
by coherent visions of the evolving nature of warfare, flexible leadership, robust
funding for new programs, as well as a commitment to experimentation.1 Yet, failure
to address the organizational dimension can doom transformational efforts of even
the most erudite and committed service entrepreneurs.
Questions surrounding the gap between the challenges and outcomes of military
transformation lie at the heart of this study. Under which conditions can innovation
take root within a service, transforming the ways that it organizes to fight wars?
How are discontinuous leaps in military forms realized within an organizational
context that generally places a premium on continuity? How can proponents of
military innovation effectively circumvent behavioral and cultural barriers within
respective military services? Must they pursue administrative strategies to overcome
1 See for example recent studies that highlight specific organizational attributes
for change, such as Williamson Murray and MacGregor Knox, “The Future Behind US,”
in MacGregor Knox and Williamson Murray, ed., The Dynamics of Military Organization,
1350-2050 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001), pp. 175-194; Andrew F.
Krepinevich, Lighting the Path Ahead: Field Exercises and Transformation (Washington,
DC: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, February 2002); Emily O. Goldman,
“Mission Impossible: Organizational Learning in Peacetime,” in Peter Turbowitz, Emily O.
Goldman, and Edward Rhodes, eds. The Politics of Strategic Adjustment: Ideas, Institutions,
and Interests (New York: Columbia University Press, 1997).
Managing Defense Transformation182
the traditional core competency of the service, or should they embrace or coopt
established norms to sustain transformational objectives? Does competition between
and among the services, as well as with a foreign rival, drive transformation or does
the shielding of innovative sub-units hold the key to managerial success? Under
which conditions do military organizations take their cues from external or civilian
actors, not only in terms of recognizing new technological possibilities or political
directives, but with respect to administering intra-service change?
To date the empirical and scholarly literatures on military innovation have been
plagued by at least two fundamental shortcomings that render them incomplete
at addressing these questions. First, extant explanations typically account for the
introduction not diffusion of new ways of war within a military organization. They
traditionally feature precipitating factors for change without fully addressing the
subsequent process of institutionalizing transformation.2 The latter is especially
problematic, given that there are distributional costs within hierarchical military
organizations associated with implementing new ways of war that can form
strong barriers to sustaining necessary change. A second significant deficiency of
this research stems from the treatment of the collective meaning and normative
imperatives for change as clear-cut and readily embraced by those assigned to
supervise and implement service transformation. Yet, service entrepreneurs often
lack expertise to fully comprehend the meaning of change and must gain institutional
support even before a revolutionary idea is wholly envisioned. Implementing offices
too must proceed without clear directives along a nebulous path of exploration. As
demonstrated in this study, successful transformation hinges upon the effectiveness
at striking a delicate balance between powerful winners and losers of change within
an organization. This must be accomplished within functional and normative
organizational settings that constrain the activity of policy entrepreneurs that
champion such change in the first place.
This book offers a first cut at systematically filling these voids by advancing
an argument premised on recent insights from the study of institutional delegation
and oversight. Specifically, we posit a modified principal-agent framework that
treats the process of administering military change as an intra-organizational issue.
In brief, military transformation is the product of strategic interaction between
service entrepreneurs, serving as the principals who decide new general directions
and how to monitor them, and their sub-units, or agents that possess the expertise
and responsibility for refining and carrying out innovative practices. A military
organization’s success at diffusing and assimilating novel technologies, strategies,
tactics, and procedures into a new way of war depends on the harmonization of
incentives among these principals and agents. This convergence is a function of
managerial choices for aligning internal incentives for change with the service’s
established operating core via procedures for delegating authority, monitoring the
2 Legro presents a partial exception to this general rule. Yet even this analysis
relegates the process of institutionalizing change to an indeterminate, contingent political
battle between previously marginalized concepts and their supporters. Jeffrey W. Legro, “The
Transformation of Ideas,” American Journal of Political Science 44:3 (July 2000), pp. 425-
426.
Conclusion 183
fulfillment of organizational objectives, and punishing non-compliant sub-units.
Conversely, the more that interests diverge, the more costly it is to make sure that
directives for change will be followed, and the easier it is for subordinates to resist
change. However, given that the intrinsic uncertainty of defining innovative ways of
war exacerbates gaps in expertise and incentives even within tightly administered
programs, we supplement the traditional procedural approach to supervising change
by featuring the instrumental role of managerial norms. By framing novel technologies
and concepts consistent with service traditions of problem-solving, entrepreneurs
can forge new common knowledge to reinforce material incentives for honing and
sustaining change. Thus, the key to understanding military transformation rests with
organizational forms that do not place a premium on commanders to micromanage
the process of radical change, and that do not vest subordinates with strong incentives
or inclinations to shirk new responsibilities.
We tested these general propositions in four classic case studies of successful
and unsuccessful military transformation that highlighted institutional procedures
and managerial norms as integral to affecting the agency costs of supervising
revolutionary changes. The purpose in each case was not to uncover new empirical
data, as much as to take direct and systematic aim at the rich historical record of
sustained and failed military innovation in light of this alternative explanation for
managerial success. This was pursued with an eye towards illuminating possible
parallels and extracting general guidelines for consolidating military transformation
today and in the future. What ensues, therefore, is a brief summary of the findings
as they pertain to conceptualizing both the problem and organizational challenges
associated with military change. This is followed by discussion of the implications
of our historical analysis for devising an administrative blueprint to match the
technological and strategic imperatives for meeting the challenges of the latest
revolution in military affairs (RMA).
Re-thinking Military Transformation
We began this study by suggesting that military transformation is fundamentally
an organizational affair. Success is measured in terms of the capacity of a service
to sustain and hone the integration of new technologies, strategies, operations of
warfare. This entails not only introducing, but vigilantly institutionalizing innovation.
By contrast, failure pertains to the discrepancy between the potential value offered
by the introduction of technological or operational innovations and the level to
which this potential is embraced and institutionalized within a military organization.
A service can actively strive to subvert new initiatives either by hijacking the
uncertain path of exploration or colluding with other opponents of transformation.
In between these polar responses are a variety of actions that range from hedging to
meet minimum requirements for change, to retarding the integration of individual
policy dimensions. This continuum of success and failure is distinct from the
ability to produce a new weapon, devise a new doctrine, or achieve victory on the
battlefield. Rather, transformation is a managerial issue that reflects an organization’s
Managing Defense Transformation184
proficiency at creating and integrating lasting structures and procedures appropriate
to fully exploiting new technologies and operational innovations.
Using the continuum of service responses to innovation as the main point of
departure, we generated a novel set of findings for social science theorizing about
managing military transformation. One central finding confirms that radical change
can be effectively administered from within an organization. In all of the cases,
the degree of success was determined largely by how policy entrepreneurs chose to
manage strategic interaction among different levels of service hierarchy, irrespective
of the intensity and scope of external shock and civilian intervention, or character of
national political or societal institutions. By the same token, we contend that long-
standing service cultures and substantive frames need not be reconstructed for defense
planners to build the organizational capacity to solve new problems and sharpen new
solutions. Whether major military transformation can occur is contingent upon how
closely service entrepreneurs embrace accepted problem-solving norms to reinforce
material incentives, bolstering common knowledge and trust in the exploration of
alternative forms of warfare.
Second, the study commends reconsideration of sequential understandings of
the interplay between changing interests and ideas and its impact on the diffusion
of military innovation. Our findings reveal transformation to be a function of the
synergy between incentive- and normative-based oversight mechanisms. By re-
conceptualizing military change beyond the stale success/failure dichotomy, the
agency framework explicates a continuum of vigilance/hedging/foot-dragging/
sabotage that begins to capture the rich variation of responses to the introduction
of potentially new ways of war even when imposed from outside of the service. It
demonstrates that certain combinations of material incentives and managerial norms
are likely to align motives for exploration up and down a military service; other
combinations are likely to discourage coordination or to provoke open resistance.
A third central finding is that a modified principal-agent framework can
bridge insights from both the material-functional and cognitive-cultural strains of
organizational theory with the specific requirements and challenges of orchestrating
change in military technology, strategy, and forms. Although there are deep affinities
between respective literatures, as each is concerned with explaining organizational
change, none of them systematically elucidates the administrative processes and
choices that guide strategic interaction within military hierarchies. This can be
redressed by treating transformation as the product of strategic interaction among
different levels of hierarchy within an organization. Military organizations, in
particular, are run by commanders who set doctrinal, strategic, operational, tactical,
and procurement objectives; and sub-units that are responsible for implementing
these tasks. The success of a modern military depends on these levels operating
in unison, thus permitting the smooth implementation of recognized new ways of
war. The problem, however, is that there are information asymmetries whereby
commanders know more about what they want and sub-units know more about their
tasks. Furthermore, the separation of responsibilities between the different levels
of hierarchy introduces a natural conflict of interest: sub-units seek to maintain
professional autonomy and are committed to performing their tasks subject to the
constraints imposed by commanders; while commanders are primarily interested in
Conclusion 185
those tasks performed by sub-units that bear directly on their preferred objectives.
These information asymmetries and conflicts of interest are especially problematic
when new tasks are inchoate. As a consequence, there are potentially high agency
costs, with divergent incentives for exploration and exploitation among the different
levels of hierarchy that require realignment. The challenge for sustaining effective
transformation, therefore, is to put in place mechanisms that lower the costs of
monitoring and enforcing change for commanders and that increase the incentives
and inclinations for compliance among sub-units. Applying this framework, we then
identify how certain procedural and normative techniques used for oversight in civilian
bureaucracies can be imported successfully to manage military organizations, despite
vastly different corporate cultures, missions, structures, and task environments.
Confronting the Challenges of the RMA
Insight into the process of managing defense transformation is as important as ever,
as recent years have witnessed the rapid emergence and diffusion of information
technologies that hold promise for quantum leaps in military effectiveness.
Technological advances that allow military forces to network sensors, weapons, and
command and control systems offer new opportunities for striking targets deeper,
faster, and with more precision and lethality than historically contemplated. At the
crux of the current RMA are increasingly powerful information-processing and
communications systems that can collect and distribute data with unprecedented
speed and effectiveness. The results are dramatic improvements in the quantity and
quality of information available for modern military services to collect, synthesize,
process, and disseminate that, in turn, require them to alter fundamentally the ways
in which they are organized for waging war.3
The opportunity for radical military change has not been lost on the leadership
of the U.S. national security establishment. Even before entering office, candidate
George W. Bush joined previous presidents by espousing the virtues of the RMA
to meet the demands of the information age and shifting post-Cold War strategic
landscape. Upon entering office in 2001, the new Bush Administration embraced
a “transformation agenda” with the aim of selectively modernizing and “skipping
a generation” of technology to ensure that the U.S. Armed Forces “move beyond
marginal improvements to harness new technologies that will support a new strategy.”4
3 See especially Thomas Mahnken and Barry Watts, “What the Gulf War Can (and
Cannot) Tell Us About the Future of Warfare,” International Security (Fall 1997); Thomas
Mahnken, “Transforming the U.S. Armed Forces: Rhetoric or Reality,” Naval War College
Review 54:3 (Spring 2001), pp. 85-99; John Garstka, “Network Centric Warfare: An Overview
of an Emerging Theory,” Phalanx (December 2000). www.mors.org/Pubs/phalanx/dec00/
featrure.htm; and interview with Vice Admiral Arthur K. Cebrowski, who until early 2005
served as the Pentagon’s Director of the Office of Force Transformation, in Samantha L.
Quigley, “Facing the Future: Transformation Means Making New Rules,” American Forces
Informational Service, 4 April 2005.
4 For George W Bush’s pre- and early post-electoral statements on military
transformation see especially “Speech on Defense Policy,” The Citadel, Charleston South
Managing Defense Transformation186
This commitment was codified in Secretary of Defense Donald Rumsfeld’s preface
to the 2001 Quadrennial Defense Review (QDR) that declared transformation “not
as a goal for tomorrow, but an endeavor that must be embraced in earnest today.”5
This was matched subsequently by standing up new offices under the Secretary
of Defense, such as the Office of Force Transformation, Joint Forces Command,
and the Unmanned Aerial Vehicles (UAV) Joint Task Force with explicit mandates
to formulate and coordinate “transformational” approaches to warfare across the
services.
Adding substance to the zeal, the leadership in the Pentagon moved decisively
to feature military transformation in successive annual defense budgets. Aggregate
outlays for research and development (R&D) projected for FY2001-FY2009 were
robust and increasing, with spending in FY2005 alone reaching the highest level ever
at 28 percent above FY 1987, the Cold War apogee for defense R&D. Consistent with
the emphasis placed on taking risks on bringing new systems on line, funding levels
allocated for the period call for front loading increases on R&D through FY2008, after
which tradeoffs will be made in favor of enhanced spending on the procurement of
these newly developed systems. Since 2001, the administration also made concerted
efforts to reduce funding or cancel altogether several acquisitions programs based on
traditional platforms, such as the Army’s Crusader artillery system and Comanche
helicopter, while boosting acquisition of potentially revolutionary systems, including
UAVs and several new classes of surface combatant ships, as well as increasing
R&D on a family of future programs, such as light and lethal future combat vehicles
for the Army.6 The commitment to transformation was reaffirmed by the results of
the 2006 QDR that placed emphasis on increasing by one-third the number of active
duty Special Operations Forces battalions and accelerating development of a new
long-range/loiter strike system tailored specifically to meeting the asymmetrical and
irregular challenges of future warfare.7
Nor did the call for transformation fall on deaf ears within the services, as each
drafted an ambitious program for leveraging new technologies to transform the
way that it fights. The Army, for example, designated two brigades as exemplars
for exploring and testing new concepts and organizational structures as part of its
planned high-tech Future Combat System.8 The Navy, in turn, embraced the concept
of network-centric warfare, with the aim of using information technologies to link
up personnel, ships, aircraft, air-defense, and installations into a series of local-
and wide-area networks capable of rapidly processing information and delivering
Carolina, SC, 23 September 1999; and New York Times, 14 February 2001.
5 Department of Defense, Quadrennial Defense Review Report (Washington, DC:
Department of Defense, 30 September 2001), p. IV.
6 See especially Steven Kosiak, Analysis of the FY 2006 Defense Budget Request
(Washington, DC: Center for Strategic Budgetary Assessments, 2005). Though aggregate
funding levels for defense R&D steadily increased during this period, the percentage of change
varied, with a record rise in FY2005 and a slight relative decline (1.2 percent) requested for
FY2006.
7 Department of Defense, 2006 Quadrennial Defense Review Report (Washington,
DC: Department of Defense, 6 February 2006).
8 U.S. Army White Paper 2002.
Conclusion 187
precision strikes. It also initiated the “Streetfighter” project intended to garner new
capabilities and operational concepts for fighting in littoral waters defended by
anti-access/area-denial forces.9 Similarly, the Air Force seriously began to explore
the use of UAVs to perform a variety of missions ranging from reconnaissance to
combat roles including long-range precision strikes, air defense suppression, and
counter-terrorist attacks. The Marines too signed on to the transformation agenda
by working closely with the Navy to form a new “Expeditionary Strike Group,”
combining fast-moving ships, troops, and weaponry in a way that breaks with
tradition in both services. Within each branch strategically situated champions of
transformation emerged to articulate coherent programmatic objectives and visions
to guide respective changes in procurement, doctrine, and organization.
Nevertheless, the drive for transformation encountered significant organizational
obstruction from the outset, leading many to predict failure as inevitable. Despite the
rise in aggregate budgetary outlays, allocations reflected ambivalent priorities for
change, as legacy systems continued to receive the lion’s share of respective R&D
appropriations. The Pentagon’s Science and Technology budget, which contains the
most direct R&D spending on transformational systems, was cut from 2004-2006,
and in FY06 increased over real outlays in FY2001 by only a modest 7 percent
compared to the overall 50 percent rise in R&D spending. These S&T allocations
also paled in comparison to the growth in spending on legacy programs via the
systems development and demonstration (SDD) budget that in FY06 alone jumped
to 112 percent of the same expenditures in FY2001.10 Furthermore, the 2006 QDR
continued to give budgetary priority to programs better suited for traditional warfare
(e.g. the Army’s Future Combat System and F-35 Joint Strike Fighter), at the risk of
starving long-term procurement for potentially revolutionary programs (including
a new long-range/loiter strike aircraft). Thus, despite the welter of attention to
transformation since 2000, the U.S. Armed Forces remained on track to confront a
“significant mismatch between long-term force structure, modernization plans, and
budgetary priorities.”11
Similarly, the services failed to match rhetoric with dramatic action. Despite
claims of embracing new ways of war, all of the services exhibited collective
resistance to revolutionary changes in procurement and organization. Although
combat experience in Afghanistan and Iraq gave new impetus to pursuing new
organization forms, experimental units, and joint field operations, the commitment
by each service to such innovations remained uncertain. Within the Air Force, for
example, traditional fighter aircraft continued to receive consistently larger outlays
compared to prospective transformational unmanned systems, notwithstanding the
9 See especially Vice Admiral Arthur A. Cebrowski and Captain Wayne P. Hughes,
Jr., “Rebalancing the Fleet,” Naval Institute Proceedings (November 1999); and Ronald
O’Rourke, Navy Network-Centric Warfare Concept: Key Programs and Issues for Congress
(Washington, DC: Congressional Research Service Report for Congress, June 6, 2001).
10 Kosiak (2005), pp. 21-22; and Steven Kosiak, FY 2004 Defense R&D Request Raises
Questions About Administration’s Approach to Transformation (Washington, DC: Center for
Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, February 2003).
11 Steven M. Kosiak, Analysis of the FY 2007 Defense Budget Request (Washington,
DC: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, April 2006), p. 2.
Managing Defense Transformation188
limitations to tactical airpower exposed by the warfighting experience in Afghanistan
and Iraq.12 Such behavior raised concerns about the commitment to transformation
that will inevitably become magnified as forces and resources continue to be stretched
thin, and as each service confronts difficult budgetary and procurement trade-offs in
the future.
Administrative gaps in oversight lie at the crux of the problem. Notwithstanding
the political and budgetary support for discontinuous change among the senior
echelons of civilian and military leadership, the enthusiasm seems to diminish below
the surface within each service. Information asymmetries and divergent interests
among service sub-units pull at the seams of the Pentagon’s current attempts to
alter the shape of the organizations that wage war. “Roadmaps” for change typically
elaborate lofty goals for inter-service standardization or intra-service innovative
practices without clearly delineating responsibility among newly created offices,
constraining sub-unit autonomy, or specifying promotional and material incentives
for performing new joint or transformational operations.13 Compounding the
problem are expectations within the services that the institutionalization of radical
change will exacerbate agency costs, as flatter organizational forms it is feared will
increase incentives for interventionist, top-down management and will encourage
unrestricted jurisdictional poaching among disoriented services that are left in search
of new missions. For some, therefore, the cure of transformation is viewed with
skepticism and seen to be potentially worse than the problem of inefficiency at
realizing technological opportunities.14
Added is tremendous confusion over the meaning of and affinities for the RMA.
In the Navy, for example, there are numerous and conflicting definitions of network-
centric warfare. As observed by an official on the front lines of promoting this
new approach to warfare, existing attitudes and anxiety concerning the operational
difficulties imposed by flattened command structures obfuscate appreciation for new
possibilities, and thus lie at the root of much of the resistance to thinking and acting
upon change within the service.15 Such normative impediments are not unique to
the Navy. As revealed in a recent study of officer attitudes, much of the resistance
12 Despite the fact that in 1993 the Pentagon issued plans to purchase 2500 UAVs, by
2003 the military had only 164 tactical UAVs (included armed systems), equivalent to only
one percent of the piloted aircraft (fixed and rotary) in the force. Moreover, spending per
annum on UAVs constituted less than 20 percent of the amount allocated for developing the
new manned F-35 Joint Strike Fighter. Furthermore, the 2006 QDR called for terminating the
J-UCAS unmanned combat system. Elizabeth Bone and Christopher Bolckom, Unmanned
Aerial Vehicles: Background and Issues for Congress (Washington, DC: Congressional
Research Service, 25 April 2003), pp. 7-10; and Koziak (2005), p. 23.
13 This critique is especially apropos to both the UAV Roadmap and the Naval
Transformation Roadmap. See especially critque in U.S. General Accounting Office, Force
Structure: Improved Strategic Planning Can Enhance DoD’s Unmanned Aerial Vehicles
Efforts, GAO-04-342 (Washington, DC: March 2004).
14 Elizabeth A. Stanley-Mitchell, “Technology’s Double-Edged Sword: The Case of
US Army Battlefield Digitization,” Defense Analysis 17:3 (December 2001), pp. 267-288.
15 D. Onley, “Net-Centric Approach Proven In Iraq,” Government Computer News
23:10 (2003).
Conclusion 189
to transformation stems from profound uncertainty both across and within the
services over the basic “character and depth of change required for the U.S. military
to compete effectively.” The result is an ongoing “dialogue of the deaf” between
the proponents of advancing transformation and a large percentage of the officer
corps within each service that remains ambivalent about the meaning, priority, and
impact of the RMA.16 Much of the confusion and misunderstanding is reinforced
by service norms that militate against the acceptance of new mission areas. The Air
Force, for example, is typically accused of suffering from the normative blinders
imposed by the “white scarf syndrome” that elevates the prestige of pilots who fly in
harm’s way, while denigrating the skills of unmanned operators who use “joysticks,
pedals, and keyboards.”17 Absent a concerted effort to redress competing normative
paradigms for manning, operating, and developing UAVs, it is expected that the
Air Force will stymie transformation by “loading it down with cultural innuendos
and inaccurate comparisons between manned and unmanned aircraft.”18 As summed
up by one prominent military historian, the culture dominant within each military
service constitutes “the greatest cause for alarm,” as each fails to put a premium on
“learning from history” or inculcating appreciation for debate and embracing the
process of clarifying and sustaining change.19
By the same token, agency costs have continued to bedevil the U.S. Army’s
transformation to meet future requirements for counterinsurgency. Decisionmaking
for the 2003 invasion of Iraq, for example, was characterized by intrusive civilian
micromanagement of force levels that both alienated service commanders and
contributed directly to weak oversight of post-war planning.20 Furthermore, the
service’s counterinsurgency command structure in Iraq replicated many of the
administrative problems confronted in Vietnam. For example, the Multinational
Force Iraq command (MNF-I), with its ancillary corps and Marine units, remained
16 Thomas Mahnken and James R. FitzSimonds, “The Limits of Transformation:
Officer Attitudes towards the Revolution in Military Affairs,” Newport Paper #18 (October
2004); available at www.nwc.navy.mil/press/napapers/nplist.htm.
17 Los Angeles Times, 14 May 2000; and Mahnken (2001), pp. 85-99. On the vexing
challenges imposed by the organizational culture of the USAF, see especially Carl Builder,
Icarus Syndrome: The Role of Air Power Theory in the Evolution and Fate of the U.S. Air
Force (New York: Transaction Publishers, 1994).
18 Wall Street Journal, 12 October 1999. On the normative rub between manned versus
unmanned performance, manning, operational, and development models, see especially Adam
N. Stulberg, “Managing the Unmanned Revolution in the U.S. Air Force,” Orbis 51:2 (Spring
2007), pp. 251-266.
19 Williamson Murray, “Thinking About Innovation,” Naval War College Review
(Spring 2001) www.nwc.navy.mil/press/Review/2001/Spring/art9-sp1.htm.
20 See Michael Gordon and Bernard Trainor, Cobra II: The Inside Story of the
Invasion and Occupation of Iraq, (New York: Pantheon, 2006); and Thomas Ricks, Fiasco:
The American Military Adventure in Iraq, (New York: Penguin, 2006). In particular, the
Secretary of Defense’s micromanagement of planning below the brigade level was the cause
of conspicuous acrimony with the service. This was accentuated by the Secretary’s public
rebuke of Chief of Staff Shinseki, his replacement of Shinseki with Peter Schoomaker, who
had already retired, and abrupt dismissal of Army Secretary Thomas White.
Managing Defense Transformation190
technically subordinate to Central Command (CENTCOM), just as MACV was
subordinate to PACOM. The U.S. Ambassador to Iraq and the commander of MNF-I
retained the same division of labor and responsibility as the Ambassador to Vietnam
and COMUSMACV. While the Goldwater-Nichols Act and its subsequent evolution
ameliorated some of the challenges of coordinating air power from different services
by creating a single manager for most tactical aviation (the Coalition Forces Air
Component Commander), new entities emerged to complicate organizational
arrangements, including the proliferation of independent special operations task
forces dedicated to hunting so-called “high value” targets. Compounding the
procedural problems has been lingering uncertainty over standardized metrics for
counterinsurgency, resulting in confusion over appropriate nuanced and detailed
“atmospherics” for guiding action at lower levels.21
The persistence of these organizational challenges raises the following questions:
How serious are the problems? Can such dysfunctional intra-service procedures and
normative templates be redressed from within, or should the Pentagon clutch to a
“top-down” approach to expediting extra-organizational administration and outside
intervention? What implications can be drawn from the rich history of success and
failure that may illuminate paths towards striking new balances between exploration
and exploitation in service efforts at managing transformation in the information
age?
Back to the Future: Managing Transformation
Evidence from the comparative case studies in this book suggest that there is room
for cautious optimism regarding the prospects for internally directed military
transformation. Organizational barriers are neither intrinsic nor insurmountable.
What is required, as revealed by our modified principal-agent framework, is
perseverance at crafting a transformation strategy that blends continuity with change.
All four historical cases demonstrated that radical change can take-off or founder
amid conservative organizational leadership and cultures, and that the difference
comes from lodging new ways of war both procedurally and normatively within
the existing set of service institutions. By speaking to a service’s core competency,
service entrepreneurs can use traditional mechanisms to their advantage for inducing
military organizations to explore novel concepts and procedures. Failure to do so,
however, can come at a steep cost of resistance to innovative forms and methods.
Avoidance of these undesirable outcomes and success at turning institutional
constraints into an advantage for organizational change necessitates developing a
managerial strategy that adheres to six core guidelines.
21 See discussion in Austin Long, On “Other War”: Lessons from Five Decades of
RAND Counterinsurgency Research MG-482 (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 2006).
Conclusion 191
Manage transformation from within the services by creating clear lines of authority
among supervisory and implementing offices
One lesson derived from all four cases points to the marginal effectiveness of creating
an extra-service executive committee charged directly with overseeing change across
the services. Such offices are prone to fostering both administrative confusion and
disincentives for transformation. Outsiders are traditionally granted only limited
access to service structures and resources, as well as tend to provoke professional
resistance, that together lead to burying transformative ideas and cannibalizing new
agendas. Transformation was spurned in both the U.S. Army counterinsurgency
and British armor cases by confused lines of reporting both outside and within the
respective service. Within the U.S. Army, the Special Forces Directorate lacked
discrete authority and had to compete against commanders of the “regular” forces
to supervise counterinsurgency training. Furthermore, the U.S. Army Special Forces
charged with conducting counterinsurgency field operations in Vietnam were ill
served by the division of command authority between the U.S. Army, Vietnam and
the Commander, U.S. Military Assistance Command, Vietnam (COMUSMACV).
Operating under the COMUSMACV, Special Forces were virtually orphaned within
the theater and effectively divorced from the supervision of Special Forces Office
at the Pentagon. The COMUSMACV, charged with controlling and coordinating all
combat action in Vietnam (except carrier-based and strategic air support), was both
preoccupied and directly responsible for conducting offensive strikes against the
enemy, and had neither the resources nor expertise to oversee the counter-insurgency
mission. Similarly, innovations in British tank warfare and combined armed
operations were stymied by the rampant power-sharing and diffused administrative
structure of the Army Council and General Staff that diluted operational authority
of the commander of the Army and that institutionalized consensual and risk-averse
decisionmaking among senior military and civilian leaders within the War Office. The
confusion was compounded by the British Army’s regimental system of decentralized
but isolated units, the adherence to the Cardwell system of creating parallel units at
home and abroad, the orphaning of the tank corps outside of the regular divisional
structure (eliminating opportunities for joint training and experimentation), the
absence of formal links to mechanized infantry, and the fragmentation of the design
and development process for armored technologies. Even when entrepreneurial
commanders were ceded command authority over armored formations, divided
responsibilities and reporting requirements, coupled with the lack of staff support,
diminished their ability to supervise developments in tank units or to develop well-
integrated combined arms doctrine and operations.
Conversely, integrating the agency of change within a service provides incentives
for change as well as a vehicle for monitoring developments within a service. This
was reflected in the U.S. carrier case, as decisions to avoid hiving-off the Bureau of
Aeronautics (BurAer) from the Navy, either by appending it to the Air Force or by
orphaning it as a separate agency, ensured that naval personnel had a direct stake in
pursuing the carriers. Similarly, innovation with German armor gained traction from
the fluid and direct interaction between the Weapons Office and Branch Inspectorates
within the German Army.
Managing Defense Transformation192
Reward champions of innovation via traditional service lines of promotion and
career paths
Rather than establishing new posts to reward and empower proponents of innovation,
the study confirms that the incentive for exploration rests critically upon assuring
access to mainstream promotion boards and officer assignments. The proponents
of transformation can excel when respective risk-taking efforts create opportunities
to rise to senior leadership positions within the service. In the U.S. carrier case, the
combination of bonus payments for hazardous air duty and the assignment of a rear
admiral billet ensured that promotion to the newly established Commander, Aircraft
Squadrons, Battle Fleet would unambiguously further an officer’s career within
the Navy. Similarly, successful careers in the Weapons Office paved the way for
promotions to coveted positions in respective Branch Inspectorates or line commander
postings in the German military. In both episodes, respective entrepreneurs were
reassured that their exploits would not be held against them within their own service,
and that their success would bring them closer, both professionally and institutionally,
to their commanders.
By contrast, divorcing success and linking failure to traditional promotional
positions tends to stymie transformation. In the British armor case, the institutional
uncertainty discouraged officers from making a career in the Tank Corps. Even
with the formation of the Royal Tank Corps as a separate branch of the Army,
senior officers were transferred from other branches (with no experience in armor)
that effectively precluded advancement for the early champions of the tank. The
incentives for innovation did not improve over time, as promotion both within the
branch and up through the service was determined largely by seniority, regimental
peculiarities, and versatility at serving at home and within the imperial ranks rather
than by specialization. The disincentives were underscored by the creation of the
Royal Armor Corps, consisting of both mechanized and armored units, that gave a leg
up to officers with extensive cavalry experience, and by the institutional constraints
on conducting well-coordinated, combined training exercises. Although several
tank enthusiasts were promoted to senior Army ranks during the period, their rise
occurred almost in spite of (rather than because of) their affiliation or performance
working with tanks. The predicament was equally discouraging for the proponents of
counterinsurgency within the U.S. Army. Special Forces lacked a potent constituency
within the service, as officers were virtually ostracized for championing counter-
insurgency. Only “generalists” were promoted to the command billet responsible for
overseeing counterinsurgency operations, and most officers regarded service within
the Special Forces as detrimental to advancement within the Army.
Avoid creating isolated, ad hoc procedural mechanisms
Managerial success also requires that informal bodies created to promote
transformation reinforce formal mechanisms of reporting and reward within a service.
As demonstrated in both cases of success, the champions of innovation thrived by
exploiting informal channels to facilitate internal coordination that complemented the
formal chain of command. In the carrier case, a back-channel was created between
Conclusion 193
BurAer, the Fleet, and the Naval War College that expedited the generation and
dissemination of realistic scenarios of future naval warfare. This enabled all three
to work off the same page in terms of structuring and analyzing the implications of
experimental models and fleet exercises. In addition, an informal link was established
between the head of BurAer and the Commander, Aircraft Squadrons, Battle Fleet
that allowed both to focus on the tasks of monitoring respective sub-components
without spawning inefficient bureaucratic or personal rivalry. This coordination was
reinforced by the informal practice of circulating personnel across the bureau-fleet
divide, and by rotating naval aviators to positions outside of the service in academia
and industry.
Conversely, confused lines of authority constitute significant impediments
to sustaining change, as underscored by the two historical cases of failure. While
the champions of innovation tended to establish and exploit informal channels to
facilitate internal coordination and managerial oversight of innovation, they did
so in manners that confounded the formal chain of command. Although President
Kennedy created the position of Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency and
Special Activities (SACSA) to increase the profile and legitimacy of the Army’s
Special Forces, the position both lacked a constituency and circumvented the Special
Forces Command within the service. Consequently and irrespective of personal
differences in counterinsurgency expertise and rapport with the president, successive
advisors were consistently treated as “outsiders” and encountered problems working
within the service. Similarly, the British relied on inconsistent and ad hoc offices to
supplement oversight of tank and armored formations. Yet, each was overtaken by
successive changes in the formal structure, and none of the informal arrangements
were aimed at bridging gaps between the tank command leadership, mechanized
infantry brigades, the makers of doctrine, and the procurement office. The result was
a dearth of horizontal and vertical links between weapons designers, producers and
planners that rendered long-term oversight extremely difficult.
Embrace the managerial norms of a service
What emerges from these classic cases is that prevailing and conservative
organizational cultures are malleable and can be adroitly enlisted to lower the agency
costs of managing transformation. Rather than bludgeoning a cultural change,
service entrepreneurs succeeded by initially framing innovations as consistent with
the dominant strategic beliefs within each service, and then by using respective
“evidentiary standards” to communicate new information that confirmed novel
ideas. Tapping into both accepted strategic missions and rules of evidence gave
service entrepreneurs persuasion power; they acted not only as critics but offered
socially salient solutions to traditional problems that served as common knowledge
amid the uncertainty of preparing for war within the respective services. Aircraft
carriers, for example, were initially proposed as an instrument for fulfilling the
main mission of “fighting across the Pacific,” and as an auxiliary to the dominant
battleship in the U.S. Navy. The orthodox “big gun” club was co-opted ultimately
by demonstrating the potential effectiveness of the carriers in terms that made sense
to them. Specifically, the Navy’s traditional acceptance of technical evidence, culled
Managing Defense Transformation194
from extensive war gaming and fleet exercises, was used to demonstrate gaps between
traditional expectations and the potential payoffs of adopting the carriers. This not
only provided a standard for updating information on the potential effectiveness
of the carriers, but reduced the need for intrusive monitoring among decentralized
sub-units. Similarly, German armor enthusiasts distinguished themselves from
their foreign rivals by effectively tapping into the belief in the value of mobility
and maneuver pervasive within the German Army. This was accomplished by
Seeckt and other service entrepreneurs by leveraging shared normative affinities
for decentralized decisionmaking and technical education. The latter consisted
primarily of accessing long-accepted evidentiary standards of critical assessment
and high error tolerance derived from realistic, open-ended, dynamic, and refereed
war-games and simulations.
By the same token, the classic cases of foot-dragging and sabotage underscored
the decisiveness of enlisting managerial, as opposed to strategic norms. Although the
British Army did not successfully exploit the tank’s operational potential, its failure
cannot be blamed on an overly conservative military leadership that was unable
to envision the utility of army mechanization. Instead, there were long-standing
traditions of top-down command, low error tolerance, and regimental specialization
and fragmentation that militated against operational and tactical flexibility and stifled
initiatives at diffusing innovation across the service. Matters were made significantly
worse, however, by tank enthusiasts who clutched to radical ideas of the superiority
of tank warfare and openly disdained combined arms operations. Diehard tank
theorists had a penchant for promoting massed tank offensives as autonomous
operations without providing objective lessons from history or quantifiable evidence
in support of their iconoclastic claims. In the case of the U.S. Army, there was no clear
service-wide affinity for “pacification,” and the quantitative standards for assessing
combat performance were inappropriate for the management of counterinsurgency
operations. The focus on “body counts,” numbers of sorties, and days in the field
were crude indices that were subject to manipulation and discouraged effective
pacification. The failure of the Special Service pioneers to petition for the indicator
of “battalion days in the field” to apply to population security operations exacerbated
their administrative challenge. In both cases, novel concepts tended to fall on deaf
ears within the service, lacking empathy as well as a constituency. By failing to enlist
the strategic mission or to exploit respective “evidentiary standards” to communicate
new information, to present “new solutions” to old problems, or to “legitimate” novel
ideas within traditional managerial norms, these entrepreneurs and their “radical”
ideas were discredited and lost influence within the mainstream service.
Intensify intra- and inter-service competition, with greater toleration for honest
failures and short-term mission redundancy
The historical cases examined in this study revealed that more not less competition,
both between the services and among sub-units within a service, augurs well for
transformation, especially in those areas involving the development of fungible
technology and sub-components. Such competition can mitigate the inefficiencies
fostered by information asymmetries within a hierarchical military organization by
Conclusion 195
providing indirect, alternative sources of information for entrepreneurs. It also can
create incentives for exploring new capabilities and solving old technical problems.
In the carrier case, inter-service competition with the U.S. Army and Marine Corps
yielded critical information that the proponents within the Navy used to raise the bar
for the development of dive-bombers.
By contrast, the lack of inter-service competition can aggravate inefficiencies
fostered by information asymmetries within military hierarchies by depriving
entrepreneurs of indirect, alternative sources of information. Organizational isolation
can discourage the exploration of new capabilities and resolution of vexing technical
problems. In the U.S. counterinsurgency case, the early effectiveness of the Marines’
Combined Action Program illuminated the prospects for pacification as well as
provided a potential benchmark for assessing the Army’s performance and subsequent
initiatives at “village security” that was woefully ignored. Sub-unit competition
among Special Forces units that were under Army and CIA direction offered insights
into the possible success of counterinsurgency. However, once the Army was put in
charge of planning, evaluating and implementing all counterinsurgency operations,
Special Forces commanders lost an important source of alternative information for
assessing the prospects for unconventional, defensive operations. The managerial
benefits of competition also were lost on the British Army, as the regimental
system created “islands of innovation” that were not transferable across the service.
Furthermore, the resort to ad hoc and irregular training exercises with combined
mechanized infantry and armor units restricted opportunities for assessing heavy
versus light tank operations. When the tank brigade and mechanized cavalry division
were merged in 1937, a virtual all-tank army was created that lacked a doctrine for
massed tank warfare, as well as an intra-service branch for pursuing such forms of
armed warfare.
Rely on extra-military institutions to promote transparency, not intrusive oversight
Outside forces can serve as enablers of internal military transformation. External
actors, including the legislature and industry with independent stakes in promoting
successful innovation, can provide reliable, low cost alternative sources of
information for managing change. While abstaining from the policy game, the
U.S. Congress played an indirect role in facilitating naval transformation by
institutionalizing formal promotional incentives for carrier innovation, and ensuring
that naval aviators would not be orphaned either within the Navy or armed forces
in general. Without intervening directly or mandating the outcome of naval
debates, Congress indirectly smoothed the path for change by rooting out corrupt
practices and fostering an even playing field that provided carrier entrepreneurs
with opportunities to make their case within the Navy. Industry too can be enlisted
to reduce agency costs of managing organization change. Rather than providing a
managerial model to emulate, the private sector served as an independent source of
information regarding the possible application of new technologies. As revealed in
the German study, competition between firms such as MAN, Rheinmetall, Daimler-
benz, and Krupp not only disciplined corporate rivals but provided an important
source of alternative information regarding the technical possibilities for future
Managing Defense Transformation196
tank designs. In the carrier case, the reciprocal flow of information between private
contractors and Navy fostered entrepreneurship on both sides. Close ties with the
commercial aviation industry allowed the champions of carrier aviation to glean
detailed information regarding possible applications of new engine technologies that
were not otherwise provided from within the naval hierarchy. At the same time, once
BurAer decided upon an engine for procurement, it was able to use its contracting
authority to dampen the monopolistic tendencies within industry and to cultivate
commercial support for developing a novel prototype technology that was otherwise
slated to languish.
Conversely, the same external actors can compound the managerial challenge
by providing cover for recalcitrant agents if not rationalized to redress agency
costs. President Kennedy’ enthusiastic support for counterinsurgency alienated
traditionalists within the Army. His penchant for micromanaging the issue also
confounded the task, as he was driven to appoint advisors who were either too
iconoclastic or mainstream to successfully “sell” counter-insurgency within the
service. In the British armor case, the Treasury’s line-item veto power significantly
stripped the Army of important authority to shape its force structure and to procure
critical wireless communication and new tank designs. These administrative troubles
were compounded by strict adherence to the consensual decisionmaking rule within
the War Office that imposed a bias towards continuity and acceptance of the lowest
common denominator in overseeing changes in the Army.
In conclusion, this book underscores the false dichotomy between incremental
and radical change, and the practical pay-offs of orchestrating synergy between
material incentives and subjective understandings of military transformation. Given
the inherent uncertainty of innovation, it is too much to expect that organizational
entrepreneurs can know precisely what they want or can impose a coherent program
to get there. What matters, however, is that those responsible for overseeing and
implementing military transformation share incentives and inclinations to search out
novel solutions to meet the challenges that unfold. Consequently, success at embracing
the new RMA confronting the U.S. military may not require the coalescence of
a new vision of future warfare, overturning traditional service cultures, or arrival
of an enlightened cohort with streamlined access to the senior military leadership.
Rather, it might make more sense to champion administrative reforms from within
the services, creatively exploiting accepted metrics and introducing procedural
mechanisms to allow intra-organizational interests and ideas to converge in pursuit
of an open-ended transformation agenda.
Bibliography
Addington, Larry H., The Blitzkrieg Era and the German General Staff 1865-1945
(New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press, 1971).
Alchian, Armen and Harold Demsetz, “Production, Information Costs, and Economic
Organization,” American Economic Review 62 (December 1972), pp. 777-795.
Allen, George, None So Blind: A Personal Account of the Intelligence Failure in
Vietnam (Chicago: Ivan R. Dee, 2001).
Arquilla, John and David Ronfeldt, (eds.), In Athena’s Camp (Santa Monica, CA:
RAND, 1997).
Avant, Political Institutions and Military Change: Lessons From Peripheral Wars
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1994).
Axelrod, Robert M. and Michael D. Cohen, Harnessing Complexity: Organizational
Implications of a Scientific Frontier (New York: Free Press, 1999).
Bacevich, Andrew, The Pentomic Era (Washington, D.C.: National Defense
University Press, 1986).
Beard, Edmund, Developing the ICBM (New York: Columbia University Press,
1976).
Biddle, Stephen, Military Power: Explaining Victory and Defeat in Modern Battle
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2004).
Bidwell, Shelford and Dominick Graham, Firepower: British Army Weapons and
Theories of War, 1904-1945 (Boston, MA: George Allen & Unwin, 1982).
Blaker, James R., Understanding the Revolution in Military Affairs: A Guide to
America’s 21st Century (Washington, D.C.: Progressive Policy Institute, 1997).
Blaufarb, Douglas, The Counterinsurgency Era (New York: The Free Press, 1977).
Bond, Brian, British Military Policy Between the Two World Wars (New York, NY:
Clarendon Press-Oxford, 1980).
Bone, Elizabeth and Christopher Bolckom, Unmanned Aerial Vehicles: Background
and Issues for Congress (Washington, DC: Congressional Research Service, 25
April 2003).
Bowie, Christopher J., Robert Haffa, and Robert E. Mullins, Future War: What
Trends in America’s Post-Cold War Military Conflicts Tell Us About Early 21st
Century Warfare (Washington, DC: Northrup Grumman Analytical Center Paper,
2003).
Brehm, John and Scott Gates, Working, Shirking, and Sabotage: Bureaucratic
Response to a Democratic Public (Ann Arbor: The University of Michigan Press,
1997).
Brown, Michael, Andrew May, and Matthew Slater, “Defeat Mechanisms: Military
Organizations as Complex, Adaptive, Nonlinear Systems,” SAIC Document N.
00-6960+SAC (10 March 2000).
Managing Defense Transformation198
Builder, Carl, Icarus Syndrome: The Role of Air Power Theory in the Evolution and
Fate of the U.S. Air Force (New York: Transaction Publishers, 1994).
Burdick, Eugene and William Lederer, The Ugly American (New York: W.W. Norton,
1958).
Cameron, Craig M., American Samurai: Myth, Imagination, and the Conduct of
Battle in the First Marine Division, 1941-1951 (Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press, 1998).
Cebrowski, Arthur A. and Captain Wayne P. Hughes, Jr., “Rebalancing the Fleet,”
Naval Institute Proceedings (November 1999).
Chisholm, Donald, Waiting for Dead Men’s Shoes: Origins and Development of the
U.S. Navy’s Officer Personnel System, 1793-1941 (Stanford: Stanford University
Press, 2001).
Chwe, Michael Suk-Young, Rational Ritual (Princeton: Princeton University Press,
2001).
Citino, Robert M., The Path to Blitzkrieg (Boulder, CO: Lynne Rienner Publishers,
1999).
Clegg, Stewart, Cynthia Hardy, Walter R. Nord, (eds.), Handbook of Organizational
Studies (London: SAGE Publications, 1996).
Clutterbuck, Richard, The Long Long War (New York: Praeger, 1966).
Cohen, Eliot A., “A Revolution in Warfare?”, Foreign Affairs 75 (March/April
1996).
______, Supreme Command: Soldiers, Statesmen and Leadership in Wartime (New
York: Free Press, 2002).
______ and John Gooch, Military Misfortunes: The Anatomy of Failure in War
(NewYork: The Free Press, 1991).
Cohen, Michael D. and Lee S. Sproull (eds.), Organizational Learning, (London:
Sage Publications, 1996).
Coletta, E. and Bernarr B. Coletta, Admiral William A. Moffett and U.S. Naval
Aviation (Lewiston, UK: the Edwin Meller Press, 1997).
Cook, Scott D. N. and Dvora Yanow, “Culture and Organizational Learning,” Journal
of Management Inquiry 2:4 (December 1993).
Cooper, Malcolm, “Blueprint for Confusion: The Administrative Background to the
Formation of the Royal Air Force, 1912-1919,” Journal of Contemporary History
22:3 (July 1987).
Corum, James S, “A Clash of Military Cultures: German & French Approaches to
Technology Between the World Wars.” (Defenselink Joint Doctrine Electronic
Library; Online, 1994).
______, The Luftwaffe: Creating the Operational Air War, 1918-1940 (Lawrence,
KS: University Press of Kansas, 1997).
______, The Roots of Blitzkrieg, (Lawrence, KS: University Press of Kansas 1992).
Cosmas, Graham A. and Lt. Col. Terrence R Murray, U.S. Marines in Vietnam:
Vietnamization and Redeployment 1970-1971 (Washington, D.C.: History and
Museums Division, Headquarters, USMC, 1986).
Coulam, Robert and Richard Smith (eds.), Advances in Information Processing in
Organizations (Greenwich, CT: JAI Press, 1985).
Craig, Gordon, The Politics of the Prussian Army (London : Oxford University
Bibliography 199
Press,1955).
Currey, Cecil, Self-Destruction: The Disintegration and Decay of the United States
Army During the Vietnam Era (New York : W.W. Norton, 1981).
Davis, Vincent, The Politics of Innovation: Patterns in Navy Cases (Monograph
Series in World Affairs, n.3, University of Denver, 1967).
Davis, Stanley, Managing Corporate Cultures (Cambridge: Ballinger Press, 1984).
Dawkins, Peter, “The United States Army and the ‘Other War’ in Vietnam,” (Ph.D.
dissertation, Princeton University, 1979).
Department of Defense, Quadrennial Defense Review Report (Washington, D.C.:
Department of Defense, 30 September 2001).
_______, 2006 Quadrennial Defense Review Report (Washington, D.C.: Department
of Defense, 6 February 2006).
DiNardo, R.L. Germany’s Panzer Arm (Westport, CT: Greeenwood Press, 1997).
Doyle, Michael K., “The U.S. Navy and War Plan Orange, 1933-1940: Making
Necessity a Virtue,” Naval War College Review (May-June 1980).
Drezner, Daniel W., “Ideas, Brueacratic Politics, and the Crafting of Foreign Policy,”
American Journal of Political Science 44:4 (October 2000), pp. 733-749.
Eden, Lynn, Whole World on Fire: Organizations, Knowledge, and Nuclear
Devastation (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2004).
Enthoven, Alain and K. Wayne Smith, How Much is Enough? Shaping the Defense
Program 1961-1969 (New York: Harper & Row, 1971).
Evans, Michael, “Fabrizio’s Choice: Organizational Change and the Revolution in
Military Affairs Debate,” National Security Studies Quarterly 7:1 (Winter 2001),
pp. 8-10.
Ewell, Julian and Ira Hunt, Sharpening the Combat Edge: The Use of Analysis to
Reinforce Military Judgment (Washington, D.C.: Center for Military History,
1974).
Fall, Bernard, Street Without Joy (Harrisburg, PA: Stackpole Books; Harrisburg,
1957).
Farrell, Theo and Terry Terriff (eds.), The Sources of Military Change: Culture,
Politics, and Technology (Boulder: Lynne Reinner Publishers, 2002).
Fautua, David T., “The ‘Long Pull’ Army: NSC 68, the Korean War and the Creation
of the Cold War U.S. Army,” Journal of Military History 61:1 (January 1997).
Feaver, Peter D., Armed Servants: Agency, Oversight, and Civil-Military Relations
(Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2003).
_______, “Crisis as Shirking: An Agency theory Explanation of the souring of
American Civil-Military Relations,” Armed Forces & Society 24:3 (Spring
1998).
Ford, Harold, CIA and the Vietnam Policymakers: Three Episodes 1962-1968
(Washington, D.C.: Center for the Study of Intelligence, 1998)
Foreign Relations of the U.S. 1961-1963, Volume II, Vietnam 1962, documents 1-
53. Available online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_ii_1961-63/
index.html.
French, David, The British Way in Warfare 1688-2000 (London: Unwin Hyman,
1990).
_______, Raising Churchill’s Army (New York, NY: Oxford University Press,
Managing Defense Transformation200
2000).
_______ and Brian Holden Reid, The British General Staff (London: Frank Cass
Publishers, 2002).
Frost, Peter J., Larry F. Moore, Meryl Reis Louis, Craig C. Lundberg, and Joanne
Martin, (eds.), Reframing Organizational Culture (London: Sage Publications,
1991).
Fuller, J.F.C., The Conduct of War: 1789-1961 (New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers
University Press, 1961).
Gaddes, John Lewis, Strategies of Containment (London: Oxford University Press,
1982).
Garstka, John, “Network Centric Warfare: An Overview of an Emerging Theory,”
Phalanx (December 2000). www.mors.org/Pubs/phalanx/dec00/featrure.htm
Gelb, Leslie and Richard Betts, The Irony of Vietnam: The System Worked
(Washington D.C.: Brooking Institution, 1979).
Gelpi, Christopher, The Power of Legitimacy: Assessing the Role of Legitimacy in
Crisis Bargaining (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2003).
Gibbons, William, The U.S. Government and the Vietnam War: Executive and
Legislative Roles and Relationships (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press,
1995).
Goerlitz, Walter, The German General Staff (NY: Barnes & Noble, 1995).
Goldman, Emily O. and Leslie C. Eliason, (eds.), The Diffusion of Military
Technology and Ideas (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2003).
_______, “The U.S. Military in Uncertain Times: Organizations, Ambiguity, and
Strategic Adjustment,” The Journal of Strategic Studies 20:2 (June 1997).
Goldstein, Judith Goldstein and Robert O. Keohane (eds.), Ideas & Foreign Policy:
Beliefs, Institutions, and Political Change (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
1993).
Gooch, John, The Prospect of War: Studies in British Defense Policy 1847-1942
(London: Frank Cass & Co. Ltd., 1981).
Gordon, Michael and Bernard Trainor, Cobra II: The Inside Story of the Invasion
and Occupation of Iraq (New York: Pantheon, 2006).
Grandstaff, See Mark R., “Preserving the ‘Habits and Usages of War’: William
Tecumseh Sherman, Professional Reform, and the U.S. Army Officer Corps,
1865-1881, Revisited,” The Journal of Military History 62:3 (July 1998).
Gray, Colin S., Modern Military Strategy (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1999).
Greene, Graham, The Quiet American (NY: Viking Press, 1955).
Guderian, Heinz, Achtung-Panzer (London: Arms and Armor Press, 1992).
Halperin, Morton H., Bureaucratic Politics and Foreign Policy (Washington, D.C.:
The Brookings Institution, 1974).
Hammer, Ellen J., The Struggle for Indochina (Stanford CA: Stanford University
Press, 1954).
Hargadon, Andrew B. and Yellowlees Douglas, “When Innovations Meet Institutions:
Edison and the Design of the Electric Light,” Administrative Science Quarterly
46 (2001), p. 478.
Harris, J.P., Men, Ideas, and Tanks (Manchester: Manchester University Press,
1995).
Bibliography 201
Harrison, James P., The Endless War (NY: Columbia University Press, 1989).
Harry, Summers Jr., On Strategy: A Critical Analysis of the Vietnam War (New York:
Dell Books, 1982).
Hellman, Joel S., “Winners Take All: The Politics of Partial Reform in Postcommunist
Transitions,” World Politics 50:2 (1998), pp. 203-234.
Herrick, Walter R., The American Naval Revolution (Baton Rouge: Louisiana State
University, 1966).
Hone, Thomas C., “Battleships vs. Aircraft Carriers: The Pattern of U.S. Navy
Operating Expenditures, 1932-1941,” Military Affairs 41:3 (October 1977).
_______, “Spending Patterns of the United States Navy, 1921-1941,” Armed Forces
and Society 8:3 (Spring 1982).
_______ and Mark D. Mandeles, “Interwar Innovation in Three Navies: U.S. Navy,
Royal Navy, Imperial Japanese Navy,” Naval War College Review 40 (Spring
1987), pp. 63-83.
_______, “Managerial Style in the Interwar Navy: A Reappraisal,” Naval War
College Review 32 (September-October 1980), p. 95.
Ignatieff, Michael, Virtual War: Kosovo and Beyond (New York: Metropolitan
Books, 2000).
Imershein, Allan W., “Organizational Change as a Paradigm Shift,” Sociological
Quarterly 18 (Winter 1977), pp. 33-43.
Jacobsen, John Kurt, “Much Ado About Ideas: The Cognitive Factor in Economic
Policy,” World Politics 47 (1995), pp. 283-31.
Janda, Lance, “Shutting the Gates of Mercy: The American Origin of Total War
1860-1880,” Journal of Military History 59:1 (January 1995).
Jelinek, Mariann, Linda Smircich, and Paul Hirsch, “Introduction: Code of Many
Colors,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 28 (1983), pp. 331-338.
Jenkins, Brian M., The Unchangeable War (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1972).
Jones, Gareth, “Transaction Costs, Property Rights, and Organizational Culture: An
Exchange Perspective,” Administrative Science Quarterly 28 (1983), p. 460.
Kaplan, Fred, The Wizards of Armageddon (New York: Simon and Schuster, 1983).
Karbo, Juliet, “Power Politics in Foreign Policy: The Influence of Bureaucratic
Minorities,” European Journal of International Relations 4 (1998), pp. 67-98.
Karnow, Stanley, Vietnam: A History (NY: Viking Press, 1984).
Katzenstein, Peter J., The Culture of National Security (New York: Columbia
University Press, 1996).
_______, Robert O. Keohane, and Stephen D. Krasner, “International Organizationand
the Study of World Politics,” International Organization 52:4 (Autumn 1998).
Keeter, Hunter, “Transformation Office Calls for Cultural Change, Possible Shift in
Acquisition Priorities,” Defense Daily, (2001).
Kelly, Francis J., U.S. Army Special Force in Vietnam 1961-1971 (Washington, DC:
Center for Military History, 1972).
Kier, Elizabeth, Imagining War: French and British Doctrine Between the War
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1997).
Kiewiet, D. Roderick and Mathew D. McCubbins, The Logic of Delegation:
Congressional Parties and the Appropriations Process (Chicago: The University
of Chicago Press, 1991), pp. 22-27.
Managing Defense Transformation202
Kinnard, The War Managers (Hanover, NH: University of Vermont, 1977).
Klein, Benjamin, Robert G. Crawford, and Armen Alchian, “Vertical Integration,
Appropriable Rents, and the Competitive Contracting Process,” Journal of Law
and Economics 21:2 (October 1978), pp. 297-326.
Knox, MacGregor and Williamson Murray (eds.), The Dynamics of Military
Innovation (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001).
Komer, Robert, Bureaucracy Does Its Thing: Institutional Constraints on U.S.-GVN
Performance in Vietnam (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1972).
_______, Organization and Management of the” New Model” Pacification
Program—1966-1969 (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 1970).
Kosiak, Steven, FY 2004 Defense R&D Request Raises Questions About
Administration’s Approach to Transformation (Washington, DC: Center for
Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, February 2003).
_______, Analysis of the FY 2006 Defense Budget Request (Washington, DC: Center
for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, April 2005).
_______, Analysis of the FY 2007 Defense Budget Request (Washington, DC: Center
for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, April 2006).
Kotter, J. P. and J.L. Heskett, Corporate Culture and Performance (New York: Free
Press, 1992).
Krepinevich, Andrew F., The Army and Vietnam (Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins
University Press, 1986).
_______, “Cavalry to Computer: The Pattern of Military Revolutions,” The National
Interest 37 (Fall 1994).
_______, “Military Experimentation: Time to Get Serious,” Backgrounder (March
31, 1999), www.csbaonline.org.
_______, The Military Technical Revolution: A Preliminary Assessment (Washington,
D.C.: Center for Strategic and Budgetary Assessments, 1999).
_______, Transformation Strategy (Washington, D.C.: Center for Strategic
and Budgetary Assessments), www.csbaonline.org/2Strategic_Studies/
3Transformation_Strategy/.
Lake, David A. and Robert Powell (eds.), Strategic Choice and International
Relations (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1999).
Larson, Robert, The British Army and the Theory of Armored Warfare (Newark, DE:
University of Delaware Press, 1984).
Legro, Jeffrey W., Cooperation Under Fire (Ithaca: Cornell University Press,
1995).
_______, “Culture and Preferences in the International Cooperation Two-Step,” The
American Political Science Review 90:1 (March 1996).
_______, “The Transformation of Ideas,” American Journal of Political Science
44:3 (July 2000), pp. 419-432.
Lewis, S.J., Forgotten Legions (NY: Praeger Publishers, 1985).
Liddell-Hart, Sir Basil Henry, The Tanks, Vol. 1 (New York, NY: Praeger Publishers,
1959), pp. 199-200.
Lieber, Keir A., War and the Engineers: The Primacy of Politics over Technology
(Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2005).
Lieutenant General Carroll H. Dunn, Base Development in South Vietnam 1965-
Bibliography 203
1970 (Washington, DC: Center for Military History, 1972).
Long, Austin, On “Other War”: Lessons from Five Decades of RAND
Counterinsurgency Research (Santa Monica, CA: RAND, 2006).
Luvaas, Jay, The Education of the British Army: British Military Thought, 1815-
1940 (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1964).
Mahnken, Thomas G., “Transforming the U.S. Armed Forces: Rhetoric or Reality,”
Naval War College Review 54:3 (Spring 2001), pp. 85-99.
_______, Uncovering Ways of War: U.S. Intelligence and Foreign Military
Innovation, 1918-1941 (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2002).
_______ and James R. FitzSimonds, “The Limits of Transformation: Officer Attitudes
towards the Revolution in Military Affairs,” Newport Paper #18 (October 2004);
available at www.nwc.navy.mil/press/napapers/nplist.htm.
_______ and Barry Watts, “What the Gulf War Can (and Cannot) Tell Us About the
Future of Warfare,” International Security (Fall 1997).
Mandeles, Mark D., American & British Aircraft Carrier Development (Annapolis,
MD: Naval Institute Press, 1999).
_______, Organizational Structures to Exploit the Revolution in Military Affairs
(Fairfax, VA: The J. de Bloch Group, January 2000).
_______, Thomas C. Hone, and Stanford S. Terry, Managing ‘Command and
Control’ in the Persian Gulf War (Westport, CN: Praeger, 1996).
March, James and Johan Olsen, “The Institutional Dynamics of International Political
Order’,” International Organization 52:4 (1998), pp. 943-969.
Marquis, Jefferson, “The Other Warriors: American Social Science and Nation
Building in Vietnam,” Diplomatic History 24:1 (Winter 2000).
Martel, Lt. Gen. Sir Giffard Le Q., Our Armed Forces (London: Faber and Faber
Limited, 1945), p. 49, 52, 55-56, and 98.
Martin, Joanne, Cultures in Organizations: Three Perspectives (New York: Oxford
University Press, 1992).
Mason, Herbert Jr., The Rise of the Luftwaffe (NY: Dial Press, 1973).
May, Ernest R, Strange Victory (NY: Hill and Wang, 2000).
McBride, William, Technological Change and the United States Navy 1865-1945
(Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2000).
McCubbins, Mathew D. and Thomas Schwartz, “Congressional Oversight
Overlooked: Police Patrols versus Fire Alarms,” American Journal of Political
Science 28 (1984), pp. 165-179.
_______, Roger G. Noll, and Barry R. Weingast, “Structure and Process, Politics,
and Policy: Administrative Arrangements and the Political Control of Agencies,”
Virginia Law Review 75:2 (March 1989), pp. 431-507.
McMaster, H.R., Dereliction of Duty: Lyndon Johnson, Robert McNamara, the
Joint Chiefs of Staff, and the Lies that Led to Vietnam (New York: HarperCollins,
1997).
McNamara, Robert, In Retrospect (NY: Times Books, 1995).
Mearshimer, John J., Liddell Hart and the Weight of History (Ithaca: Cornell
University Press, 1988).
Medema, Steven G., (ed.), Journal of Law and Economics 22:1 (1979), pp. 233-
261.
Managing Defense Transformation204
Melhorn, Charles M., Two-Block Fox (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press,
1974).
Memorandum From the President’s Military Representative (Taylor) to the President,
November 27, 1961. National Defense University, Taylor Papers, T-185-69.
Secret., Available online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_i_1961/
z.html.
Memorandum of Conversation, Kennedy Library, National Security Files, Vietnam
Country Series, 4/63-5/63. Available online at: http://mcadams.posc.mu.edu/
viet3.htm.
Michel, Marshall, The Eleven Days of Christmas: America’s Last Vietnam Battle
(San Francisco, CA: Encounter Books, 2002).
Miller, Edward S., War Plan Orange: The U.S. Strategy to Defeat Japan, 1897-1945
(Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 1991).
Mitcham, Samuel W., The Panzer Legions (Westport, CT: Greenwood Press, 2001).
Moe, Terry M., “The New Economics of Organization,” American Journal of
Political Science 28:4 (November 1984), pp. 739-777.
Murray, Williamson, “Does Military Culture Matter,” Orbis (Winter 1999).
_______, “Thinking About Innovation,” Naval War College Review (Spring 2001)
www.nwc.navy.mil/press/Review/2001/Spring/art9-sp1.htm.
_______ and Allan R. Millett (eds.), Military Innovation in the Interwar Period
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 1996).
Nenninger, Timothy K., The Leavenworth Schools and the Old Army: Education,
Professionalism, and the Officer Corps of the United States Army 1881-1918
(Westport, CN: Greenwood Press, 1978).
Nichols, John B. and Barrett Tilman, On Yankee Station: The Naval Air War over
Vietnam (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 2001).
Nye, Joseph S. Jr., and William A. Owens, “America’s Information Edge,” Foreign
Affairs 75:2 (March/April 1996).
O’Connell, Robert L., Sacred Vessels: The Cult of the Battleship and the Rise of the
U.S. Navy (New York: Oxford University Press, 1991).
O’Reilly, C. A., “Corporations, Culture, and Commitment: Motivation and Social
Control in Organizations,” California Management Review 31:4 (1989), pp. 9-
25.
O’Rourke, Ronald, Navy Network-Centric Warfare Concept: Key Programs and
Issues for Congress (Washington, DC: Congressional Research Service Report
for Congress, June 6, 2001).
Ouchi, William, “Markets, Bureaucracies, and Clans,” Administrative Science
Quarterly 25 (1980), pp. 129-141.
Ott, J. Steven, The Organizational Culture Perspective (Pacific Grove, CA: Brooks/
Cole Publishing Company, 1989).
Owens, Bill (Adm.), Lifting the Fog of War (New York: Farrar, Straus, Giroux,
2000).
Perrow, Charles, Normal Accidents (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1999).
_______, Charles, Organizational Analysis: A Sociological View (Belmont, CA:
Wadsworth Press, 1970)
Pettigrew, Andrew, “On Studying Organizational Cultures,” Administrative Science
Bibliography 205
Quarterly 24:4 (December 1979), pp. 570-581.
Pierce, Captain Terry C., Warfighting and Disruptive Technologies: Disguising
Innovation (London: Frank Cass, 2004).
Posen, Barry R., The Sources of Military Doctrine: France, Britain, and Germany
Between the World Wars (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1984).
Proctor, Raymond. Hitler’s Luftwaffe in the Spanish Civil War (Westport, CT:
Greenwood Press, 1983).
Quade, E.S. and W.I. Boucher, (eds.), Systems Analysis and Policy Planning (NY:
American Elsevier,1968).
Raudzens, George, “War-Winning Weapons: The Measurement of Technological
Determinism in Military History,” Journal of Military History 54:4 (October
1990), pp. 403-43.
Record, Jeffrey, The Wrong War (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 1998).
Reynolds, Clark, Admiral John H. Towers (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press,
1991).
_______, The Fast Carriers: Forging an Air Navy (Huntington, NY: Robert Krieger,
1978).
Rhodes, Edward, “Do Bureaucratic Politics Matter?: Some Disconfirming Findings
from the Case of the U.S. Navy,” World Politics 47 (October 1994), p. 32.
_______, “Sea Change: Interest-Based vs. Cultural-Cognitive Accounts of Strategic
Choice in the 1890s,” Security Studies 5:4 (Summer 1996), pp. 73-124.
Ricks, Thomas, Fiasco: The American Military Adventure in Iraq, (New York:
Penguin, 2006).
Ries, Karl and Hans Ring., The Legion Condor (Westchester, CT: Schiffer Pub.
Ltd.,1992).
Risse, Thomas, “Let’s Argue!: Communicative Action in World Politics,”
International Organization 54:1 (winter 2000), p. 6.
Rogers, Everett M., Diffusion of Innovations 5th Edition (New York: Free Press,
2003).
Rosecrance, Richard, The Rise of the Virtual State: Wealth and Power in the Coming
Century (New York: Basic Books, 1999).
Rosen, Stephen Peter, Societies and Military Power (Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, 1996).
Rynning, Sten, “Shaping Military Doctrine in France: Decisionmaking Between
International Power and Domestic Interests,” Security Studies 11:2 (winter
2001/2), pp. 85-116.
Sackman, Sonja, “Cultures and Sub-Cultures: An Analysis of Organizational
Knowledge,” Administrative Science Quarterly 37 (1992), pp. 140-161.
Scales, Robert, Firepower in Limited War (Washington, DC: National Defense
University Press, 1990).
Schein, Edgar H., Organizational Culture and Leadership, 2nd ed. (San Francisco:
Jossey-Bass Publishers, 1992).
Seaton, Albert. The German Army 1933-1945 (New York, NY: St. Martin’s
Press,1982).
Shafer, D. Michael, Deadly Paradigms: The Failure of U.S. Counterinsurgency
Policy (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1988).
Managing Defense Transformation206
Sheehan, Neil, A Bright Shining Lie: John Paul Vann and America in Vietnam (New
York: Vintage Books, 1988).
Shulimson, Jack, “The Marine War: III MAF in Vietnam 1965-1971,” paper presented
at Texas Tech Vietnam Center symposium, 1996.
_______ and Maj. Charles M Johnson, U.S. Marines in Vietnam: The Landing and
Buildup 1965 (Washington, D.C.: History and Museums Division, Headquarters,
USMC, 1978).
Smircich, Linda, “Concepts of Culture and Organizational Analysis,” Administrative
Science Quarterly 28 (1983), pp. 339-358.
Smith, Edward A., “Network Centric Warfare: What’s the Point?” Naval War College
Review, (2000).
Smith, Merritt Roe, (ed.), Military Enterprise and Technological Change:
Perspectives on the American Experience (Cambridge, MA: The M.I.T. Press,
1985).
Sorensen, Jesper B., “The Strength of Corporate Culture and the Reliability of Firm
Performance,” Administrative Science Quarterly, 47 (2002).
Sorley, Lewis, A Better War: The Unexamined Victories and Final Tragedy of
America’s Last Years in Vietnam (NY: Harcourt-Brace, 1999).
Sorley, Lewis, (ed.), Vietnam Chronicles: The Abrams Tapes 1968-1972 (Lubbock,
TX : Texas Tech University Press, 2004).
Stanley-Mitchell, Elizabeth A., “Technology’s Double-Edged Sword: The Case of
US Army Battlefield Digitization,” Defense Analysis 17:3 (December 2001), pp.
267-288.
Stulberg, Adam N., “Managing Military Transformation: Agency, Culture, and the
U.S. Carrier Revolution,” Security Studies 14:3 (July-Sept 2005), pp. 489-528.
_______, “Managing the Unmanned Revolution in the U.S. Air Force,” Orbis 51:2
(Spring 2007), pp. 251-266.
Stone, John, The Tank Debate (Amsterdam: Harwood Academic Publishers, 2000).
Swidler, Ann, “Culture in Action: Symbols and Strategies,” American Sociological
Review 51 (April 1986).
Taylor, Maxwell, The Uncertain Trumpet (New York: Harper, 1960).
Telegram From the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff (Lemnitzer) to the Chief
of the Military Assistance Advisory Group in Vietnam (McGarr), December 21,
1963. National Defense University, Lemnitzer Papers, L-21071. Top Secret;
Priority. Available online at www.state.gov/www/about_state/history/vol_i_1961/
z.html.
Thompson, James D., Organizations in Action (New York: McGraw Hill, 1967).
Thompson, Robert G. K., Defeating Communist Insurgency: Experiences from
Malaya and Vietnam (London: Chatto and Windus, 1966).
Toffler, Alvin and Heidi, War and Anti-War: Survival at the Dawn of the 21st Century
(Boston: Little, Brown, 1993).
Tolson, John J., Airmobility in Vietnam 1961-1971 (Washington, D.C.: Army Center
for Military History, 1973).
Trice, Harrison M. and Janice M. Beyer, “Studying Organizational Cultures through
Rites and Ceremonials,” Academy of Management Review 9:4 (1984).
Trimble, William F., Admiral William A. Moffett: Architect of Naval Aviation
Bibliography 207
(Washington, DC: Smithsonian Institute Press, 1994).
Turbowitz, Peter, Emily O. Goldman, and Edward Rhodes (eds.), The Politics of
Strategic Adjustment: Ideas, Institutions, and Interests (New York: Columbia
University Press, 1999).
Turnbull, A. and C. Lord, History of United States Naval Aviation (New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1949).
Van Creveld, Martin, Fighting Power: German Military Performance 1914-1945
(Report for Office of Net Assessment; December 1980).
Van Evera, Stephen, Guide to Methods for Students of Political Science (Ithaca:
Cornell University Press, 1997), pp. 30-34.
Vlahos, Michael, The Blue Sword: The Naval War College and the American Mission:
1919-1941 (Newport, RI: Naval War College Press, 1980).
Von Glinow, M. and S. Mohram (eds.), Managing Complexity in High Technology
Organizations (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1990), pp. 90-118.
Waltz, Kenneth N., Theory of International Politics (Reading, MA: Addison-Wesley,
1979).
Webb, Willard, “The Single Manager for Air in Vietnam,” Joint Forces Quarterly,
(Winter 1993-1994).
Whaley, Bart., Covert German Re-Armament, 1919-1939 (Frederick, MA: University
Publications of America, 1984).
Wildenberg, Thomas, “In Support of the Battle Line: Gunnery’s Influence on the
Development of Carrier Aviation in the U.S. Navy,” Journal of Military History
65 (July 2001), pp. 697-712.
______, Destined for Victory (Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press, 1998).
______, “In Support of the Battle Line: Gunnery’s Influence on the Development of
Carrier Aviation in the U.S. Navy,” Journal of Military History 65 (July 2001),
pp. 697-712.
Wilkins, Alan L. and William G. Ouchi, “Efficient Cultures: Exploring the
Relationship Between Culture and Organizational Performance,” Administrative
Science Quarterly 28 (1983), p. 471.
Williamson, Oliver E., Markets and Hierarchies (New York: Free Press, 1975).
Wilson, John B., Maneuver and Firepower: The Evolution of Divisions and Separate
Brigades (Washington, D.C.: U.S. Army Center for Military History, 1998).
Windrow, Martin, The Last Valley: Dien Bien Phu and the French Defeat in Vietnam
(Cambridge, MA: De Capo Press, 2004).
Winton, Harold R., “Tanks, Votes, and Budgets,” in The Challenge of Change,
Harold R. Winton and David R. Mets (eds.) (Lincoln: University of Nebraska
Press, 2000), p. 84.
_______, To Change and Army (Lawrence, KA: University Press of Kansas, 1988).
Wirtz, James, The Tet Offensive: Intelligence Failure in War (Ithaca, NY: Cornell
University Press, 1991).
Wright, Patrick, Tank: The Progress of a Monstrous War Machine (New York, NY:
Putnam Inc., 2000).
Zegart, Amy B., Flawed By Design (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1999).
Zisk, Kimberly Marten, Engaging the Enemy: Organizational Theory and Soviet
Military Innovation, 1955-1991 (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1993).
This page intentionally left blank
Index
2001 Quadrennial Defense Review, 186
Abrams, General Greighton, 155, 163, 169,
180
AC, see Army Council
Achtung-Panzer, 81
adverse selection, 38, 46–7
Afghanistan, 187
Agent, see sub-unit
air doctrine, 88, 90
air power, 65
aircraft carrier, 101, 104, 119
air-mobility, 155–7, 161, 164, 173–5
Ait Training Center, see Lipetsk
American Civil War, 170, 171
Amiens, 129
anti-submarine warfare, 20, 108
Argus, 101
Army Council, 137, 138, 140, 147
ARVN (Army of the Republic of Vietnam),
158, 161
ASW, see anti-submarine warfare
Basque region, 97
Battle Fleet, 101, 103–5, 116, 117, 121
Battles
Battle of Ap Bac, 161, 171, 174
Battle of France, 88
Battle of Jena, 67, 78
Battle of Konniggratz, 79
Battle of Midway, 107, 111
Battle of Spicheren, 80
Battle of Tannenberg, 80
Battle of the Coral Sea, 111
Battle of Worth, 80
Battleship, 20, 102, 103, 105, 107
Berrien, Frank, 118
big gun club, 1, 102, 104, 112, 126
big gun culture, 106
big gun enthusiasts, 114
big-gun cruisers, 101
blitzkrieg, 1, 14, 65–9
blitzkrieg developmental success, 72
blitzkrieg doctrine, 85
blitzkrieg operations, 98
blitzkrieg strategy, 135
blitzkrieg tactics, 98
Branch Inspectorates, 70
Branch Inspectorates, 78
British armor, 76
British armor theorists, 87
British Army Council 137–40, 147
BurAer, see Bureau of Aeronautics
Bureau of Aeronautics, 114–21, 124, 127,
191, 193, 196
Bureau of the Navy, 116
BurNav, see Bureau of the Navy
Burnett-Stuart, 136, 145, 148, 149
Bush Administration, 185
Bush, George W., 185
C&GSC (Command and General Staff
College), 157
Caldwell system, 134, 137, 142, 143
Cambrai, 129
CAPs (Combined Action Platoons), 164–6,
169
Captain Harry Yarnell, see Yarnell, Harry
Captain Joseph Reeves, see Reeves, Joseph
Cardwell System 134–5, 138, 142
carrier doctrine, 125
carrier-based aircraft, 126
carrier-centric, 101
carriers, 20
cauldron-battle, 79, 81
CENTCOM (Central Command), 189
CGSC (Command and General Staff
College), 170
Chief of Naval Operations, 109
Chief of Staff von Richtofen, see von
Richtofen
Chief of the Army Command Heye, see
Heye
Chief of the Army Command Kurt von
Hammerstein, see Hammerstein,
Kurt von
Chief of the Army Command von
Bloomberg, see von Bloomberg
Managing Defense Transformation210
CIA (Central Intelligence Agency), 162,
166–8, 195
CIDG (Civilian Irregular Defense Group),
164, 167–9
CIGS, 138, 140, 143, 145
CINCPAC (Commander in Chief, Pacific),
158–62
clandestine tank school, see Kazan
CNO, see Chief of Naval Operations
Chief of Naval Operations, 114, 118–20,
126
cognitive cultural theory, 13, 28, 113
cognitive-cultural argument, 26, 30
cognitive-cultural biases, 7
cognitive-cultural explanations, 102,
103, 131
cognitive-cultural theories, 104
cognitive-cultural variables, 112
Cold War, 170, 173, 175, 186
Colonel George Linsay, see Linsay, George
Colonel Keitel, 88, 90
Combined Action Platoon 164–6, 169
Combined Action Program, 195
commander‘s war game, 83, 84
COMUSMACV, see Commander, US
Military Assistance Command,
Vietnam
Commander, US Military Assistance
Command, Vietnam, 160–2, 171,
190, 191
Condor Legion, 72, 94–9
counter-insurgency, 1,53,61,153–80
cruisers, 107
Curtiss Hawk F6 dive-bomber, 121
Da Nang, 164
Daimler-Benz, 92
dangle the residual, 47–8
Decker, Army Chief of Staff, 157
Defense Minister Otto Gessler, 86
Destroyers, 107, 111
Dien Bien Phu, 178, 179
Director of Military Operations, 141
dive-bombing operations, 121
dive-bombing techniques, 122
DOD (Department of Defense), 165, 167
dummy tank battalions, 75
Dwight Eisenhower, 99
EAF, see Experimental Armored Force
EMF, see Experimental Mechanized Force
English Channel, 80
entrepreneurial commanders, 44
“Expeditionary Strike Group”, 187
Experimental Armored Force, 133, 145
Experimental Mechanized Force, 134, 139,
144–8, 150
Felt, Admirial Harry D., 159
Field Service Regulations, 145, 149, 150
First Battle of the Marne, 80
Fleet Air Arm, 107
Fleet Problem IX, 105
Fleet Problem VII, 123
Fleet Problems IX–XIX, 112
Flexible Response, 173
foot-dragging, 41–3, 151
Franco, Francisco, 94
Franco-Prussian War, 80
French, David, 143
FSR, see Field Service Regulations
Fuller, JFC 130, 132–4, 136, 139, 144
Future Combat System, 186, 187
General Board, 119, 127, 128
General Creighton Abrams, see Abrams,
General Greighton
General Staff, 67, 73, 138
General Staff system, 65
General von Hammerstein-Equord, 91
General von Reinhadt, 86
Geneva Accords, 177
German Army
Inspectorate of Motor Troops, 68, 71,
72, 73–7, 88
Weapons Office 65, 68–2, 78
Air Staff 68, 72
Luftwaffe 72
Clandestine Schools
Air (Lipetsk) 88–92, 98
Armor (Kazan) 88–92, 98
German General Staff (see also,
truppenamt) 65–70, 73, 78
German specialized warfare schools, 69
German umpire system, 85
Gneisenau, 78
Goldwater-Nichols Act, 190
Grosstraktor, see field tractor
Group Command Maneuvers of 1927–1928,
86
Index 211
Guderian, Heinz, 68, 73–7, 81–2, 87–8, 92,
140
Guderian‘s XIX Panzer Corps, 99
guerre d’escadre, see large-scale
engagement
Gulf War, 16
Hart, BH Liddel 130, 133, 135, 147
Hamlett, Lt. Gen. Barksdale, 157
Hammerstein, Kurt von, 86–7
hard power, 1, 2
Harkins, COMUSMACV, 161, 163, 171,
176
heavy armor, 65
heavy artillery, 65,68
hedging strategy, 41
Henschel 29, 92, 97
HES (Hamlet Evaluation System), 166, 167
High Command, 8, 44, 73, 83
high frequency-low stakes, 2
Hitler, Adolf, 66, 75–6, 94
Hutch Cone, 126
Imperial Navy, 107
imperial-style strategy, 110
IN-6, see Inspectorate of Motor Troops
IN-7, see Inspectorate of Communications
Troops
incentive-ideas divide, 13
inside-out, 13, 17, 21, 131
Inspectorate of Communications Troops,
91, 71
Inspectorate of Motor Troops, 68, 71–2,
73–5, 89
Inspectorate of Motorized Fighting Troops,
74
Inter-Allied Control Commission, 65
Iraq, 187–90
Janus-faced relationship, 37
JCS (Joint Chiefs of Staff), 158–60, 162,
163, 171, 174, 180
Johnson, Army Chief of Staff, Gen. Harold,
163, 169, 180
Joint Forces Command, 186
Kasserine Pass, 99
Kazan, 88–91, 98
Kennedy, President John F., 154, 159, 163,
167, 173, 180, 193, 196
Kesselring, Albert, 90
Kesselschlacht, see cauldron-battle
Kesselschlacht doctrine, 79–80
Khe Sahn, 162, 178, 179
Kirke Committee, 136
Kommando der Panzertruppen, see Tank
Forces Command
Korean War or Korea, 164, 170, 172, 173
Kriegsakademie, 87
Krulak, Marine Major General Victor,
162–3, 174
Krupp, 92
Kuhn, Friedrich, 90
Langley, 121, 127
large-scale engagement, 110
Leadership and Battle, 75
Lexington, 104, 118
limited liability, 135
Lindsay, George, 140, 144
Lipetsk, 88–91, 98
LK II, 92
London Naval Agreements of 1930, 111
low frequency-high stakes, 2
Luftwaffe, 72, 90, 94–8
Luftwaffe doctrine, 98
Lutz, Oswald, 68, 72, 74, 76–7, 86, 87, 140
MAAG (Military Assistance Advisory
Group), 158–60, 180
MACV (Military Assistance Command,
Vietnam), 158–64, 166, 168, 169,
178, 189
Malaysian Emergency, 179
MAN, 92
managerial norms, 8, 33, 35, 55–58, 60, 61,
78–83, 103, 122–8, 137, 145–51,
154, 171, 174
Massive Retaliation, 173
Master General of Ordnance, 141, 142
material-functional
material-functioning interests, 7
material-functional explanations, 102–4
material-functional argument, 25, 113
material-functional explanations, 131
material-functional theory, 13, 28, 113
McGarr, MAAG Chieg, 180
McNamara, Robert, 156, 158–61, 174–5,
180
Medium-D, 132, 142
Managing Defense Transformation212
MGO, see Master General of Ornance
microfoundational approach, 13, 36
Militarwochenblatt, 82, 83
military entrepreneurs, 56
Milne, Sir George 132–3, 136–7, 139, 150
Mitchell, Army Air Corps General William
“Billy”, 114
MLI Panzer Corps, 99
MNF-1, see Multinational Force Iraq
Command
mobile airfield, 106
Mobile Division, 129, 140, 149, 150
Mobile Force, 140, 148, 149
mobile tank warfare, 130
Mobile Troops, 77
Mock, Deputy Chief of Staff for Military
Operations Lt. Gen. Vernon, 169
modified principal-agent framework, 6, 60,
103, 113, 131, 137
modified theory of agency, 42
Moffett, William, 104, 115, 119–21, 126,
127
Moltke, Helmut von, the elder, 79, 80, 82
Montgomery-Massingberg 139–41, 145
moral hazard, 38,46–7
Morrow Board, 115, 127
MTTs (Mobile Training Teams), 166
Multinational Force Iraq Command, 189
MW, see Militarwochenblatt
MW Militarwochenblatt, 92
Napoleonic Wars, 79
Natzmer, 74
Naval Operations’ Planning and Material
Division, 109
Naval Postgraduate School, 123
Naval War College, 117–21, 124
Nehring, 90
Neoclassical realists, 19
network centric warfare, 14, 24, 187–8
Nolting, Ambassador Frank, 160
N-square law, 124
NWC, 122
ODCSOPS (Office of the Deputy Chief of
Staff for Military Operations), 169
Office of Force Transformation, 186
Operation SWITCHBACK, 168–9
outside-in, 13, 17–18, 20–2, 131
Pac-10, 110
PACOM (Pacific Command), 159, 190
Panzer
Panzer brigade, 91
panzer division, 73, 87, 141, 150
Panzer Kampfwagen I, 93
Panzer Kampfwagen II, 93
Panzer Kampfwagen III, 93
Panzer Kampfwagen IV, 93
Panzer Troop School, 74, 90
panzer troops, 76
panzer units, 76, 130
Patton, George, 99
PAVN (People’s Army of Vietnam), 162
Pearl Harbor, 106, 111, 112
Peers, Col. William, 162
Plan 1919, 132
poison gas, 65
police patrolling, 45
population security, 153, 157
Porter, Col. Dan, 161, 174
post-maneuver analysis, 85
post-maneuver critique, 86
PPBS (Planning-Programming-Budgeting
System), 175
Pratt-Whitney, 93
Principal, 36, 38, 39, 40, 45–7, 51, 54
principal-agent, 95
modified principal-agent framework, 6,
60, 103, 113, 131, 137
modified theory of agency, 42
principal-agent framework, 6, 7, 33, 35,
40, 43, 184
principal-agent literature, 47–48
principal-agent model, 76
principal agent models, 8,18,21,42
principal-agent problems, 103
principal-agent relations, 36, 154
principal-agent relationships, 84, 86
principal-agent scenarios, 39
principal-agent structures, 51
Principals, 82, 86
process-tracing, 8,60
promotional pathways, 21
PROVN (Program for the Pacification and
Long-Term Development of South
Vietnam), 169
Pz I, see Panzer Kampfwagen I
Pz II, see Panzer Kampfwagen II
Pz III, see Panzer Kampfwagen III
Pz IV, see Panzer Kampfwagen IV
Index 213
Pz-35(t), 94
Pz-38(t), 94
Pzkw, 75
QMG, see Quarter-master General
Quadrennial Defense Review 186–7
Quarter-master General, 141
radio, 71
radio communications, see radio
RAF, see Royal Air Force
Red Army, 88
Reeves, Joseph, 115–16, 119–27
Reichwehr, 81
Reichwehr Command Structure, 71
Reinhardt, 90
reverse engineering, 93
Rheinmetall, 92
Riechswehr field commands, 75
RMA (Revolution in Military Affairs),
183–9, 196
Rosson, Gen. William, 157, 162–4
Royal Air Force, 135, 150–1
Royal Armor Corps, 192
Royal Armored Corps, 141, 143
Royal Navy, 101, 106
Royal Tank Corps, 129, 134, 139, 192
RTC, 140, 141
Rumsfeld, Secretary of Defense Donald,
186
SACSA (Special Assistant for
Counterinsurgency and Special
Activities), 162, 193
Saratoga, 104, 119, 121
Scharnhorst, 78
Schlieffen, Alfred von 66, 79
SD7, 139
Second World War, see World War II
secret air school, see Lipetsk
Seekt, Hans von, 67–8, 70, 73, 81, 83–4, 85,
88, 91
service unilateralism, 24
Shadow Luftwaffe, 90
Sharp, CINCPAC Admiral, 169
Shielding, 68
Shirking, 9, 33, 41, 43, 46–7, 49–50, 56–7,
128
sine a qua non, 17
Skoda, 93
soft power, 1
Soviet Union HP, 2
Spanish Civil War, 69, 94, 97, 99
Special Forces, 156–7, 164, 167–8, 177,
191–2, 195
Special Forces Command, 193
Special Forces Directorate, 191
Special Staff W, 95
Special Study Group, 169
Special Warfare Center, 162, 164
Special Warfare Directorate, 157
Sperrle, Hugo, 68–9, 72, 90, 95, 97, 99
Spies, Rudolph, 72
staff tours, 83
stopgaps, 116
Storm Troops, 80
Strategic Air Command, 173
“Streetfighter” project, 186
Strv m/21, 92
Student, Kurt, 68,72
Stuka dive-bombers, 97
Stumpff, Hans, 90
sub-units, 4,6,8,32,33,36–51,54–61
T-3, see Truppenamt intelligence section
Tactics Department, 119
Tank, 68, 71, 72, 77, 83, 129, 149, 192–4
czech tanks, 94
tank achievements, 133
tank battalion, 75
tank brigade, 129, 133, 140, 144, 148
tank commanders, 146
tank corps, 129, 131
tank design, 92, 130, 142
tank development, 92, 132
tank doctrine, 69, 73, 74
tank entrepreneurs, 143
Tank Forces Command, 68, 76, 77
Tank Gunnery School, 90
tank innovation, 30
tank innovators, 147
tank models, 132
tank operations, 131
Tank School, 72
tank tactics, 73
tank technology, 9
tank warfare, 1, 14, 151
tanks, 75, 76, 82, 85, 88, 89, 140, 141
Taylor Board, 104
ten-year rule, 131
Tet Offensive, 162, 167
Managing Defense Transformation214
The Great War, see World War I
The Henschel and Fulk Wulf Company, 97
The Schleiffen Plan, 80
third parties, 45,59
Third Reich, 69
top-down command, 9, 40, 137
Towers, John, 121
Treaty of Versailles, 65–6, 69, 74, 78, 88
Truppenamt, 65, 70, 72, 73, 88, 90
Intelligence section of the Truppenamt,
91
Tschischwitz, Erich von, 72–4, 75
two front war, 66
U.S. Congress, 195
U.S. Navy, 107
U-boats, 108
Umpire, 85
Unmanned Aerial Vehicles (UAV) Joint
Task Force, 186
USARV (United States Army, Vietnam),
160,161
Vann, Lt. Col. John Paul, 161, 163, 176
Vicker-Armstrong, 142
Vietnam, 9, 153–180
Volckheim, Ernst, 71–2, 83, 90
Vollard-Bockelburg, 74, 75
Vollmer, Joseph, 92–4
von Bloomberg, 90
von Brauchitsch, 75, 88, 90
von Richthofen, 95, 97
WA-6, 73
Waffenampt, 72
War Office, 196
War Plan Orange, 110
Washington Five-Power Treaty, 105
Washington Naval Treaty, 104, 124
Weapons Office, 67–8, 70–5, 78, 91
Wehrmacht, 94, 95
Weimar Republic, 69
Werner Molders, 96
Westmoreland, COMUSMACV William,
161, 163, 165–6, 169, 176, 179
Wimmer, Wilhelm, 72
World War I, 65–7, 74, 78, 80, 92, 101, 106,
109, 130, 151
World War II, 65–99,102, 106, 129, 137,
151, 164, 167, 170, 171, 174
Yarborough, Brig. Gen. William, 162–4
York, Brig. Gen. Robert, 161,174
Yorktown, 107